O X F O R D I B D I P L O C AUS E S OF C O U R S E M A P AND R O G R A M M E E F F EC T S 20 T H - C E N T U R Y C O M PA N I O N David M. Smith WA R S Cover illustration 3 Artwork Great Clarendon Street, Oxford, OX2 6DP, United University Press is a department of the University It furthers the University’s objective of excellence scholarship, Oxford a and education by by QBS authors UK registered and in trade certain mark other of publishing Oxford Oxford University Illustration Press and OUP. publisher copyright are grateful for permission to reprint material: Fall: Street Without Joy: The French Debacle in Indo China, worldwide. University Press 1961), Stackpole Books. Reproduced by permission. in countries “European The © Learning and following (Harrisburg, the Folio in Bernard research, is Strautniekas, of the Oxford. Karolis Kingdom The Oxford by Agency. World National Dead WWII By the Museum Numbers: World Wide Deaths”, http://www.nationalww2museum. 2015 org/learn/education/for-students/ww2-history/ww2-by-the-numThe moral rights of the authors have been asserted bers/world-wide-deaths.html. First published in Although All rights reserved. reproduced, any form writing or of No stored by in any Oxford part a of this retrieval means, publication system, without University Press, the or or be right transmitted, prior as may in permission expressly cases. in law, by licence or under terms agreed with sions rights organization. Enquiries If at the to outside the scope of the above Rights Department, Oxford University must impose British Data not this circulate same Library this work condition Cataloguing on in in any any be sent Press, at the address other form and you must Data available 978-0-19-831020-4 1 3 5 7 Paper 9 product The 10 used 8 6 in 4 2 the made production from manufacturing regulations Printed in of the the UK wood process country by Bell of this grown in book and a natural, sustainable conforms of is to the recyclable forests. environmental origin. Bain Ltd, Glasgow Acknowledgements p7: VintageCorner/Alamy; Dominique Collector/Alamy; 12/Alamy; p40: p31: The Daniel p47: Ian Brown/Alamy; p52: Martin p76: Sochurek/The Keystone Alamy; p78: Images; Swim Ink 2, Picture Images; p101(C): Documenta/Album/Superstock; p107(R): Collection/Alamy; GmbH, Alamy; Photos Sueddeutsche Alamy; p161: p125: Sueddeutsche p130: p135: Pete Alamy; p174: Pictorial Sueddeutsche GL AG/Alamy; Archive/Alamy; Zeitung Photo Sueddeutsche p210: p216(T): Photo Zeitung Archive DIZ p166: Hideo World p216(B): Historical/Shutterstock. USA/ p96: World DIZ p213: Archive Muenchen Walls/ History History DIZ Archive/ Prisma Inc/Alamy; GmbH, Archive p188: Sueddeutsche Muenchen p193: GmbH, Image/ Army Photo/Alamy; Image/Alamy; Collection Archive/ Collection/ Muenchen p181: US Zeitung GmbH, Kurihara/Alamy; p215: AV8 p101(R): Rob Lordprice p177: DIZ p101(L): Images/Alamy; Collection p204: Photo/Alamy; DIZ p126: Muenchen Muenchen p218: Images; Pictures Lordprice p127: Military p171: Image/Alamy; Interfoto/Alamy; p110: p134: p146: Everett p186(B): Researchers/Alamy; Everett p133: Agency/Alamy; Adrian p66: Sueddeutsche Photo/Alamy; DIZ Images; Photo/Alamy; Photo/Alamy; Ltd/Alamy; p184: p186(T): Photo/Alamy; ITAR-TASS Alamy; Press Zeitung Adrian Iberfoto/Superstock; p107(L): Inc/Alamy; Print Photos p51: Interfoto/Alamy; Zeitung Roberts/Alamy; p25: The Labbe/Gamma-Rapho/Getty Photo/Alamy; Collection p170: p46: Keystone Archive/Alamy; Chronicle/Alamy; Everett Bildagentur GL 12/Alamy; Zeitung p77: Press/Alamy; Zeitung Alamy; GmbH, ZUMA p33: Aviation/Alamy; p92: Sueddeutsche LLC/Corbis; Images; p29: Collection/Getty Jean-Claude AFP/Getty Photo/Alamy; Collector/Alamy; USA/Alamy; Images; Images; Cleaver/Pool/Getty LIFE Pictures GmbH, Print Macpherson Collection p80: Muenchen Photo12/UIG/Getty Garcia/AFP/Getty Brown/Alamy; Howard p17: Berretty/Gamma-Rapho/Getty publisher party this will to by trace permission. has not rectify and contact been any all possible errors or copy- in omis opportunity. and for websites information for 2/Alamy; the materials to acquirer Publication effort are only. provided Oxford by Oxford disclaims any in good respon- concerning should above. You every publication the earliest third referenced the before notied, the made appropriate sibility reproduction have permitted faith reprographics we holders Links by Reproduced 2015 p220(R): p220(L): in this work. contained in any third party website all Course Companion denition The IB learner Prole The The are IB Diploma resource throughout course help is of Programme materials their study students expected two-year in a gain from Course designed an Companions support Diploma particular the to Programme subject. understanding study of an IB students They of aim their will of what of all common the planet, peaceful subject while presenting content in that world. illustrates reect the the purpose philosophy and and aims approach of the of and encourage a deep by providing making understanding connections opportunities for to of wider critical books mirror issues in the terms IB of a and philosophy of use of a wide Diploma of the range of resources, learner Programme knowledge, activity, IB the service core prole essay, that book materials required a variety and and can the doing, and theory creativity, and and of indeed, reading suggestions for conjunction students encouraged resources. further in to of draw the are given how to in with IB for each extend natural to curiosity. conduct and show enjoy independence learning and in this will be sustained throughout their love lives. They local explore and concepts, global ideas, signicance. and In they acquire in-depth understanding across knowledge a broad and and balanced of disciplines. thinking They skills approach exercise critically complex ethical initiative and in applying creatively problems, to and recognize make decisions. other Communicators are conclusions Suggestions their necessary actively have Thinkers and used be: IB (CAS). be to more the reasoned, Each strive guardianship and international and requirements, extended better approach; range mindedness, skills research Knowledgable viewing whole-course develop the They learning develop the a and thinking. so curriculum learners recognizing shared each issues The create develop IB. of subject and to who, the learning. IB to IB They acquire inquiry They humanity help is people a They way programmes minded Diploma Inquirers Programme IB internationally from additional ideas more of book research are and They information than one language communication. willingly in understand condently and They in work collaboration with a and and express creatively variety of effectively in modes and others. provided. Principled In addition, and the guidance requirements They are being Course on the and specic on distinctive Companions course academic and provide advice assessment honesty authoritative protocol. without with a respect and They strong for the their own with of actions integrity fairness, dignity communities. accompany prescriptive. act sense of They and the take the and justice, honesty, and individual, groups, responsibility consequences for that them. Open-minded They understand and appreciate IB mission statement their The International inquiring, who help world Baccalaureate knowledgable to create through a and better caring and intercultural aims to develop young more people peaceful understanding and respect. To this the governments develop open of IB and works and schools, international challenging education with other of of to international assessment. respect They act the programmes world lifelong with to become learners their encourage who active, students differences, can also be that perspectives, individuals of personal to and seeking view, and histories, values, and communities. and are evaluating willing to and are traditions They a are range grow from They have to show towards a make and empathy, the needs personal a to feelings commitment positive the compassion, and difference to to of and others. service, the lives and of environment. across compassionate, understand and experience. others These the points Caring organizations programmes rigorous to cultures accustomed the end own other right. and people, Risk-takers They and uncertainty and have new the roles, articulate and unfamiliar courage independence ideas, in approach with and of spirit strategies. defending their situations forethought, to They explore are brave and beliefs. iii Balanced They of intellectual, to achieve and personal the and well-being accepted importance emotional for full balance of themselves A others. Reective to understand physical, their They own give thoughtful learning and forms of information your work presentation. as can bibliography to how nd is a the You reader same compulsory must or provide viewer information. in the extended essay. consideration experience. They are What constitutes misconduct? able to assess and understand their strengths and Misconduct limitations in order to support their learning result personal is behaviour that results in, or may and in, you or any student gaining an unfair development. advantage in Misconduct one or more includes assessment plagiarism and component. collusion. A note on academic honesty It is of vital importance appropriately when After that all, credit to the owners information owners of acknowledge is used ideas of in Plagiarism and ideas information your property rights. To (intellectual have an are work, it must original be ideas based with on the your work Words Therefore, all the some of representation person the ways as to your of own. avoid the The plagiarism: and ideas one’s of another arguments person must be used to acknowledged. individual of others Passages that are quoted verbatim must fully be acknowledged. as another piece ● and dened of property) authentic support of is work following work. ● have or assignments, enclosed within quotation marks and written acknowledged. or oral, own used completed language or and referred quotation or for assessment expression. to, whether paraphrase, appropriately Where in such must the use your sources form sources of are ● direct must CD-ROMs, Internet, be treated email and in the The sources same of illustrations, all the ideas of footnotes Footnotes endnotes to be from you acknowledge other and people (placed provided information is that through you the have use ● of at at the the when you document, provided bottom end in of a quote or need to provide a Works part of a page) document) of not a ‘body need assumed to of be resources listing should books, based or another summarize document. for knowledge’. iv footnoted as the You information That they is, are that that you include magazines, you used all in and should a must be journals. your works use one of of list work. of are graphs, must be not your own work. whether or of visual music, lm, dance, a part arts, of must acknowledged. a and where work takes the place, be another is dened student. as This supporting misconduct by includes: do the of The Internet- art. the data, material allowing your work to be copied or submitted that including articles, they maps, assessment by another student denitions part formal resources, newspaper CDs art, arts, duplicating work components include if similar use Collusion paraphrase closely footnote should resources, means and or knowledge. Bibliographies the the are ● do books on media programs, creative for is of theatre ● not sites used bibliographies. (placed another as photographs, and acknowledged that web electronic way computer audio-visual, How do I acknowledge the work of others? way other acknowledged. ● The messages, any ‘Formal’ several Other that forms gives results taking room, of you of unfair another misconduct a CAS different diploma misconduct an include during or Examples material record. assessment requirements. advantage student. unauthorized falsifying for and/or an into an any action affects the include, examination examination, and C ontents Your guide to Paper 2 1 Introduction 7 1 The Algerian War: Guerrilla war and decolonization Exam-style questions and fur ther reading 16 36 Skills section: Understanding the question 37 2 39 The Falklands/Malvinas War: The failure of diplomacy Exam-style questions and fur ther reading 3 The Vietnam War: Revolutionary war in Indo-China Exam-style questions and fur ther reading 56 57 81 Skills section: Structuring your essay 82 4 84 The Spanish Civil War: Ideology and conict in the 20th century Exam-style questions and fur ther reading 5 The First World War: Total war Exam-style questions and fur ther reading Skills section: Writing introductions and conclusions 6 106 148 149 The Second World War in Europe and Nor th Africa: A return to total war Exam-style questions and fur ther reading 7 105 The Second World War in the Pacic: Total war Exam-style questions and fur ther reading 150 196 197 226 Skills section: Using the markbands 227 Conclusion 229 Index 232 v Y O U R The G U I D E information gures or in events this but is book not relates T O to PA P E R The key prescriptive. any relevant war can be of in wars. wars to an in this explore book as know The answer While a the book, your guide and content to in on Causes, author there own as to practices has is regional the and chosen also an book is to : provide in depth knowledge of a world referred history to this For ● example, aim 2 effects topic of ● introduce ● develop ● introduce different related key well-known key historical concepts opportunity history necessary using skills by providing tasks and exercises the concepts historical perspectives to to events/personalities. understand. this book is linked to the six key IB concepts. Change Perspectives Continuity Key concepts Significance Causation Consequence How to use this book This book contains 20th-century syllabus, You wars for should sections as example, use the ● To gain more ● To gain insight book and of in causes, in detailed (explanations) relating outlined the to practices the knowledge historical aspects and following of of Causes content effects of and section effects of the of IB war. ways: about understanding an key prescribed a signicant different event or leader perspectives event 1 Pa p e r 2 ● Use the exercises particularly of ● an think As and of would response through learn, your analysis understanding when may spider individual the and contributing to skills, the formulation the make form style. you at the go end knowledge sure information diagrams, as your of each and chapter and understanding in question. book the in learning understanding examination the be questions apply to retaining These important), your increase exam-style you in work you acquired. is the how essay you help to skill argument Consider an the cue It is of develop cards and this to strategies understanding timelines better along; you and (where other will make have chronology methods consolidate to you to suit knowledge revision for the easier. What you will be expected to do There two are of Topic Causes of war Practices of war and their world them. content Topic 12 You relevant 11: Causes history should to each and topics learn topic effects of and about area, the a as course range of shown 20th-century requires factors in this you in the table to study prescribed for wars Prescribed content ● Economic, ideological, political, territorial and other causes ● Shor t- and long-term causes ● Types of war: civil wars; wars between states; guerrilla wars ● Technological developments; theatres of war – air, land and sea ● The extent of the mobilization of human and economic resources ● The inuence and/or involvement of foreign powers ● The successes and failures of peace making ● Territorial changes ● Political repercussions ● Economic, social and demographic impact; changes in the role and status of women impact on the outcome Eects of war Make sure you “prescribed examination terms, you understand content” questions. will appropriate get all because the If you focus the terms these have of used terms a your will clear under be the used to heading structure understanding answers right and of be all able these to select examples. th ● If you exam in ● If the you are question are focus establish 2 is the on causes focus on and effects “political or of 20 -century economic wars”, causes”, Authoritarian topic the “use authoritarian States, “Emergence of force”, states” in of this the you may get authoritarian relates to prescribed a question states”. “methods content. an which content. studying with “The may prescribed dealing the studying When used to is Y O U R ● If you are mistrust Cold on The are war the Paper areas. amounts what can the The In best to 45 be is rather good ways addition a stated to is per broad to from in a the the in topic question different in – on is two much two and in on 2 “two their in in impact which two different time different succeeding P A P E R content. minutes from T O “Rivalry, focuses examination 90 not area that region prescribed questions question questions for topics. This answering subjects. this you different One examination, management. improve timing, a essay-based components time and get questions choose your well-structured good an two minutes critical effective, produce must War may chosen as answer You most each War”, Cold you examination to therefore, of 2 the accord”, crises Cold expected topic of studying and G U I D E you essay-writing essays must and to skills practise understand the are to read writing skills you examples them yourself. need to answer. What the exam paper will look like The will topics. be questions may be focus will on be mentioned). understanding ask you different with clear two questions headings different set identifying aspects of the for the each of topics topic as the and twelve the outlined in the content. questions events and questions will will prescribed The 24 There to “open” This in refer will questions allow response to events to or (with you the to no apply question leaders, specic your set. “each names or knowledge Some chosen questions from a region”. Preparing for Paper 2 Make sure questions ● you are Compare Identify or ● what do. the The command most terms common used in command essay terms are: contrast similarities a range and differences relating to a specic factor of arguments Evaluate up strengths expressed as and “successes limitations. and In an essay question this is often failures” Examine Consider validity ● to Discuss Weigh ● and you event Review ● understand asking To what This or an of argument or assumption and make a judgment as to the either extent usually disagree refers with to a quotation or a statement, inviting you to agree it 3 Pa p e r 2 Essay skills Understanding and a examiner the focus looks for. of a question There are is vital usually as two this or is three one of the focus skills words in question. The focus words are identied in the examples below: Example 1 Evaluate the signicance of economic factors in the rise to power of one th century authoritarian leader. 20 The question is asking about the impor tance of economic issues and crises in the rise to power of an authoritarian leader. A good answer would be expected to include a range of factors (popularity, threat of force and weakness of existing political system) not just economic factors, before making a judgment on the impor tance of economic factors in the rise to power of the chosen leader. Example 2 The outcome of Civil war is often decided by the actions of Foreign powers. To what extent do you agree with this statement with reference to t wo civil wars each chosen from dierent regions. The question is asking you to consider whether the end of civil wars is usually decided by foreign powers. Again you should consider a range of factors relevant to your chosen examples. It is quite possible that the statement applies to one of them but not the other. Example 3 Evaluate the social and economic challenges facing one newly independent state and how eectively they were dealt with. The question is asking you to do two things – identify social and economic problems and then assess the success and failures of attempts to solve those problems. The tell command you that “the the 4 what you term you tells have understand demands of markbands the for you to both what write of these question Paper 2. you about. are and have to Make it you do will understood ” and clear in show – a the focus your the phrase words answers examiner that is that used in Y O U R G U I D E T O P A P E R 2 Markbands Marks Level descriptor 0 Answers do not reach a standard described by the descriptors below. 1–3 There is little understanding of the demands of the question. The response is poorly structured or, where there is a recognizable essay structure, there is minimal focus on the task . Little knowledge of the world history topic is present. The student identies examples to discuss, but these examples are factually incorrect, irrelevant or vague. The response contains little or no critical analysis. The response may consist mostly of generalizations and poorly substantiated asser tions. 4–6 The response indicates some understanding of the demands of the question. While there may be an attempt to follow a structured approach, the response lacks clarity and coherence. Knowledge of the world history topic is demonstrated, but lacks accuracy and relevance. There is a supercial understanding of historical context. The student identies specic examples to discuss, but these examples are vague or lack relevance. There is some limited analysis, but the response is primarily narrative or descriptive in nature rather than analytical. 7–9 The response indicates an understanding of the demands of the question, but these demands are only par tially addressed. There is an attempt to follow a structured approach. Knowledge of the world history topic is mostly accurate and relevant. Events are generally placed in their historical context. The examples that the student chooses to discuss are appropriate and relevant. The response makes links and/or comparisons (as appropriate to the question). The response moves beyond description to include some analysis or critical commentary, but this is not sustained. 10–12 The demands of the question are understood and addressed. Responses are generally well structured and organized, although there is some repetition or lack of clarity in places. Knowledge of the world history topic is mostly accurate and relevant. Events are placed in their historical context, and there is some understanding of historical concepts. The examples that the student chooses to discuss are appropriate and relevant, and are used to suppor t the analysis/evaluation. The response makes eective links and/or comparisons (as appropriate to the question). The response contains critical analysis, which is mainly clear and coherent. There is some awareness and evaluation of dierent perspectives. Most of the main points are substantiated and the response argues to a consistent conclusion. 13–15 Responses are clearly focused, showing a high degree of awareness of the demands and implications of the question. Responses are well structured and eectively organized. Knowledge of the world history topic is accurate and relevant. Events are placed in their historical context, and there is a clear understanding of historical concepts. The examples that the student chooses to discuss are appropriate and relevant, and are used eectively to support the analysis/evaluation. The response makes eective links and/or comparisons (as appropriate to the question). The response contains clear and coherent critical analysis. There is evaluation of dierent perspectives, and this evaluation is integrated eectively into the answer. All, or nearly all, of the main points are substantiated, and the response argues to a consistent conclusion. 5 Pa p e r 2 Common weaknesses in exam answers Many answers answers the tell demonstrate the knowledge higher Other the answers examiners are lack These of often but often some is types to of limited describe frequent little a of as not in great analytical answer the detail; these comment that will not about reach that or examiners exam on vague the answers support some focus evidence; on what assertion. knowledge mean in by have factual unsubstantiated question weaknesses which inaccurate comments comments answer answers: inaccurate do not analysis. generalizations contain This is one enough of the answers. comments: knowledge are no statements too These or narrative or inadequate common Other make This consist with detail evidence most but often markbands. question Here story shown. knowledge types not of using make is present comments knowledge clear links to but mean to the much there that answer focus of narration is limited the focus on the candidates the particular the question. question know quite question. a lot Answers but do Writing good essays Good essays consist of a combination of Question three elements: focus Analysis Accurate and comments relevant knowledge knowledge linking the A good keep all structure line of will argument ensure clear that and you your don’t focus the shown, back to question miss on out the key factors, question at times. More this 6 essay your and on information book. on essay skills can be found in the Skills sections throughout I N T R O D U C T I O N “It is well that war is so terrible or we should grow too fond of it.” Rober t E Lee In the this is about same not way a exploring consequences. combat the in to larger this world need and great our this of be of history – – be It Paper to look used in investigations be As wars. causes, and 2 – for not are wars and and locating the in nature is conduct war in in discussed isolation. global similarities, that in It warfare about such, The nature IB and differences and spirit. consequence, expressed, and narrative dissecting also world. causation, can is be various their together regions should signicance historical the in not of simply strategy. and assessed across book story wars, than examined as should the these and society – essays tells more tactics to concepts and nature of topics IB simply about comparison perspective start is uncover book patterns The the It your that context history require that book extended in the continuity, same essays, with way change, that we questions. Why do we ght? Carl and Philipp Gottfried philosopher diplomacy by human seems be that they bear this want chapter causes for in of the security and of this of of wanted a aspects more ideological invasion of of This on in and as as a of way but do Even this of War to It are out, gain t seem negotiate may not to the be the looking security. none through of a disaster. Other the combination While maxim, explain “living a of dominance Clausewitz’s valuable Clausewitz Germany, therefore, of massively interpretations this into a something that to that stumbled, might get economic idea of things. there some general continuation wars scheme. the may, of willing achieving stress rather not. attempt there been incompetence, World it into Prussian the states Anglo-French however, 1914, an t number broke War. a is simplication which Certainly can war Second a by hostilities diplomatic aspects Poland intimates perceived “War enticing method Algerian War of an that government before war, war It a (1780–1831), wrote is states. the sought this the is French face ignorance some other World the encirclement, fear, war Algeria book interpretations powers that the First in means”. from Had independence Clausewitz famously undertaking. saying out. von war, other complex to of the Germany’s space” in the east. ▲ It does little to shed such as the light on the ideological motives in German Carl Philipp Gottfried von Clausewitz foreign (1 780–1831), a Prussian general policy, a crusade against Barbarossa of as European The fact conte xt war. is of Bolshevism. plan Jewry that and The a invasion wa rrior little l i ke c o nte x t cl a s s al l linked which those to explanatory huma n mus t ha s USSR, Likewise intrinsically nd wa r, this the who Hitler’s power be im po r ta n t characterized interpret plan in e n d e a vo u r s , the r e fo r e b ee n Hitler for and philosopher of war Operation the annihilation Clausewitz. e xi st s im p or t a n t in as va r i o u s in in a cultural e xp l a in i n g s oc i e t ie s 7 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y throughout elite in their histor y. Prussia law the the ir wa s pa ssed ca n milita ry. have of a nd trends is time s is is third as an and the in line Gre a t more war is ofcer, in a the one of ci vi l result been an of to n or m a l also that to a a the s a me be that mil it a r y s e e mi n g ly to wa y as o ppo si t e they c on s c r i pt i on s m al l that that all s en s e n at u r a l rather among any a th i s to s t e p” of wa r is s e ns e ove r s i g h t of m i n is t e r s er vi n g c au t i o u s the s e . a v e n u es C ivi l i an p o s i ti o n in The pr oble m resort l og i c a l th a n ma i n t a i n only m i l it a r y. ot h e r the se n s e . the are a d d re s s “ n e xt avenues” ci v i l ia n of s ta t e s the the threats, to th i s in a un d e r opp os it e th a t in wa r s 1 9 14 , come ot h e r A u s t r a li a si g n In In no r m a l iz e d . m i l i ta ry le s s co untr i e s and r e l a ti ve l y a nd the civil i z i n g these r e so r t a e ns uri n g e l e ct e d the s e is m ea s ur e , by The e n su r e of see system the in ce n t u r y s e r vic e s . wa r. in military r o le 20 t h r e s po n s i bil it y e xha us te d . of of respond the bu t and s e r vi c e Ca na d a to of I s r ae l both Ju n k e r t h e re fo re r a i l wa y ti m e s m a i nta i n B r i ta i n, we tr u e ce nt u ry co un tr i e s ins ta nc e by in 2 0 th C l a us e w i tz , wa y Ge rma n m i l i ta r y of wa r, the p r e s t i g io u s resources ne i g hbo ur s, “fa i l ur e for fo r a nd and Sw i tze r l a n d , r e s or ti ng hav e lled is e nd of m i l i ta r y e xtra o r d i na r y with milita ry, as Japan e s pe ci al l y a rm y o the r w i s e countries , is the pa r t the g r o up and re solution more T he using Sta tes, se en s uch a g gres s i v e wa r the se for of a of Unite d In or in no r m a l voting . times t he m a nd a to r y a tha t disa ste rs The re is In Ge r ma n in i m po r ta nt Thi s saw seen Countrie s occupation an a pp e ti te w hi ch be instituted taxe s s o ci e ty. the a lso S a m ur a i so ci e ti e s . of vora cious control trend T he occup i e d re spective milita rization with W A R S m i li t a r y a p p ro ac h to milita ry. Why do wars continue? Why to do the soldiers civilian? Certainly is the for at the product the of the this end human g ht and capacity often the issue mad the First ludicrousne ss over, sorts 8 the of of do to only circle if you it a ll is Dye r g r ow w o ul d Wo r l d of of as not train varied do as soldiers required. all soldiers and the to the used to to war?” of war motivations eventually recruiting ght. US Leadership, been go initiation, the to of the The continue futility unimaginable soldiers for. employment the tak e fa r War. a bl e It even In the ofce. horror involvement social help of r s t to the in cohesion, explain scale all on e on m i li t a r y into than light l i fe there the of i n t e rn a l c e r t a in l y Onc e which s te p ma dn e s s . suffe r i n g “T h e sheds d e s tr o y b ra nc h tha t in This w e a pon s . to the a r g u e d, b ig ge r cha l le ng e s se e m s de sp ite ha s j us ti f y”. nucl e a r arms stimulating the they many have con ti nue b e i ng nuclear but why suffering the endure. it prolife ration be of “Why though potential perception Gw y nne ca used face asking what can explanation to the pressure, camaraderie orig ina ll y for peer in than conduct, soldier explain the wa r s the m. has truth or the propelled helps another goal all ght profession, civilian also Neve rthe less, to level, their have trenches Vietnam, the of to different Patriotism, conscription Indeed is staff average themselves. continue This the ho l ds on are cir c le . at least w it h r e a s o ne d F or of so m e the several ca rr y wa r s e e mi n g ly ove r earth s e nt of imp or t a n c e the gets can t h o se l o g ic t h os e times it all a n s we rs , o ut s i de I N T R O D U C T I O N To what extent does technology determine the course of wars? The conduct This being warfare. harder had many Likewise military is thus and during enemy technology. technology Atlantic to the to differentiate vagaries army the will of the human as in an the to beings early Haber-Bosch process, to haunted be forever bomb him and as waged a a urged “cry-baby campaign and others end the used war a and as who understood why the The has is to on say wars. weeks done – the that was the sole to and say thinking The This of only is, the many World was of method. sent with It in the Sputnik, a than the nuclear intercontinental made release it far and of for of more the are for was the Even the is to ght current military an is way mostly to US, Japanese, about implications of humans? also the complex. last war, that circumstances have exaggeration. much was Truman fastest those thinkers out atomic scientists confused kill the dismissed bomb. moral to claimed rst prominent technology it the ways Haber’s German Truman were always and the Prize atomic bomb. played Fritz countless, bomb, behind efcient Nobel the which to scale and Oppenheimer bomb What that War diverse important threatening President aphorisms, the his saving the of lags evidence First up generals always that development the strategy that like difference purpose as improvement chlorine Robert rst necessary. Hitler’s also questions. number dropping the defensive is shells effective deployment of it defensive delivery an armed ethical the end its It cylinder humans. dropping for advances enemy. more a a to tank. satellite artillery with Indeed dropping mounted trajectories technology more the on as the rocket far nuclear the in on dramatic of technologies tank. The was 1918. therefore tactics cliché strategic past opening had technology technology. is fact a of and complicated in civilization. non-lethal offensive changed; into to role the is weaponized has scientist”. attack of of used against the it of electro-mechanical develop relied fraught his be argument second become by it is of however, had artillery system replace had develop is War would relationship It and moral to to orbit gas when in of weapon and nature military trench lethality. into awarded not the lives creating it its Union developer World lethal weapon deliver compute amphibious actual the coin development the poison ingenuity First the been wind human and trajectory Soviet the smelting and War. engineers satellite, had of the technology, effectiveness this advances for technology. technology discoveries the relationship the actual Putting it the increase the the than other legacy if missile. effective kill Harbour Change and Allied to World traditionally stimulate man-made warhead Using more of available allowed changed side need by between same increased great Second between matter system rst to led that other effectiveness Mulberry satellite. The This non-military stirrup codes forced as delivery applications the science metals. innocuous, The inuenced relationship material The helped Wall not in deadly understand The been complex wartime. during examining ballistic a swordsmen. important the more applications. break may always is non-lethal computing When has there supposedly developed and war Improvements and archers of said, as largely to other the go The wars scale of 9 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y the losses say that in 1914 works John from and that the is in persuaded nature to Keegan of the Somme command sent last argued offensive or the leading massive both trench did that not forward, the the dig was of even of miles behind situation hopelessly for the the US earlier the take Civil in of the time the front changed and so and World command radically to to far the war them. control as the reached orders as War, of such information further trench War. and battles to leaders the nature available during reliable Even military Peninsular First by effective stock. to War the technology employed the had and constrained men By in unknown generals were allow Passchendaele. commands to communication formations several and lions, and sides warfare months Vicksburg has Communication of of ignore front donkeys the W A R S were make these uninformed. Why do wars end? Wars that the end it is and and the Allies. issue was it is told in The the the – is the it no of bomb will has for War. But some their opponent. of the yours, the the Kyoto Axis At “You at From War Tet with complex. the the The perspective bloodbaths manufacturers? butter US in the Germany whose past arms the the can those to so war is war. State for guns of Was to Department’s Offensive kill a the – differ from based ten of to of endure my will on the the the enough the for I resources rationalize more and leave that the deciencies War, men lose to end drop continue material months to to surrender. combatant Indo-China you not wanted could resources to decision decision US it also last the odds The Such willing of US that Should the make the human in are outset in Tokyo. the Powers the French, a or end combatants even or intact material to of authority factored effectively. ways did if reason point armistice becomes sacricing How aftermath continuing it World certain that an factor. German combatants a approached and seek question family War? At Sanh? This either the the Ludendorff must First German of unwinnable they Verdun? legitimate the the yet at Khe more continue. complicating World at was that government seek crippling warned the pursue longer it poilu of behind to one or to General saved continue a on war be is important. reason ght to Japanese available the assessing existence also German to one interest reasoning besieged war because their Second The The Class discussion the interest Marine of him were average perspective atomic in perspective continue a whole 1918, desirable 1916? in of army It of the longer autumn Kaiser it on no Second suffering Ho Chi every will were World than Minh one win”. I kill This last What factors make wars popular or example highlights another aspect of modern war that became especially unpopular with the general public? What evident when the United States fought in South-East Asia. In liberal role can the media play in this perception? democracies, wars cannot long continue without public support. Types of wars Military own this history knowledge an a subdiscipline framework, organizational undertakings 10 as such as taxonomy. wars of the including into area Although neat of knowledge language it and can categories, be history concepts hard imposing to and place some has its with complex sort of I N T R O D U C T I O N taxonomical various the type Korean from framework wars of war War the and lead can was a can to change limited perspective of help deeper us based war North compare insight. on from and It is your the contrast to perspective. US South and important the For perspective, elements remember example, but a total of that the war Korea. Total war This to is a the war war human total resources war. wars as they to mean the to industrial warfare. in its and a not in to turn of minds all of its ght. the a Total Computer or and as also cyber of legitimate a to a is the result eyes of for are to its of this other as also a the Wars the of total enemy, the has their blockade using of and to World because century, attacks enemy apply defeating in resources implications allows economic the of its Second but 20th of educational generally and wars the Anything some First number war used not legitimate In all material, resources intentionally always does world are targets, to civilians. strategy. warfare. used has were commit natural, term There become both The they them. being combatants example, commits Britain the more industrial, For because targets, of in war. targeting, defensive parcel becomes of are Great or mobilized. country resources enemy are committed a one Economic, scope When these which resources geographic were in effort. come proximity forms key of plank becoming further its war part aims target. Civil war Civil wars about the National be do is are armed direction, fault lines ideological, not the in and lack perceived divisions. of a of a legitimacy Most interests the because method to When with faith a the address insufcient in to the monopoly of authoritarian forms a force, of mechanism compliance, such order amid either divisions to the as the largely an of not police Other primarily divisions. address the within these In civil entire to and of its has regional legitimate country. is legitimacy security their if of political maintain the their and or the country. democracies short, concerns become in models systems, on force various able augment military, ingredient of example, the the effective divisions obedience. rely from can differences differing for ideas country. inherent for Canada, represent as key have decisions governments societal to example, effectiveness and will or other different a develop But interests are system of monopoly legislators interests or a interests. elects government, unity for democracies see The of political parliament stability, impose maintain political force citizens legitimacy to to that Such maintain wars. religious. competing in radically differences or enough regional of often composition volatile civil the say competing organizations force or members country. stability a or economic democracies, provide over system with address democracy these in to erupt these cause system positions, representative allows which established that that political, themselves political ideological This along regional, representation and disputes governmental notably monopoly a country factions of has or to wars. Revolutionary war Revolutionary overthrow can be goals, foreign it is war what it or is generally perceives domestic. conceivable that to a struggle be Since it will an this led by oppressive type of encompass a grass roots authority. war is other movement That characterized types of war to authority by its such 11 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y as total When war involve one or larger or, some more and Ottoman overall When The nationalist further, justied bitterly consider while seen one as their both their it terror This British its employ or the ran in present Arab civil war the wars for the operations, wars. will often 20thcentury can Revolt parallel, the war tactics lens Tamil campaigns and Sri scope that terror the of spawn from nationalist and insofar defeat of although against a war and of the and Lankan of the their from Russian in complicates in Sri civilians their To Lanka, and the they part struggle of a would be ofcials. localized duration. power it perspective. Tigers characterization seizure argue civil off war can military revolutionary by increasingly these through (IRA) Bolshevik a did Russia, Revolutionary set the and revolutionary different. struggle. could and War in movements perhaps the too very distinguish rebellions World China occupier, opportunity interests by Spain, ideologies. Army in of foreign blurring opposed can the so were case a nationalism First Empire, revolutionary We and Republican were the of British goals matters Irish level conicts Arab in against competing movements. as as directed W A R S We 1917 Civil revolutionary revolts would, as War a and therefore, not revolutionary that followed war, could be war. Guerrilla war For the tactic it purposes employed used in civil component even seen Second War. it in conventional a force is can tactic to such as component saw struggle a book to a war when Mao and is too It formed conventional so of and of guerrilla the goal that see major theatre ght military time a a We revolution theorist to as itself. Yugoslav weak over more war Cuban the ultimate support regular, the in seen of War. important one the as be type Civil as war an can distinct such total Zedong, For a Chinese wars of strength into than the used war. gain evolve Mao be guerrilla rather revolutionary a World as this war wars of as of in of is the war, enemy guerrilla the guerrilla army. Syllabus overview and assessment The International components studies. The candidates of the of topics is study syllabus which all in regional depth higher level and concepts: ● Continuity ● Change are world must history are their higher subject. history study and also divided it level The two. is case of the 12 world. study of whether history these one required to look Candidates to are possible in important required history, of the they to on the four are complete assessment. focus depth All component are emphasis therefore three regional studies. second There The into and regardless internal level is topics topics. regions candidates, standard as history document-based different history All or investigation standard historical level syllabus world prescribed the across studies. higher historical one world examples enrolled subjects is history subjects, candidates comparative studying 12 must historical Both Baccalaureate prescribed prescribed history topics at – following key an I N T R O D U C T I O N ● Cause ● Consequence ● Perspective ● Signicance This book century deals wars” concepts requires will substance is it of each and themes ● Short-term ● Combatants ● Technology ● Operations ● Effects no complete its impact contributed text First can World in two and The in if the the 12 an the a an social, and exam topics. of to of of structure the two also common Second The of to that basis items each these being the chapter historical will of 20th- comparison form all of course run through comparison. essay These the Second War. War are dimensions you region, to World War. only War the The and different Second would peace wars cross-regional across the For economic Africa compare the of Likewise Europe, not dimensions. aspects World Americas, World consider Second political Cold requires are assessed exam from must the Each with consists response questions. of to economic the out Asia. wars of air War in in The and regions. use World set and factors For power Europe requirement. Candidates not – and the the different this important of the compare topics is effects of regions a fulll are it political the question from exams. both the can themes form effects causes discussion the used each they a outbreak history markbands. themes also range be extended answer the are and history Meaningful by book specic therefore, development Pacic world provided is to wars, shared this why has world equipment these but War November of and the therefore example, warfare examination cover is in concepts immediate without on which above “Causes comparison. elements discussed also, topic comparative that across the can and factors, be of a causes examining example, the done history is include: Long-term military it basis themes 20th-century ● When the While chapter These world comparison, consistent. studies, be Other the because form that compared. with and of answer same and are two The candidates is of of the – have these from 90 out May two format marked available 2 questions any topic. response markbands Paper 24 each questions, the answer minutes of your for or on 15 to using pre-set teacher. Tips for writing a good essay ● Use the relating ve to minutes the topics of ● Understand the ● Unpack question. each in the your reading you have command Pull time terms out to consider all the questions studied. of the the key question. terms and be sure to address response. 13 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y ● Plan ● Include each below) ● the response. differing where Develop of W A R S a perspectives clear thesis statement Relate ● Be as detailed with historical ● Be disciplined with time each completed Only ● Avoid not historiography – see that addresses the requirements paragraph in 90 back to the thesis/question. events allocation. minutes. This as possible. The leaves exam is designed approximately 45 to be minutes for response. ● Use necessarily question. ● each (not applicable. use a detail that narrative historical simply referred relevant response. evidence write to is in to In your other address everything the to you thesis. words, the do not demands know about of the simply the tell a question. historical story. Do events question. Historiography Historiography refers accumulated body encompasses schools School, as historical well event as events and what said, and examination Paper using 2 and of 14 it is the the are relative a just serve an do is not not in are and to do so. essays is one topic. of to knowledge is not an If does it end grade your the to In in the address in the and it of has careful essays other assessment. any the That not, A of of weaknesses? reected way It Annales name-dropping. used the Understanding “historiography”. this is the to interpretations and argument. in and given as some major your your historiography way the that any such historians. requirement requirement only on strengths mention a of history requires exercise markbands 3 relevant not views what of thought, therefore, must thus historiography Discussing but is is differing historiography Paper “perspectives” literature historical their Historiography methodology historical of context: are itself. context the period, being no using of the or historiographical to for words, Examining markbands. perspectives, I N T R O D U C T I O N Command terms Command the task. terms Here are are the the Command term parts of command a question terms that used in tell the you IB the nature history of course: Task Analyse Break down in order to bring out the essential elements or structure. Compare Give an account of the similarities between two (or more) items or situations, referring to both (all) of them throughout. Contrast Give an account of the dierences between two (or more) items or situations, referring to both (all) of them throughout. Discuss Oer a considered and balanced review that includes a range of arguments, factors or hypotheses. Opinions or conclusions should be presented clearly and suppor ted by appropriate evidence. Make an appraisal by weighing up the strengths and limitations. Examine To what extent L TA Evaluate Thinking skills Use each of the command Consider an argument or concept in a way that uncovers terms in the table to write the assumptions and interrelationships of the issue. extended response questions Consider the merits or otherwise of an argument or concept. Opinions and conclusions should be presented clearly and suppor ted with appropriate evidence and for the material in this chapter. Share your questions with other classmates to answer each other ’s questions. sound argument. Fur ther reading Black, Jeremy. Edited by Clausewitz, Howard Dyer, London, Tsu. Oxford “What Swanson, von. Peter Gwynne. 2004. Edited Wars?” On War. Princeton War: 2005. by Wins p.143–148. 1976. Paret. Thomas. History. Sun Carl and Palaima, in 2005. Harriet The “Why Harriet in Big Edited and University New Do Edition. Wars Swanson, Questions Jonathan Cape. in translated Press. Begin?” by House. in Big UK. Michael Princeton, Random p.129–134. History. London, USA. Canada. Questions Jonathan Cape. UK. 1971 The University Townsend, University Art Charles. Press. of Press. War. Translated Oxford, 2005. Oxford, The by Samuel B. Grifth. UK. Oxford History of Modern War. Oxford UK. 15 1 THE A LG E R I A N WA R AND WA R : GUERRILLA D E C O L O N I Z AT I O N Global context The Algerian of 20th-century a many the War signicant war policies was of historic partially France relationship 1954–1962, guerrilla between decolonization a and and as war, such to in the helps nationalism, warfare with example developments. response as an the wars colonial the imperialism, 20th profound In strategy First, illustrate its France. highlights century and type for in of this and tactics both so effects section the doing warfare on we involved guerrilla explore for both also all in and the those Algeria examine ghting regular brutal and the guerrilla forces, nature involved, of this including non-combatants. Timeline 1945 VE Day celebration riots and massacres May 1954 November FLN launches rst coordinated attacks 1955 Philippeville massacre August 1956 September Battle of Algiers begins FLN leaders, including Ben Bella, taken October from airliner and imprisoned 1958 Battle of the Frontiers January–July Pied-noir protesters storm May government oces De Gaulle comes to power and visits June Algeria September French Fifth Republic declared FLN forms government in exile November General Challe takes command of French December troops in Algeria 16 C H A P T E R 1 : T H E A L G E R I A N W A R : G U E R R I L L A W A R A N D D E C O L O N I Z A T I O N 1959 De Gaulle calls for self-determination September in Algeria 19 60 Week of the Barricades; OAS begins terror January campaign 19 61 The Generals’ Putsch April French cease oensive operations; May FLN does not FLN and French government negotiate 19 61–19 62 at Evian 19 62 March Ceasere declared France ocially recognizes the July independence of Algeria ▲ Front de Libération Nationale (FLN) ghters captured by Foreign Legion troops 17 1.1 Guerrilla war Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ How does guerrilla war dier from conventional war? ➔ What factors lead a movement to use guerrilla war? ➔ What challenges does guerrilla war pose for occupying forces? Key concepts ➔ Change ➔ Perspective What is guerrilla warfare? The term was originally of Spain “guerrilla” in involved Tactical, refers workers are one nor both appear The very the on and until the the a and an are are and not ghters to for all “little involves closely war” Napoleon’s established restrict regular in its of nal the related and occupation irregular regular forces army. in and soldiers They most the Such phases end as grows ghters Mao’s “hit of the a and model the case size Guerrilla run” grow and may China or Algeria, of wear may in to farmers struggle process in in belonging be base. movement was war to as can seldom identiable guerrilla by ( FLN) of next. any guerrilla stages recognized themselves a army. later Nationale widely Guerrilla in success, wrote varies depending 20th-century In these Guerrilla will cost or and independence control. bring of voluntary, the will their the and continuum, sophistication. however, revolutionary war of local This generally overall not is no but advantage enjoy can a be as is the instead longer Relying in war as and do not pushed European one of endurance kind of decisive the on the to and support, limitless a enemy benets the depending seemingly goals. concentrated harass worth they political have from strategy engage populations armies movement’s movements demise, withdraws. guerrilla the liberation, forces pursuing soldiers. or on guerrilla cases, about power training, potential 18 generally armies. organization to the late occupying military word resistance had. strategy the that coerced It goals that achieves Libération nuisance. battle Spanish with concentrated small and reach national colonial forces Zedong Minh of it small de not Guerrilla Many political they similar starts Viet century. struggle moment As Mao Front would the Spanish professional are strength Vietnam. which to generally engagements. in and from the 19th ongoing full-time, uniforms, units early to movements. “Irregular” or an strategic guerrilla ofcial, the in comes applied logical, on formal supply of although C H A P T E R awful, extreme weaknesses an adequate the second supply half movements forces with bent by on of tactics to of from can the be and or tactics, for involved. are given munitions capture various by to can the both funds for weapons. many considered also operations. forces to a Chief difculty was often rather ironic among in for of W A R the obtaining overcome sponsorship such the to are that bear on are the one of horric live in guerrilla those guerrilla can for the pay and just this arms fact, many movements The Viet any operate especially to lead to for obtain what governments, involving or Minh, tribesmen law, can the from augment many protection anti-guerrilla again of take furnish the which size can of Supply can by this part market constrained support, the forces of steal Muong rings enemy can by crime lightly they purpose. occupying more activity. will what many and small grown organized on they units with global illegitimate on guerrilla by conventional strengths atrocities These The key what generally the indistinguishable strain the of off states are of fewer often simplied opium of Attacks strength suspected sponsor really run is forces. and law to units schemes Not stealth. population. Recognizing access This psychological lead from rice the soldiers. is the forces fact, civilians forces movements restricting the in occupying sold and brought general guerrilla – before guerrilla guerrilla money-making liberation be This, receive example, on mobility guerrilla the with states withdraw against Many they from weapons drug on can but child weapons. century population, force of movements G U E R R I L L A liberation. Because general logistics units modern wealthier overwhelming. regular conscription guerrilla 20th and enemy guerrillas. guerrilla the rely strike the of the larger, designed armed in national Guerrilla forces the inherent 1 . 1 : tactics added and involve hardship non-combatants. Although forms of guerrilla war have been practised since the decolonization 19th century, it seemed to reach a zenith with the victory of Mao’s The global movement in the second people’s army over the Chinese Nationalists in 1949. Ever since Mao half of the 20th century toward so ably mobilized his initially meagre resources to conquer and rule independence for territories that had the third largest country in the world, using a well-honed model of been ruled as colonies of European revolutionary war, independence movements have been trying to states. The movement was especially emulate his example. This approach enjoyed success in the period of prevalent in South Asia and Africa during mid-20th-century decolonization – a success that has been difcult to this period. Decolonization could be duplicate since. A ne example of the success of guerrilla movements accomplished by either peaceful or against European colonizers can be found in the Algerian War of violent means. Independence often referred to simply as the Algerian War. 19 1 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S 20th-century guerrilla wars War Chinese Civil War, Guerrillas Communists Opponents Nationalists 1922–1949 Result Communists gained more and more suppor t, transforming the war into more of a conventional war. The communists won in 1949. French Indo-China War, Viet Minh France 1945–1954 Vietnam War, The Viet Minh forced the French colonial administration to quit the country in 1954. Viet Cong 1965–1973 USA , South With the help of regular soldiers from Nor th Vietnamese army Vietnam, the Viet Cong were able to force the USA from the country in 1973 and then defeated the South Vietnamese army in 1975. Algerian War, FLN France 1954–1962 After a bloody war, Algeria declared independence in 1962 with the FLN forming the new government. Afghan Resistance, Mujahadeen USSR 1979–1989 With American aid and after 10 years of guerrilla ghting, the Mujahadeen forced the Soviets from Afghanistan. This led to a civil war between Mujahadeen factions. Indonesian War of Republicans The Netherlands After four years of negotiation and ghting, the Independence, Netherlands recognized the independence of 1945–1949 Indonesia. Mau Mau Uprising (Kenya), Mau Maus (KCA) Great Britain 1952–1960 Although intensely violent, the revolt collapsed. Eventually the British administration would recognize an independent Kenya. Malaysian Insurgency, MNL A Britain 1948–1957 The guerrilla campaign was not widely suppor ted and was defeated by the British army. Britain recognized an independent Malaysia of its own accord in 1957. Cuban Revolution, 26th July Cuban national After a progressively more successful military 1957–1959 Movement army campaign, Castro’s guerrillas were able to force the surrender of the government forces. 20 1.2 Causes of the Algerian War Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ What role did socio-economic conditions play in the causes of the war? ➔ What inuence did the French defeat in Indo-China have on the outbreak of the Algerian War? Key concepts ➔ Cause ➔ Consequence ➔ Perspective Long-term causes Algeria had military and more take become campaigns control advantage governments culturally, of it also and and meant while that the by Muslims in the to 10% daily the of by many the the pied ways, resistance and the The rst two the at feared of world wars. reject On the the for of the 20th a the with rate. With by a of systems that a had century. on process military Some French campaigns European Algeria nine twice the was illnesses, declining inequalities population million that birth rate in was Algerian number country inequalities lay in were ten the the hands made worse times coming lower, years. In disenfranchisement cause expose French a and the of the Algerian of as these as to brought society to occupation wars government desire a term given to French settlers and descendants of French settlers in Algeria. French well pied noirs Literally meaning “black feet”, it was War employed. defeat was the As to French investment, attacks Muslim the came regime. poverty, tactics would the of long-term consequence there 19th of Muslims colonization, both and Economic of economic century social of wealth overrun as late colonial among humiliating hand, and the guerrilla impulses one values birth seen and The contradictory large. be the victory the 75% These being pattern can increasing. settlers France. of more Successive accompanying people, of of technology the series administratively part population with out, 90% both a exerted European guerrilla-style its native through France combination with was of integral with The million Muslim rationale half a Over population. this and broke Algeria an As opportunities. throughout settlers. the oods job Unemployment over high noirs disastrous settlers it possession 1840s. European discontent war underemployed. of more population Arabic. ran make 1870s Muslim time illiterate assimilate settlement, the settler and assimilation European aggravated By more the and territory, land to brought European the to colonial 1830s the cheap aimed resisted the over of attracted troops French the attempting assimilation natives a in break France was and to the the a the reected French with both in in society past brink and of 21 1 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y destruction. and power evident desire to A in to French Tunisia any to and for a The The French government from 1946 to deep in 1958. It was created by a constitution Marshall after the Second World War. would political a Aid a plunging prots be for war of from other were against of little friction ferocity that in a the which clear no War were era. The independence holdings saw mid-1950s. the and in vision less and She Republic after forced French Algeria. was than close 20 into would ended. to both In to different be On strictures – France while faced the French money – aid stumbled to fund another hand, the blood, of an war potential governments; and on that strikes, trying with one a Dependent debilitating the the in its recovery all reected liberation. ination, growth, had with by Fourth years high cost, granting inuence 1954. tempting the World economic sluggish glory, impulses the guided the 10 eventual the Algeria weighed the Indo-China. as the the post-Second in scene to typied perpetual and the policy 1945 in recapture contradictory Indo-Chinese political years her in soon her reconstruction exports as of in in to These relatively seen colonial that desire manifest with malaise period escalating to chaos a France. policy was control the underpin almost past fractured in economic in also was Morocco the governments Four th Republic past coherent impossible was colonial the maintain case, along there 19th-century reject longing tried But of W A R S this had keeping it. Shor t-term causes The end of the immediate outbreak Second cause nine years. May 1945 When This the the pieds event and noirs War the strong acted the as a fourth anticipated movements, Manifeste within visions a It from left-wing that the the fuelled The MTLD led most by older in war by was, and its Ahmed of The ( pied people involved at the number army – the of in pieds of would times be when expense revolting such Union equality it of against the 1945 the riots for Bella, law. the a A the Ulema, hybrid reverence the of for emerge, These of these two Democratic traditional from Organisation Algerian du autonomy independence would for Democratique Triumph aspirations. conditions nationalist and nationalism, Islamic branch nationalist a were many complete Ben were French violence combined militant economic as Movement and staged come. goal. strand Nazi settlers 6,000 become openly negotiated which agenda and to later, there and of nationalists European interests point surrender government, there the more the dead. would own traditional the Algerian poor the by a preceded the weeks part providing it Algerian French brutality sought 1945, social its as were which one The on – that most method based after FLN, encompassing were by some government, at of when the movement expression (MTLD) a (OS) state. of the and (UDMA) statehood Islam, was fractured French sides protecting orders nationalist found Liberties 22 side, marking soldiers later: French viciousness Algérien favoured for government. the Algerian three seen confronted subsided nationalists, the government’s metropolitan The of turn years Although arm in be although violent French the nine Algerian organizations. were and can War, Celebrations turned violence revealed Algerian noirs and War Algerian in demonstrations Muslim, World the by Germany noirs). of France. Spécial eventually aspirations Arabs, income C H A P T E R differentials and the accompanying inaccessibility 1 . 2 : of C A U S E S land O F T H E A L G E R I A N W A R ownership. Class discussion While Arab various Muslims Berber aspirations. groups to Outside the to a The the in of in in at nationalists. the increase disaster at Dien the Unlike in the Viet the and, It a interests Phu, or Minh, timing in with two the nationalist main nationalist leadership of the lustre, that was FLN related? Had there been economic prosperity across Algerian society, would there United be after were began the very States possible. withdrawal guerrilla-style FLN of plan French few and the French army between March and attacks to Dien Bien Phu Site of a battle between the Viet Minh for a military similarities May 1954. This Viet Minh victory drove the French from Indo-China and led to the par tition of the country into Nor th and South Vietnam. situations. the How are nationalist and economic issues taken opportunity the shortly the might subsequent historic been outbreak having ghting anything Algeria, though Algerians, there have been a nationalist movement? their a had of these later, and attacks even the grew present occupation of group collective though there non-colonial war. years as Phu to Although in only three of the role Bien of important concept seemed seemed causes an the coordinated Bien two also example Dien French marked to majority throughout played 1949 also the balance Mao’s defeat throughout between also up were led Korea. Indo-China Algerian ● FLN 1954. China French to organization standstill from need inuences hostilities control ethnicities The within guide made did not have any particular ideological orientation. ● While the China, ● While more ● ● Minh FLN had Indo-China difcult French were Viet the law no Algeria was ofce colonial and inefciencies Nevertheless, This it the FLN the a start of was a a remote of a major from part in power, France Indo-China, French of colony. There conscripts Metropolitan The combination and thus war of in no there Algeria. France Indo-China, military, were but in such foreign bureaucratic War. the of of close. conscripts use ofcials. judged the sponsorship integral Algerian number of the been by ofce the use on an had managed in conducted marks Algeria the considered Indo-China the aid. geographically restrictions therefore, 1954 was such support, prohibited such was whereas to enjoyed no time to be coordinated Algerian right bomb and on attacks 1 November across Algeria. War. 23 1.3 C ombatants Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ What were the relative strengths and weaknesses of the two sides? ➔ What role did foreign powers play in the war? Key concepts ➔ Signicance ➔ Perspective The FLN The FLN and organized the commanders district. its This military country in each wing into six Wilaya included the military were military Armée de Libération zones – responsible operations, but Nationale Wilayas. for all also The FLN (ALN) FLN activity recruiting, in the political SPAIN Philippeville MEDITERRANEAN SEA Tizi Collo Ouzou Böne Bougie ALGIERS W3 La Calle Constantine Tenes Palestro A R H A D Kabylie Setif W2 Sakiet- Orléansville Mostaganem Sidi Youssef Rummel Melouza IS EN RS A U O Chélif Oran Boghari Batna Mascara Tébessa Nemours W4 Tiaret TUNISIA Sidi Bel W1 Abbès AURÈS Tlemcen Biskra Djelfa Saïda Marnia Nemencha Thélepte N W5 E I R A H A S Redeyef S A W6 L T A Touggourt Aïn Sefra MOROCCO 0 Approximate demarcations Main between ▲ 24 The Algerian War Wilayas in 1954 guerrilla regions 200 km C H A P T E R indoctrination, inghting these districts, structure for landscape The Central Wilaya to a these 1954 The the further in the would borders the of end fractured of the the its 15 000 leak the the 1957 to 20 havens into full-time ghters Morocco grew 000 of Algeria to good were of cells. 8,000 When the FLN 1959. reaching 35 the four-man as FLN by war with the guerrillas the troops losses FLN 000 the each the maintained fell on army war sealed strength heavy cells, battalions, unit they the however, throughout The havens For full-time The rugged war safe this, and French tribal of goals. dramatically combat inicting by into 000 guerrillas. large Wilayas. After 15 Morocco needed. states, the varied a times of operational roughly and at these companies, common had of and C O M B A T A N T S organizational portion From Ethnic effectiveness across and divided other formations continuously, effective activities operations around a part-time as ghting ung Morocco. the Tunisia French fell fairly or an was sections, they neighbouring aggressive spent most these intimidation. the composition ghters into the of that both FLN and limited proved operations being In in direct ghters FLN. they Tunisia and attacks of often movement strength safe with more the coordinate company progressed. troops was combined fortunes in guerrilla ignorant 110-man and but assassinations Wilayas neighbouring November cell the Command in attempted each a and sheltering 1 taxation, within 1 . 3 : in and the off. the With FLN, Tunisia and 1962. Class discussion What are the advantages and disadvantages of having the FLN leadership located outside Algeria in Tunisia? ▲ ALN soldiers from Wilaya 4, 1962 legionnaires Soldiers in the French Foreign Legion, The French an elite formation within the French The French outset stayed bag. of of the war, constant Elite the forces units ghting conscripts and in Algeria but for this the such as numbered number duration the strength, irregular some quickly of the the bulk formations of of rose conict. legionnaires but 74 and the 000 to soldiers around The force 400 was paratroopers French sympathetic forces at the 000 a mixed were were Algerians – army. The Legion, created in the 1830s, and the core accepts volunteers from foreign states, but also contains substantial numbers of French citizens. reservists, harkis. harkis Algerian Muslims who fought for the French during the Algerian War. 25 1 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y Throughout the W A R S war the French had difculty manning its army Class discussion in Algeria. Conscription What may have motivated the harkis to unpopular ght for the French against the FLN? about and war. 15% of leadership Increasing increased ability with the the and their The it size was crucial likely of was the not for but The arrogance constant on in to and divide the rest the morale of during the its of army the that only quantities. may morale between an training months for the fact made sufcient 27 nothing sharp and strain available did so soldiers conscripts it more commitment professional always force, it. unpopular, troop of service decreased a always up and of the attendant disillusion of made length size was the have or ghting elite with its French units growing forces. Ad vantages and disad vantages of conscription Ad vantages Disad vantages Increases the pool from which to draw soldiers Soldiers may lack motivation Makes the size of the army predictable Subjects the military to all the social factions in a country Can spread the burden of military service across social Can breed resentment in the population as a whole as a classes and groups form of governmental control and interference Can integrate the military into society more thoroughly Military losses are felt throughout the population Increases civic par ticipation and sense of civic Constant turnover of troops can make training expensive responsibility Requires close cooperation between military and civilian authorities. Equipment The FLN The FLN and weapons were hunting all. on the from ries At While this open form of of After with 1956 made the from The the like eld terrorist Algiers and to – to small weapons cast-offs, 350 small them Algerian initially begin of grenades purchase furnish French arms War to with not and about funds however, despite mostly Algiers short and efforts arms weapons with arms. Muslims translate to stolen ow to from stop consequently and into it. any Egypt These keeping the small. units of the small Wilayas arms bazookas troops. Mass animals, were were light virtually transport small fairly including vehicles well equipped machine unheard too was and the rare, of with age-old guns. unless most form of feet. activities required these would, did bombs World kinship this war, the constantly war gun sponsor Egypt’s the were the Second both struggle, even French – in – national of were of machine lacked War-era and limited movement FLN’s cities later ALN, throughout sources Material regular captured a FLN’s World the outbreak points FLN and aid. mortars of much however, the arm, the occasional the market Artillery, troop the operations Second movement 26 variety sources FLN At various and with armaments, size a at practical other military kinds. stage Nasser sympathy and her all assembled gathered in of were that concentrated different types manufactured of in on urban ordinance hidden targets that bomb in were large used “factories”. in C H A P T E R 1 . 3 : C O M B A T A N T S Foreign suppor t for guerrillas War Guerrillas Suppor ter (s) Algeria FLN Egypt Vietnam Viet Minh and Viet Cong USSR, China Afghanistan Mujahadeen USA Angola MPL A Cuba Nicaragua, 1974–1979 Sandinistas Cuba Nicaragua, 1981–1987 Contras USA Pakistan Mukti Bahni India The French The French and they far more Algeria than it had with parachute the had in belly for that that the the help more Smaller support could or days the in French around use in a the the of armour forces the Algeria T-6 to and army arms terrain were of mechanization carriers and achieved were rode the into war could truck to ground P-47 in some battle the shift respond provide Texan The there of that Small Algeria. was forces end battleeld could in While modern and weapons Indo-China By FLN. Indo-China. airborne gunships as in on transport. helicopters such well-equipped French helicopters. helicopter a bear half-tracks, to lacked the of to effective Tanks, even aircraft early helicopter of transport country the French of part implies available much situations. as than far were this troop-carrying 120 the a widely drops, of about around Algeria all Indo-China. were mobility Algeria in standardized allowed transport The units brought in French troops emergent forces with Thunderbolts. 27 1.4 Strateg y and tactics Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ How did French strategy change over time? Why did it change? ➔ How did FLN strategy change over the course of the war? ➔ What role did materials play in the strategy of each side? Key concepts ➔ Continuity ➔ Change The FLN As previously and in survival the early overall more civilian – FLN’s both in European FLN from civilians and effort stuck it French the the not and strategy urban of the the of to marginalize equally the ALN strategy was phases. to of and the the involved bombing among avoid the a sympathetic Algeria. This terror retaliation, Muslim stage As administrations the inicting French alienate “offensive” guerrilla protect sympathizers parallel administered brutal further nor people that administrators. create brutal controlling outposts suspected ghters dictated demonstrate to French survives demonstrations small noir it FLN partly administer These targeted pied goal sought to would in noir. always tried the reached guerrilla FLN if equipped centres the with concerns attacking French succeeds meagrely effectively pied patrols, provoke was doctrine armed did end whom never movement the Material as and believed as of campaigns the to goal could Muslim through guerrilla that coordination operational better To Terror leadership model, tactics non-military far a the war. population leaders worked The and targets. villages FLN the convoys Muslim local of administration ambushing The indeed territory. population in days strategy than French the mentioned, was of the which the population. Mao’s such, effort against revolutionary main confrontation with larger, formations. The French French were forces comprised countless posts Algeria mostly spread and restrict was encountered “paras” search FLN were modied 28 in and of out in across in the destroy and strength, or divided reservists movement own later were war in when missions. and the mobile to two deal airborne main conscripts country. inuence the trucked into in their with and These reserve forces elite deployed were If forces the to This their in observe enemy legionnaires threat. used Sector were posts sector. of the types. and strategy mobility was during C H A P T E R Taking to heart Mao’s famous doctrine that “the guerrilla 1 . 4 : must S T R A T E G Y A N D T A C T I C S move Class discussion amongst drain were areas the that people sea. Whole relocated now anyone to a sh “free there, swims villages camps. became found as – These re the sea”, eventually in that had the to French 600 villages which they the some abandoned zones” reasoning in 000 and to Algerians – surrounding French be sought would re on Why do nationalist movements tend to be fractured? How does this aect the post-colonial administration of successor states? guerrillas. TOK discussion To what extent did the French learn from their experience in Indo-China? What does this tell us about the degree to which we learn from history? ▲ French soldiers work with Algerians. Why was it impor tant to the French to work with Muslim Algerians? Elaborate material defensive from the lines two were designed neighbouring to states cut of the ow Morocco of men and and Tunisia. 29 1.5 Operations Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ To what extent was the Morice Line eective? ➔ What role did technology play in the French ability to ght the FLN? ➔ What was the signicance of the Battle of Algiers? ➔ What role did terror play in the war? Key concepts ➔ Continuity ➔ Change ➔ Signicance 1955 The attacks and government they failed Lacking could a of to major supply, no such Algeria was bolstered retaliation FLN for to of 12 the was of made on civilians, the by the The practice of holding all members of a FLN population responsible for the actions of the enemy. a few of its members. the violence 30 and evident the principle city military forces of obtain in of of pieds claimed estimates. throughout was it the was meted 1,200 had victims type of war out and by both that sides was unit its to and activities. fell an on guerrillas had left, retaliation estimates, an example both brunt on In pressure The discourage the the fell. FLN was by by in civilian guerrillas own adopted bore of the into non-combatants wars murdered. by attacks brutal on deep emerged discourage their French and and pattern often retaliation designed civilians to that the bit retaliatory time been clear end, campaign guerrilla a it of French paratroopers about put the The that success, for. state bombings made brutal It hoped a posts some assassination both when By responsibility the a noirs. other 1955 noirs, This of provoke would pieds and such To This information FLN the this August collective Again, the so. wars, had 1955. Paris army with the sending tactics Philippeville. and in campaign would FLN that into supporters. vicious terrorize hardship outside collective responsibility to and Algeria, a stations, met actions, remain guerrilla attacks use support, Muslim French 000 FLN and FLN most would such in the weapons small would police attacks that government and presence in the to 1954 conducted As FLN the The suspected 1955. civilians much descended 123 then who and limited 70 these uprising throughout military coerce Algerian state was France leadership. during This of who army, that FLN against French effort sponsor targeted Although general limitations. Algeria support the mostly, their 1954 buildings. the part legionnaires the November trigger infrastructure had 1 both French support of it. of and for Because European C H A P T E R and Algerian radicalized theirown FLN in populations, the moderates terror greater the on campaigns Philippeville both sides. against massacres Pied noir Algerians, and gangs who in 1 . 5 : O P E R A T I O N S aftermath conducted turn joined the numbers. 1956 The French during FLN, administration 1956. It sometimes same time campaign transport tactic This in to that it In FLN some such some previously into as ways, enjoyed support approach ghting a million 30 000 irregular, became, last to in all longer, in terms a conduct and the to by in in out the some military helicopter ghters, 10 to a at alleviate FLN regular the while aggressive forces years rely major force during Egypt. a later. less on guerrilla the The despite By reached blow that operations which in issues, Algeria signicant to an used removed the to Vietnam supply mobility to year. against the the 400 FLN, France a force receiving end 1956, This which was of of 000. lost using half about question side sustaining will leaders, guerrillas. ghters. of root government occupations, support gave strength dealt both thereby plagued strength guerrilla as material the soldiers and adopt anti-guerrilla the Nasser’s over its be military coordinated half use by Algeria supporting reforms paratroops areas and by imprisoned and throughout actively supplemented allowed their efforts of economic would roads to from French was remote only continued however, limited States seemed, infrastructure and legionnaires United its suspected villages, approach move the Helicopters, target. whole which intensied those implementing grievances. The moved could adequate continue war. The Battle of Algiers In 1956–1957, cities, most “Battle of attacks by and the to gain to support betrayal used the to is this began to became opinion more danger of far in in a more and the rely more As more began to By by hoped is you that it need of French terrorizing to extract out French against moving and The torture most as this French the FLN military and France, The terror possibility city. torture, in turn The the women, move rooting the on known a FLN using eventually Algiers. the to leadership because people. against of attention such in series military. FLN city greater a war Algiers. including French the the capital, international fact in moved the was the hide information, to cities, population ghters FLN guerrillas, by the The harder the FLN more support. is Algiers” reprisals war the notably war. fact public ▲ French ocers interrogate an Algerian woman. What diculties could French soldiers face in obtaining information? 31 1 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS L TA Thinking skills O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S The Morice Line and the Battle of the Frontiers When France granted independence to Morocco and Tunisia in Alan Dershowitz, a legal scholar, has made 1956and1957, it inadvertently supplied the FLN with a valuable the argument that the limited use of tor ture resource – a place to hide. To neutralize this resource, the French can be necessary in democratic states. military constructeda barrier between Tunisia and Algeria. The Morice If tor ture is going to be administered Line, as it became known, consisted of an electried fence, reinforced as a last resor t in the ticking-bomb with anti-personnel mines, artillery and 80 000 soldiers patrolling its case, to save enormous numbers of length. A similar line attempted to insulate Algeria from Morocco. lives, it ought to be done openly, with Despite the complexity of the line, the FLN continued to launch attacks accountability, with approval by the from both Tunisian and Moroccan sides of the lines. One such attack president of the United States or by a led to a French air strike on the Tunisian town of Sakiet. The FLN Supreme Cour t justice. continued Source: Interview with Wolf Blitzer, CNN, 4 March 2003. http://edition.cnn. com/2003/L AW/03/03/cnna.Dershowitz the Morice the war French faced 1 to build Line itself, and, it the a force signicant although posed military with up a it never question would question of conventional of need played whether to whether be military a signicant the Morice permanent. ornot force Algeria Line Again, was behind role in and the France worth was such an What does Dershowitz mean by a ongoing effort. “ticking-bomb case”? The 2 presence of sympathetic border countries is a dilemma faced by Do you agree with Dershowitz? Why or many counter-insurgency efforts. The Ho Chi Minh trail in Vietnam why not? that 3 ran from North Vietnam to South Vietnam through neighbouring Would Dershowitz advocate a similar Laos and Cambodia would frustrate the American effort throughout use of tor ture by authoritarian thewar and Evenin the lead to the disastrous invasion of Cambodia in 1971. regimes? Why or why not? 4 Does his justication for tor ture apply role to the French in Algeria? withsuch in early 21st theconicts support in century, both always such Iraq carry refuge and has played Afghanistan. with them the a signicant Efforts danger of to deal widening thewar. The ALN The French January increased to forces July efforts met 1958 to these – the bring arms efforts Battle across with a the series border of of the Frontiers. in the battle, from Tunisia. engagements The ALN from were losing Morice Line around 3,200 men a month early the French about 350. By The Morice Line was a for tied barrier July the ALN had lost about 20 000 and abandoned the attempt to move between Algeria and Tunisia designed to troops in signicant numbers across the border. keep FLN ghters and supplies in Tunisia from getting to Algeria. Guerrilla degree in campaigns to which Algeria was government noirs and control the plan, what seen a and by In who France as a the best left interests however, was intereststo A before in a force of would of Republic of of the should trusted ahead of constitution it him de De Gaulle army on to he was their president. part, was him him De birth not generals’ as as a control. would believed the pieds take French who The the the trusted trusted under about as of Gaulle squabbling. what brought rebel action someone political fall formed, the noirs remain the goals. insurgency conspiracy of The the conspired Gaulle. pieds as about be The further de to After Algiers stability. point, with off political tied could Algeria. stave circumspect and in Charles Algeria right 1958. one and was component political that France new May commanders At that and military France new important said himself be. FrenchFifth An man. believed the illustrated and resurrection formermilitary leader 32 they political fate administration Algeria. many wed of military civil to the Paris leading of traditionally political clearly in restricted was the act on Gaulle, those of the C H A P T E R ▲ 1 . 5 : O P E R A T I O N S French soldiers search for ALN ghters Technology and war: helicopters Experiments with ver tical take-o and landing aircraft unpredictability. In Algeria this potential was realized. had been ongoing throughout the post-First World War Once ground forces made contact with ALN troops, period, but a mass produced model was not available French airborne troops, generally 20 to a helicopter, until near the end of the Second World War. As a combat could be rapidly deployed, reinforced and evacuated vehicle, the helicopter began to come into its own as the situation dictated. By the end of the war, small during the Korean War, providing versatile extraction mobile reconnaissance ground units would track and of wounded soldiers from combat zones. The French locate ALN units and call in helicopter troops to engage believed they saw in the helicopter an answer to one of the enemy. Smaller helicopters armed with machine the chief problems that had plagued them in Indo-China guns could provide re suppor t to ground or airborne – their inability to transpor t troops on shor t notice to troops. In 1960 the French forces had 120 helicopters remote areas and then to extract them. The helicopter that were moving 21 000 troops in and out of combat freed the French of their dependence on road systems each month. The United States army would fur ther and meant they could match the guerrilla’s mobility and develop helicopter warfare in Vietnam. The Challe Plan A new French French destruction to Algeria of the and throughout that to the and east villages adjacent the of and it then territory manned by 1959. Challe 000 troops the from would harkis. this be the the of north the French Challe of of also and Challe’s move comparatively would the projects housing agriculture. capture sweeps operation through strategy renewal country long-term an of low-rent for was forces Plan of renewed brink military urban the and the new land ALN conduct phase secured The a to construction where these Challe, Algeria with hectares in strongest. Once in brought work as west, Maurice forces to such 250 the was countryside. swept points Plan from were FLN intended concentrate systematically to was reclamation was commander, brought Constantine the plan military initiatives was through for the complete, construction called weak, towns of strong increased naval 33 1 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y L TA patrols to W A R S intercept weapons shipments. The Challe Plan was largely a Thinking and research skills success. Ho Chi Minh, leader of the Viet Minh forces shrank The ALN steadily ghting units throughout and the Challe’s territory that they controlled offensive. and later Nor th Vietnam in its struggle against France and the United States, Terror attacks and the Week of the Barricades once said: Despite its weakness in Algeria, the FLN continued to launch terrorist You can kill ten of my men for every one attacks in France, making the cost of the war more evident to French of yours I kill, but even at these odds, civilians. Throughout the war there were some 42 000 terrorist attacks you will lose and I will win. in 1 Explain why Ho thought this to be true. who a 2 France, claiming appears temporary to 2,800 have success civilian seen in lives. Challe’s Such victory attacks over an endless conict. the process of De the affected FLN Gaulle in was de the also Gaulle, eld as acutely What disadvantages are there for aware that since 1945 decolonization was accelerating guerrilla forces in pursuing a strategy around the world and that, as a result, the age of European colonialism of attrition? was 3 waning. He decided to put the issue of Algerian independence Is Ho’s statement valid for all guerrilla or self-determination to a referendum, in both France and Algeria. wars? Why or why not? Believing 4 Research two other guerrilla wars, each the taken from a dierent region. Does Ho’s noirs claim apply to these conicts? passed de streets and took and to pieds Algerian had Challe them and, the Gaulle refused down the betrayed of their horror noirs, de to of take own the Gaulle them, action accord French set pieds about a noirs set against week military up barricades them. later. The The referendum commanders negotiating the in pieds in future of Algeria an state. attrition In military terms, the doctrine that seeks to weaken the enemy by depleting and destroying their resources, human and material, to the point that they surrender or otherwise abandon the ght. This in development the cause seemed of near Henry not win. this and illustrates national defeat, dormancy especially As of that it was the frightened threatening Kissinger A an given would guerrilla important independence. army prospect de Gaulle the later wins of say, it it and military if point Even “A about though aring the rest presence up of of conventional does not lose”. guerrilla the after a period France. the FLN army De war insurgency This in loses Gaulle was Tunisia. if it does understood Class discussion Keeping Kissinger ’s words in mind, what that determined cost appeared that to be Algeria was not never-ending worth guerrilla the cost. For de Gaulle war. would it have taken for the FLN to “lose”? There were still difcult negotiations ahead. Complicating matters What about other guerrilla forces in other was the fact that the FLN did not, in the end, speak for all Algerian guerrilla wars? nationalists, of Algerian including support Algiers in and known bomb with 34 fact some of the the attacks both 60 who 000 and of it shootings Algerian Muslims in seems the de in military ofcers Organisation and served the not le military complicated remained, who noirs, though rank some as further pieds 1961, conscripted noirs a Muslims the a the Finally, a military. support in Algeria of 1961, and army as to With coup much France, the in of desperate terrorist The thousands loyal short-lived (OAS). French of degrees, deadly secrète throughout the hundreds French staged formed and the varying with army. l’armée by the pieds organization OAS France their conducted until 1962, targets. 1.6 Eects Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ What was de Gaulle’s reasoning in agreeing to negotiations with the FLN? ➔ What were the eects of the war on French society? ➔ How did the war aect the pieds noirs and the harkis? Key concepts ➔ Continuity ➔ Change ➔ Perspective As in all wars, the Counting the especially difcult records the of dead their troop far own civilian a between is also in a immediate difcult a guerrilla strength from easy. casualties challenge civilian and is in war. the caused by even soldiers this is is, not reasons, interests those also the by be so in form all armies which both of the a to enemy accurate counting for morale in civilian conict blurred. becomes keep under-report value Counting denition, casualties. and seldom sides guerrilla of wars makes propaganda in always the of enemy. more in task Guerrilla over-report can was political security There and and necessary It and purposes. for effect and and over-reporting deaths when Accurate is the line census L TA likewise is casualties propaganda the most dead Thinking skills data Compare and contrast the perspectives available. below on the eects of the Algerian War. Algeria, from 500 French years a by all 000 military remained the After time. camps were for The of legacy of others, of the the it as a “the pieds of for 40 harki was War wounded 1962, who and it after it ● FLN ● pieds-noirs ● French military ● Harkis the in the conducted suspected the range war. had Estimates in FLN 1962, there reprisals as many France in the to French harkis the society also French ran it of terms to at of FLN These housed while Evian Accords An agreement signed on 18 March 1962 the housing poverty. 30% mass the France. and at a many population, unemployment descendants put wake in ed was forced between the French government and the FLN. The agreement established a permanent ceasere in the Algerian War and the removal of French forces. It guaranteed the religious and proper ty rights of French citizens who remained in In the an independent Algeria. 9.7%. is guerrilla the 000 in records, cofn”, from chronic 53 their Estimates 000. of the 000 to power ghting on conict. Muslims 150 ed segregated Algerian stands or and to during Fear strain Some whole dead those to costly According came the noirs among and regime suitcase suffering power 000 FLN harkis. signicant years, 18 ended and million a deaths. against Accords noirs brutal campaign generally France example the a French this unemployment for both a the programmes. rate For to When of pieds putting social 2000, to choice Close refugees in of million retribution Evian the victory, and one was experienced fatalities the face of loyal migration to to 1954–1962. campaign put accounts, ambiguous. war brutality in that the For some, cause guerrilla of it stands national war can as an liberation. engender in sides. 35 Exam-style questions and fur ther reading Exam-style questions 1 Discuss the 2 Evaluate 3 Examine 4 To 5 Evaluate what the role the technology FLN’s the use extent the Algerian of use of did of in the guerrilla terror by both war sides socio-economic relative strengths outcome and of against in issues the in the the Algerian French Algerian Algeria weaknesses of Algeria. War. cause the in War. the war? combatants in War. Fur ther reading Evans, Press. Horne, Press. Martin. Oxford, Alistair. New Shepard, the 36 2011. 1977. York, Todd. Remaking Algeria: France’s Undeclared War. Oxford University UK. of A Savage War of Peace: Algeria 1954–1962. Viking USA. 2008. France. The Invention Cornell of Decolonization: University Press. The Ithaca, Algerian USA. War and Understanding the question An effective what the seem very are essay response question some broad, steps starts requires. but that they you with Paper 2 require can go a a thorough questions specic through to are and help understanding tricky in detailed make that of they response. this Here transition. Step 1: What are the command terms in the question? As the do. name You rst suggests, task is to a command determine term what is the what the question command term requires requires Command term you of to you. Task Analyse Break down the topic in order to bring out the essential elements or structure. Compare Give an account of the similarities between two (or more) items or situations, referring to both (all) of them throughout. A thematic approach is the best way to tackle these questions: this means that you must rst decide on which common components or themes you are going to conduct the comparison. These common components will be used to compare both elements of the question. Contrast Give an account of the dierences between two (or more) items or situations, referring to both (all) of them throughout. A thematic approach is the best way to tackle these questions: this means that you must rst decide on which common components or themes you are going to conduct the contrast. These common components will be used to contrast both elements of the question. Discuss Oer a considered and balanced review that includes a range of arguments, factors, or hypotheses. Opinions or conclusions should be presented clearly and suppor ted by appropriate evidence. Evaluate Make an appraisal by weighing up the strengths and limitations. Like compare and contrast questions, this command term requires you to identify the criteria against which you are evaluating the subject of the question. Examine Consider an argument or concept in a way that uncovers the assumptions and interrelationships of the issue. To what ex tent Consider the merits or otherwise of an argument or concept. This requires you to examine multiple perspectives on the argument or concept. Opinions and conclusions should be presented clearly and suppor ted with appropriate evidence and sound argument. Step 2: What concepts apply to the question? This course explores six major historical concepts: ● Continuity ● Cause ● Perspective ● Change ● Consequence ● Signicance Because sense these that approach concepts of your concepts they an are exam apply to response. concepts you central question, the the therefore, means chosen. to IB components question. This have are important These that You do history in you IB must concepts each not decide then paragraph need to curriculum, assessment. which form should address all it makes When the you these focus refer the of to the concepts; 37 SS S K I L L S S E C T I O N in fact, cause and one and can or two are usually consequence be considered or as sufcient. continuity a pair in Some and some of the change, concepts, tend to go such as together cases. Step 3: What curriculum topics and content are being assessed? Each world history ● topics ● prescribed ● suggested One way content” you be to learn named referred the these. to refer this to is The the learn, material in effects of and stated causes important content are elements must question “long- explicitly short-term these you required and the at The the as “causes you studying is divided into: examples. what in that content look are topic of thing and is that “topics” therefore your the For you to of a a examples” is content” studied in a question question could explore how can explicitly 20th-century can you understand be example, You war “prescribed “prescribed wars”, causes” and “suggested need curriculum. 20th-century that “topics” and response. 20th-century short-term in any question in is whereas on explicitly war, the and as long- and choose. which topics and prescribed requires. Step 4: Does the question require discussion of more than one region? Paper you the 2 to focuses exam. from You and For First can than use a used Second you to to of the it in a each than World perfectly Europe the a use balanced from some two your regions. wars, the two that wars different of in fashion. but Remember examine as require map examples question, causes to Pacic to often the cross-regional wars the will on region. are acceptable and in any one War on sure region requiring question shown be answering more Second Questions as questions, in questions is history. regions, discuss region answering War these examine and region, world different and one answer when World one region than War different Step 5: one require be from choose more World comparative events you example, from the If more can questions the on examine each causes of wars. What wars are you going to use to address the question? The curriculum wars. Rather, concepts, it topics understanding examine the exams, 38 the previous so guide does requires and the choose You steps. the stipulate you prescribed question question. four not that is use content. choosing need to you This the that detail you study 20th-century means wars understand Remember, examples that any and the will war(s) depth understand are in specic wars that that the any to study last best as it step help in you applies important depth the and in to IB detail. 2 THE FA L K L A N D S / M A LV I N A S THE FA I L U R E OF WA R : D I P LO M A CY Global context The Falklands/Malvinas of uncertainty in the midst spearheaded Party. high for of a by both major Deregulation Argentina and military Junta that destruction of supporters. The against its was took left-wing own as unrest by an one a The time resulted and its “dirty war” citizens. aims and of the and the hard-line the Thatcher natural force the 1979 of against t with US to as Ronald to made it lurched invasion brought Reagan power common policy coming to a brought in the cause states also anti-communist The of détente communist foreign the Junta. up Soviet had Reagan Reagan’s Argentina’s heat anti-communist States. world. to The election a terror began decade. halt with their War last in United labour key its Afghanistan a in unpopular of Cold into was Conservative organizations was a restructuring privatization social at Britain Thatcher’s ruled result came economic Margaret unemployment, strife. conict combatants. around seemed stance conict of would choose. Timeline 1982 Argentina begins military preparations 12 January Britain develops military plans in case 8 March of invasion Argentine scrap metal merchants arrive in 19 March South Georgia and plant Argentine ag HMS Endurance arrives in South Georgia 24 March with 24 Royal Marines Britain sends three submarines to the 29 March South Atlantic 31 March Britain asks US to mediate with Argentina Argentine forces invade Falkland/ 2 April Malvinas Islands United Nations pass Resolution 502 3 April demanding Argentine withdrawal British task force sets sail for the 5–9 April South Atlantic US Secretary of State Alexander Haig 8 April begins mediation European Economic Community (EEC) 10 April imposes economic sanctions on Argentina 22 April British forces recapture South Georgia British task force arrives in the South Atlantic 25 April Royal Navy sinks Argentine submarine Organization of American States (OAS) 28 April Sante Fe votes to suppor t Argentina in dispute 39 2 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S US formally suppor ts Britain in dispute 30 April Britain proclaims Total Exclusion Zone (TEZ) 1 May Royal Navy sinks ARA General Belgrano Air war begins 2 May 4 May Argentine air force sinks HMS Sheeld British forces land on San Carlos 21 May Argentine air force sinks HMS Ardent 12–29 May Battle of Fitzroy 8 June 11–14 June Argentina surrenders ▲ 40 Battle of Goose Green Battle of Stanley 14 June The wreckage of an Argentine armoured vehicle destroyed during the Falklands/Malvinas War 2.1 Causes of the Falklands/Mal vinas War Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ To what extent was both Argentine and British policy toward the Falkland/ Malvinas Islands ambiguous? ➔ To what extent were the actions of both Argentina and Britain inuenced by domestic concerns? Key concepts ➔ Cause ➔ Consequence ➔ Perspective Long-term causes Located in coast South of the South group of sheep farming. islands, occupied leaving When claim not the home the to but won islands, necessarily Ocean 2,000 France, none for her some with a people, Spain a committed miles them to the the Great deal stretch from of in of km) are a off in have enthusiasm, the 18th in While the even century. 1816, the the rocky involved Britain Spain Malvinas. occupation (480 Islands mostly and great 50-year independence calling 300 Falkland/Malvinas about unoccupied Argentina to the Historically, islands, them Atlantic America, she laid British islands, were which they Class discussion regarded as having government edgling control was South over not about American the continuously negligible islands occupied strategic to have republic. in by 1833, the its A or economic foreign small from British, policy British which value, time although dictated force they the the British by Why is civilian occupation an impor tant a reasserted have aspect in a country’s claim to a territory? been Argentines have TOK discussion never relinquished predating and the By need 1981, Junta restore Junta for ve order to on as regime. 30 000, pressure 150 base the years, their important had years. during the and a far all been The case and territory. upon for It is which war in immediate these both 1982. events, the Argentines There background were, factors time ruled elements estimates as of put the was increasingly political the as an power such anyone known Argentina by took deep and eventually Some of What role does history play in a country’s claims to territory? What are the strengths and weaknesses of basing claims on history? Junta right collectively within to considered. repress intellectuals the more be claims some would some to by Argentina was power war British however, that the their used left – who a coup designed instability. its was of suspected this compounded by a Junta to of “dirty This severe the authoritarian political disappeared”. military Ideologically, extensive unions, victims “the in unpopular parties, A committee or council that rules a country. The term often applies to military rulers of Latin American countries. criticizing war” as extreme high social economic 41 2 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y crisis, stemming thataquick W A R S from patriotic crippling war foreign would help debt. The galvanize Junta public calculated opinion behind thegovernment. In terms regimes power the of in was most was broader foreign Argentina, dependent important Antarctica. policy considered on control position The 1959 aims, that of upon the the the South which Antarctic Junta, position many control which previous Argentina Atlantic. such Treaty, and of as a Geographically, depended essentially Antarctic Treaty internationalized and demilitarized the Antarctic, meant that Argentina A treaty by which the signatories pledge would have to look elsewhere more authority for an anchor in the South Atlantic. As to keep the Antarctic a demilitarized Chile asserted over Tierra del Fuego (a group of islands and nuclear weapons-free zone and to off the southern tip of South America separated from the mainland cooperate in the promotion of scientic by the Straits of Magellan), the Falklands/Malvinas became vital to inquiry in the Antarctic. Argentina’s relations position with both anti-communist settling of in its the northern president accounts South with Atlantic. In neighbours Ronald Britain Reagan, over the 1980, and the with the improving USA, time and seemed its new right for a Falklands/Malvinas. L TA Research and thinking skills As we have seen, the Falklands/Malvinas are not the only disputed territories in the world. Choose one of the territories from the list below and answer the following questions. 1 What are the arguments for each side’s claim of ownership? 2 What steps have been taken to solve the problem: war, negotiation, third-par ty arbitration? 3 What is the probability that the situation will escalate into a war? Justify your answer. ● Arunachal Pradesh—India and China ● Cyprus—Greece and Turkey ● Kuril Islands—Japan and Russia ● Ogaden—Somalia and Ethiopia ● Hans Island—Denmark and Canada Economic war. to instability Prime ght Minister ination widespread also played Margaret through a role austerity privatization, in Thatcher’s the measures anti-union British economic that legislation decision policies, would and to go to designed involve higher taxation, privatization caused deep divisions in the country. These policies led to a sharp rise in The economic practice of selling unemployment in Britain in the years leading up to the Falklands War. government assets to private owners. Thatcher Reagan a hard Irish line austerity 42 fervent against the the measures, with her a States’ USSR, Army against permanent anti-communist United necessitated protect a a the Republican sanctions turn, was and (IRA) Argentina prisoners, Apartheid however, regime meant re-evaluation armed forces. diplomatic and approach of Such solution to to in the she in staunch the Cold Falklands did not South downsizing what a the the Falklands Ronald she conict took and economic Thatcher’s military, British of While support Africa. re-evaluation the supporter War. could which, determined question in realistically that needed to C H A P T E R be found. The leaseback, be in most administered practical sense, government British workable which by it and citizens the would While to untenable included in appeared a O F to to be T H E F A L K L A N D S / M A LV I N A S some form Argentina, solution some once the C A U S E S belong such unacceptable became were solution islands Britain. was 2 . 1 : seemed hardliners in representatives negotiations with but to the of would make the of W A R British the islands’ Argentine government. Britain did not initiate Thatcher planned concerns did Thatcher’s lead for the else. British a after out. coal Nothing challenge This, the to This to conict, and her is and also be she many As in to and the in because but the rst her of domestic woman a to reputation would or when was career would that crisis. governance Falklands that say opposition Thatcher Thatcher partially the to forging later that sovereignty of support, approach bombings cannot response was criticism suggested image we public considered. state, to IRA past for bolster unyielding and the therefore, Thatcher’s western British however, to approach strikes in war and, dictate must industrialized broke Minister. conict the help uncompromising war from use indeed personality large, an the in a to the evident as Prime back down anywhere emerge largely sovereignty The ability of a country to act independently of any outside authority. it. Short-term causes Although negotiations attempted once and the a at again in pressure 1982. the member of Argentina’s the This his the was not, British early wanted Had he was diplomatic that by small The in to recalled March do South Argentine time. ice of Marines force. deal him to to military no sense entice taking to hide force 1976 his to was 1982, anti-leftist the the to a what began into by one. a preparations. question in Galtieri military British The abandon Malvinas that but the and government. Reagan the dispute, pressure to of Galtieri, administration. suggesting the decided US situation Galtieri fervent been down General from critics to for to domestic a had broke situation. was the they Junta, Junta secrecy, solution had the He enough of the left-wing preparations made Junta force 1982. strong the it to of military against any use navy 1982, They The patrol they the vessel confronting aboard, The a British, for their in the Argentina, the party, part, was to failed It seems means and from the greeted provoke to little a the Stanley, from full to of another to the the effort go for British leave to when be capital Argentine genuine to British island the soon South and the the notify refusing Endurance by on opportunity dispatch Argentines made merchants the merchants and Endurance were metal Junta deliberately silence of evict small however, to response HMS to the transported ag British scrap gave seemed travelled planting so. Argentine Georgia, Falklands/Malvinas, Instead ruling involving island, government, the the dispute second asked just to deteriorating to settlement century, action. disputed when, great solution, 1982, military ahead. not wanted a 20th members endeared Military a the With 1981 war” stance amid Falklands/Malvinas in decided however, ally. 1982 from “dirty ideological bond Junta, Junta a hard-line of directed a early from on points leader leading A various of Georgia. Royal occupation to defuse the 43 2 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y South Georgia incident. intelligence, suggested preparing take to indicating picture that the a of Junta out It on 2 both they Did the ordered seem, want that to with to by Or and clear on with with that of the time the in was the was like of Atlantic, a Believing, South complete as Atlantic, the military already South anything action. to Argentine Britain action of way faulty that with plan its they most essence Falklands/Malvinas were impression in a actions and to of the were unclear in to as wanted did, in on be in carried the situation. war as that it the to lack wanted the quo. was of but this was situation. table and hard to it the in the clarity from the the the to war was avoid. the stall for did, opted South abandoning bolstered urgency relationship Argentines When an islands the of was to the proceeded, became response government sense preparations they status military, Malvinas? resolving this clarity Did negotiating lease on Britain uncertainty seriously a of start. negotiations, When what the would inject bring these this indications British to lack into unclear intelligence, response other also a the operation further was solution? nonetheless the of to and diplomacy or negotiations of It and military they want designed actual Their militarily, goal over government planning a by from government simply solution, the that spite to caused unclear sovereignty British British the posturing though misconception way likewise the the was were exercise they As conict goals consistency. faulty Islands. ambiguous, this the did its little follow taking Atlantic acting invasion that which negotiate British incident aggressive therefore, pressure military would not the to military their Falkland by occupy want combined The a was full then, meandered between order a negotiations? pursued Were or combined Argentines was Argentinean Argentina? the Junta side situation concluded, arrangement into the substantial neither taskforce sides. they from This, to April. would on that British 26March 44 W A R S the time leaving for an Georgia South Argentine 2.2 C ombatants Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ To what extent were both Britain and Argentina prepared for war? ➔ What role did geography play in the relative strengths and weaknesses of each country? ➔ What were the relative military strengths of each country? Key concepts ➔ Continuity ➔ Change ➔ Signicance Great Britain The Argentine Thatcher’s including the task forces Nevertheless, military South The force were as well of Britain’s divided This HMS the be force Hermes, carried a split Island, such was merchant Queen and an two, a II, islands, of nd them, to British the Navy of task in accordance was carriers days 000 forces reducing and the its South and with its Argentine force by size, Atlantic invasion, had set troops. sail solutions, the for into The 13 a which there the In was the Argentine all voyage at an they and Uganda some 65 would airstrip continue while that aircraft, to still confused approached force. and ships Ascension conict air to capabilities. Invincible would carrier-borne a required position as part in destroyers, stop USA ambiguous to of 000-km Nevertheless limited essentially Canberra, supply The regulars trained logistic service. land important HMS liners throughout an was and The army an elements consisting military. British of what the carriers, making on of specically medical pressed force that all passenger Argentines. third it soldiers. formed were formed aircraft States be and and consisted response, two Britain the and artillery, 7,000 sailors Marines within were task would one 28 civilian United diplomatic roughly and of owned the angered the These the support practical to when, naval capabilities that force give and a Royal substantial by many ve brigades The included with island some including administered trying time Royal aircraft contained ships, Elizabeth landing in its two reaction operations. as of into operations, task frigates, a within together Marines. rapid and on put consisted Royal amphibious carry had at the Atlantic. as division came efforts, decommissioning icebreakers. British incursion downsizing about the 42 Although the 45 2 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y Harrier Jump as did they not as fast Jets the as W A R S used ability the by for the British both Argentine were traditional Mirage or versatile and Super aircraft, vertical combining take-off, they were Étendard. FALKLANDS/MALVINAS WAR OF 1982 Para. South West Falkland British land Atlantic Ocean at Pebble Port San Carlos Island Port Argentina Braz. San Douglas Carlos Uru. Port Buenos King Aires Roy Teal Cove Louis Inlet San George Port Howard Carlos Puerto Tandil No Bay Belgrano Chile d Man’s Stanley Land n u o S South Queen Atlantic Charlotte Fitzroy Goose Darwin Green Trelew Bay Ocean Fox Bay Sound n a Island l k Rivadavia Choiseul Lafonia d Weddell Comodoro Falkland North Lively l a F Islands Rio Port Gallegos Arm Adventure Island Stephens Sound East Speedwell Island Bay Falkland of Harbours British 200-mile Ushuaia war zone Argentine troop concentrations South Argentine air force 0 Areas Argentine naval Argentine air Atlantic bases of conflict 40 mi bases 0 British 46 20 Ocean combat advance range ▲ The Falklands/Malvinas War, 1982. ▲ The Royal Navy ship HMS Ardent on escort duty during the Falklands/Malvinas War 30 60 km C H A P T E R 2 . 2 : Argentina Argentina’s C O M B A T A N T S Class discussion navy had the ability to operate in all three major aspects of What diculties did the location of the naval warfare: submarine, surface and air. Although her vessels, including islands pose for the British military? four submarines, strength 120 various of states Junta’s force of for was Étendards, that “dirty US and armed posed forces operations The the Its air latter against threat was against force also equipped Carter its a its were air the US-made ammunition President war” they mixed. upkeep. Weapons embargo dated, Argentine available the Super missile. ▲ the aircraft quality and of were the force. British Skyhawks had with British It had task the limited political as in deadly a in The older of The around and Mirage Exocet result 1976 forces. force. were French-made implemented domestic to the in III anti-ship US response arms to the opponents. A French-built Mirage III similar to those used by the Argentine air force during the Falklands/Malvinas War 47 2.3 Strateg y and tactics Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ To what extent was British strategy determined by geography? ➔ How did Argentina seek to overcome its military weaknesses? Key concepts ➔ Continuity ➔ Perspective Great Britain Faithful to British government Islands the on 12 The Crisis The MEZ vessel the stated islands, zone any the the reinforcing air the Island. the air. shelter further for Class discussion This and by so Time far operations then was a air cover force in the was bombers as the task Zone the military (320 The their the also from concern effective base to in km) notice positions rest force Missile (TEZ), primary US avoid of approached Argentines supporting the force needed by Cuban 200-mile carriers, to act “blockade”. target. the an Argentine Argentine supported essence did of Falkland (MEZ) the task the from directly be it Exclusion aircraft on as any the legitimate raids heavy and the Total found operating as As the Zone during preventing from Bombing of a Thatcher’s instead consider target. to Adequate task Exclusion concern civilian, years, suggesting would aircraft, Sound on be were Ascension refuelled invasion of the could would task not in force operate support. would moving or 400 surrounding “quarantine” changed bombers the area same British difcult, was from the legitimate limited. of the Maritime Operating heavy proved a term any air. previous of permission for Falklands out. long Land was a was forces. Elements in the British it had military the the “blockade”, the zone MEZ from strength word that same British undertaken calling used vessel, of blockade States the without indicated a the they within which of United when strategy up April, semantics war. for set consist against the of establishing Argentine beachheads forces at Goose at San Green. Carlos The What justication could the British campaign was to come to a conclusion with the capture of Stanley. use for establishing their Maritime Exclusion Zone? Argentina Initial Argentine respond in operations leave 48 strategy strength too Britain and difcult with little relied that for a on the the British option hope South but task to that Atlantic force. negotiate the British winter would would The surprise the transfer attack of not make the would islands. C H A P T E R The growing tensions over the islands in early 1982, 2 . 3 : however, S T R A T E G Y A N D T A C T I C S blunted Class discussion the surprise. either advocate launched the the British meant Once that the would Falkland of aircraft on air their force their prolong had the worst advantages aircraft war, of army the to as the the decoys ships British than not to lure the others would be weather. The and on smaller to, its they a the start based on faulty assumptions? To what degree was this obvious at the time? also reserves. realized that proximity. at of To what extent were Argentine plans then allowing strategy them number If Junta early ships allow attacked. to hoped British would forced The geographic the would mobilizing settled and on superiority had invasion power attacks while they they States neutral. nished force, air United remain full-scale in – the winter had launch numeric or earlier responding would that resolution committed Their from assumed months the were Sound. away quick Argentine Junta rely a avoid the British Argentine for also operation to that the some Argentina sea to The and in deploy British Argentines could withdraw. Source skills the The British response naval four Prime Minister Margaret Thatcher’s speech task days of on the Falklands Crisis, 29 to the South Atlantic aggression within against the to Falkland Parliament force Argentina’s April Islands. 1982. What incentive would there have been for the http://www.totalpolitics.com/speeches/war/falklands- Argentine Junta to give Mr. Haig’s ideas more than war/34258/speech-on-the-conduct-of-the-falklands- the most cursory glance if Britain had not under- war.thtml pinned “. . . step us the that to Government had achieve a has taken reasonable our every prospect objectives – the of Argentine occupation of forces the administration, and the dispatch not make islands, and a the of their restoration long-term acceptable not only to the of solution House of the Falkland is British the can Government’s achieve those most but We have to Mr. Haig’s What earnest by hope a about means. that in I a everything attempts shall does to the House With Mr. Haig’s way if the mean reasonable to have our by “every prospect possible of helping objectives”? to that we can nd a solution something more discuss its the origin, value purpose and and limitations of to source for a historian studying British by to resolve the Falklands crisis. to Using this source the Government has also the and to strengthen our initiative would British extent your to own which knowledge, the British taken pursued both diplomatic and diplomatic never have options Government had not consistently in resolving the got Falklands under a reference military efforts. will what moment. knows, measures up that government military give byforce.” Thatcher had achieve evaluate As Government negotiated 3 say Argentine seized that efforts diplomatic with persuasion the this encourage settlement Gentle Islands. objectives done the have content, settlement. force? Questions: 2 we diplomatic which us It a task of step inhabitants for the illegal 1 is of helping withdrawal end search the they the its possible crisis. sent 49 2.4 Operations Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ What role did Argentine air power play in the war? ➔ To what extent were the British forces in the South Atlantic vulnerable to air power? ➔ To what extent did the Argentines have a viable defence plan for the islands once they occupied them? Key concepts ➔ Cause ➔ Consequence ➔ Signicance Operation Rosario and its aftermath The Argentine tracked capital. small the British islands. force Not the Royal happen much the a were responding Thatcher’s recent negotiation galvanized the Prime Thatcher was by the could their the the the their of so could they have Thatcher and and State a at task the Sir force hope silenced the public or the very her to this the go a that difcult cabinet mood who sail in that was assured 48 hours. presented. dissenters her to and Leach ready with not Minister’s that and indicating be of Henry British islands. would Prime about would the weakness most thus by reversed the the along invasion that was capture intended the Defence persuaded The so out attack landing whether for and to with the seek defended realized on and withdrawn, the order over they be to island were were economic Admiral grasped Parliament island resources recourse. Lord to believed divided more Sea was islands positions surprise, current only cabinet the that landing airport the Argentines force Once the location defended 500 The amphibious take separate evacuation Secretary First he of with far a an to impression on deeply assurance, face islands. the them Minister and WithLeach’s and force, was at commander location for was that invasion unopposed. islands recapturing the reinforcing from the land some give combination report defending and in cabinet The all, whose largely began to called force negotiations. different landed war. of for This Marines In to force to Royal wanting way Argentines 50 of Marines at invasion were Governor. occupation, 60 for vehicles. Commandos the paving plan landing in decision her to cabinet retake C H A P T E R ▲ British Royal Marines about to go on patrol during the Falklands/Malvinas War As soon war, on as three main American effort by general Ford was of States the force. own the a military had the its emphasis The charter British would rst The the Latin crisis, the as that, before this the and the up British. a of of the The the not took of UN Security UN. islands Council was no resolution as the a an and act The drafted of found last that demand, diplomatic hand bringing withdrawal be of for members ineffectual. 502/1982, to left show their to it had as show self-determination islanders, and justication to This army Council. force initiative, a of Strangely, task the solution the an Nixon approaches the centred mediation was the forces. want any Resolution UN, principle to of hostilities, of Haig both military tentative diplomatic charter the shooting Organization associated did and April. in Security the were cessation the left the therefore secrecy 3 a a efforts ineffectual NATO before and support on of into These the Haig. invasion before and but posts that Argentines principles if matter believed fury. O P E R A T I O N S with pandering. and the Falklands/Malvinas passed. The British had won the round. OAS she a of emphasizes American OAS for forces, the forever The the of Council principles on knew be for issues held escalate a (UN), Alexander commander The with well-meaning denunciation Council diplomatic cause. of the as easily Nations State invasion called could erupted Vietnam, even plans. Argentinemilitary respected a such to British, of in brought actual no resolution by Atlantic Security British a brought seeking the and and it it United intelligence Argentina regarding the served that like stop Secretary had South to (OAS) Argentine aggression, of US who looked efforts forums: Argentina the her crisis administrations Faulty for the diplomatic 2 . 4 : was with states proved both a a of the OAS troublesome member Argentina. This of generally forum NATO apparent supported for with the USA Britain conict of the Argentine during and a the member interests was 51 2 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y compounded signatories regard had for a and, The by the most attack a on of considering was of more with paled the one the Junta of was Dozo the logistical as in USA and terms the was to with and all. By ways not the difcult for British in Haig. three Anaya. end lined more of for than There of the the start. mediator Argentines. Britain. the no Junta mission with foreign Dealing appeared Haig’s calling vote resolution. American of to Argentina the the a – and from from of for leaders clearly April, Britain that the States ignored terms As bound United doomed ideal Admiral intelligence which abstained implications the up the aggressors, failure, the of the denouncing States many between and on Pact, United States proved Galtieri, end, Rio Argentine process material, The the countries attack the comparison General 1947, connected an decision-making unsuccessful an United also of Argentines closely in as under mission the consequences policy, Pact America hostilities. diplomatic position asit Rio Latin resolution cessation Haig’s The an won – W A R S clear – General came Britain, to an providing support. Class discussion How did the war aect US inuence in the region? ▲ The Royal Navy ship HMS Antelope explodes after being attacked by Argentine aircraft The air war After easily disabling on to the wasted lost the retaking the Falkland no time several became a or naval Argentine air The The this source Argentine of Belgrano, a the of the from continue For Royal the a 321 on 1 proceeded May, of with her. engagement the most part, from that HMS who torpedoed sailors point. Shefeld Super success it defenders, Navy destroyer have process force rules French-made to the submarine British war. in arrived taking the the and British Argentine Navy sank to the force on sinking red April, Fé, Royal after clear would 25 task which better, missile force the conformed stayed fared on Santa attacks day, controversy Exocet air air next action forces force Argentine When launching cruiser not French-made 52 in Georgia submarine Islands. aircraft. Argentine Whether South Argentine The with Étendard against the a jet. Royal C H A P T E R Navy ships throughout the war, especially when they moved into 2 . 4 : O P E R A T I O N S close TOK discussion quarters around attempts to at retake the islands mediation the by to support Peru and Falklands/Malvinas land the was operations. United about Nations to By 20 failed May, and last the effort What are the ethical implications of selling weapons? What responsibility begin. does the seller have for the use of the weapons once they are sold? Operations on the Islands Sheltering landed three at their San separate meeting little combination air attacks British attack on began to staging The Goose began the the more Green 27 for and May and surround forces of the to after to garrison not and in its a it. Stanley and at moved on of 700 of this 000 The the As ashore, a Argentine cost of invasion the one eet unsuccessful, British to British forces harass the command garrison beachhead. the British 500 The defenders. forces the on of 14 June attack forced After moved strength, eventual at attackers engagements position survivors the Argentine Argentine compelled at the British inland. the smaller attacks. continued ghting, the men through although carriers. force secure days series on the establishing 4,000 although Stanley. Fitzroy, and 12 air islands, capital, long-range, attack From main surprise attacks aircraft further the putting day, British two two diversionary Air one was and and the approximately blunder capital on the the from achieved Argentine limited surrounding moved Argentine with British the Darwin costly the ground distant and, May damaged. days, more 21 British through however, a island missteps two inland, objective, on on Nevertheless, surrender high and several move opted abortive repulsed between the The Argentine sunk area. rst instead beachheads of for eet across resistance. were ship continued invasion Carlos, on an to captured the British surrender of the 1982. 53 2.5 Eects of the Falklands/Mal vinas War Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ To what extent did the war change British policy toward the Falklands/ Malvinas? ➔ What were the domestic consequences of the war in both Argentina and Britain? Key concepts ➔ Consequence What were the outcomes of the war? Capturing and holding Argentina 746 dead dead cost this were gure ships. these In both does many to the citizens, light of held that a and only immedia te while In at 1983 country’s 54 Junta the April until Almost sank. and replacement had of 14 half June of the Recapturing US$1.19 of lost ramications post-w a r same Fund de bt Alfonsín dirty to war to the pl a g ue ti m e had cost Argentine the billion, equipment that reached a nd agre e me nt s . to a islands although and far beyond dirty By at would justice. outrage president Political war 1983 the By free the 1986, of its parties that into elections a own Reynaldo emerged head begin against against the were centre-left process of pressure bringing from the stop. we l l was was Junta. the d is m a l it public conducted interim power in a ti o n t he re Al f o ns í n the of had formed. government period (I MF ) of face it The during were process w o ul d the that resigned. parties the this in war” dismantling Raúl President Monetary Belgrano position e xa ce r b a te d tha t the 2 casualties, the war “dirty Alfonsín’s brought war their the new brought situation this from wounded. the 770 underground perpetrators military The and driven day and include military government. the not ways, oversaw been when dead sustain the sea islands 1,200 numbers. war Bignone at 250 sterile Unable had lost Britain the and n an c i a l into wo u ld lim i t e d f or c e d w ou ld th e e nd to up si t u a t i on 21st run as g ro wt h a p pe al h a vi n g in c e nt u r y. hig h in to to the the as Ar g e nt i n a , In th e 9 0 0% e co n om y. In t e r na t i on a l r e n a nc e the C H A P T E R 2 . 5 : E F F E C T S O F T H E F A L K L A N D S / M A LV I N A S W A R L TA Research skills Use the following table to explore Argentina’s economy before and after the war. 1981 1985 Ination rate Gross national product Defence spending Unemployment rate Possible conclusion: While failure political for three stabilize years a radically and the action it was critics meant advantage to the the in insulated even Whether speeches though Argentine case. year, to It they was to on the the and been this been and with point of and have the marked and Air for case party patriotic this Force from drastic to It the public preferred is not and into the an British that election society without invoke certainly the increased policies. Despite cuts, the such measures reductions point; cabinet election would domestic spending meant power sentiment it within public. unpopular Royal the She by who her won it in unable seen parlayed difcult. to been Falklands/Malvinas leader divisions she Argentina, had the over wave deep Could in actually islands in She leadership, decisive control privatization Navy had from a was have ahead of victory Her Parliament of as despite woes. would push Royal of Junta this capitalized programme the the recapture War? She the style Britain’s community economic condence general She following Falklands discernible former. be for government. L TA a to the enduring victory the the increased. victory little negotiation. perceived defeat Thatcher’s economy. international accompanied and with faltering altered political for conict before Thinking skills Thatcher ’s Secretary of State for Defence the John Nott had drafted a repor t prior invasion. to the war that indicated the islands Having gone to such great lengths and expense to preserve to reassert its position in would be very dicult to defend with the South Atlantic, Britain had little choice but her presence resources as they then stood. How did there. A new air base was built, garrisoned with some 1,500 troops who the Falkland/Malvinas War change this? were still there on the 25th anniversary of the conict. With the growing What was the British military presence in prospect of large offshore oil deposits in the South Atlantic, the British the islands in 2005? What percentage of stance in 1982 almost seems prescient. Thirty years after the war the the British defence budget was taken up British government spends some £200 million per year on the defence of with Falklands’ defence? the islands. 55 Exam-style questions and fur ther reading Exam-style questions 1 To what extent was the Falklands/Malvinas War preventable through negotiation? 2 Examine the role of Falklands/Malvinas 3 Examine the role of Falklands/Malvinas 4 Examine and 5 the United role States in the development of the the United Nations in the development of the War. relationship consequences Compare the the the War. of the played Falklands/Malvinas between domestic concerns Falklands/Malvinas by air and naval and the causes War. power in the conduct of War. Fur ther reading Aitken, Jonathan. Bloomsbury. New Middlebrook, Sword. Privratsky, 56 Margaret Thatcher: Power and Personality. USA. Martin. 2009. The Argentine Fight Martin. 2012. The Falklands War. for the Falklands. Pen UK. Middlebrook, Sword. 2013. York, Kenneth UK. L. 2015. Logistics in the Pen and Falklands Sword, War. Pen UK. and and 3 THE VIETNAM WAR: REVOLUTIONARY WAR IN INDO-CHINA Global context As of with the order the into Empire spectre and an likely the its the The First War World threw collapse army situation of France’s of World ux. with complex more end Second still even in of more each month in this status of its in new the The end made with post-war order colonies even The grew so. a as such the vulnerable of ideology as of the world ally, but more post-war for that condition was was combining with nationalism opportunities around French anti-colonialist, instability great unclear more States, implications such paradigms period. was the forces a The order United moderately Japanese eld world world former the international uncertain. ideological-based place the the War, the of the new old global imperialism. years to global traditional and nationalist sought still struggling provided movements capitalize imperial on the powers. Timeline 1945 Ho Chi Minh proclaims an independent Vietnam and issues a Declaration of September Independence; street ghting in Hanoi between French forces and Viet Minh General Leclerc takes command of the October French forces in Indo-China 1946 Ho Chi Minh signs an interim agreement March with French administrators to end hostilities Viet Minh attack French installation in December Hanoi – the war begins 1947 French forces launch Operation Lea against October Viet Minh stronghold in the Viet Bac 1949 French General Alessandri begins September operations designed to deny the Viet Minh Moa Zedong proclaims the People’s Republic local logistic and supply support of China after claiming victory in the Chinese October Civil War; Chinese material and advisors begin to ow to the Viet Minh 57 3 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S 1950 Viet Minh capture Dong Khe in rst large- September scale Viet Minh operation with coordinated ar tillery Battle of Route Coloniale 4 October General de Lattre de Tassigny assumes December command of French forces in Indo-China 1951 Battle of Vinh Yen January March Day River Battles Battle of Mao Khe May–June December Black River Battles 1952 General Salan assumes command of French force in Indo-China; heavy ghting January on Route Coloniale 6 November Battle of Na San 1953 Viet Minh invade Laos April General Navarre assumes command June of French forces in Indo-China French launch Operation Castor – a paratroop assault on the Dien Bien Phu valley; the French begin to build November– December their base Viet Minh build siege force around Dien 1953–1954 Bien Phu Battle of Dien Bien Phu opens with massive Viet Minh bombardment; French strongpoint 1954 “Beatrice” is overrun French strongpoint “Gabrielle” is overrun March Last ight out of or into Dien Bien Phu – French base now dependent on parachute April drop or supplies The French surrender Dien Bien Phu to the Viet Minh; Geneva Conference on Indo-China begins 58 May Viet Minh siege of Dien Bien Phu tightens 3.1 Causes of the Vietnam War Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ How did Ho Chi Minh combine nationalism and communism in the Viet Minh movement? ➔ How did the end of the Second World War in the Pacic aect the beginning of the war? Key concepts ➔ Cause ➔ Consequence ➔ Continuity C H I N A Nanning T Dien O Bien N K I N Phu . R Hanoi g a n h a T u Haiphong L n M a N Louang Chiang Rai phrabang Hainan e Chiang Mai n a i t Vinh n e i T h V Lampang a x h 18º e n Udon Dong Muang TAK Hoi Loei 17º Seno Phitsanulok Tchepone Savannakhét H A I L A N Tourane D S T Paksé Ubon Ta Khli Korat M Ban Salavan 14º Pleiku Stung Trêng Tuy French Union Hoa Forces Nha Trang R Cobalt battalions...300 Viet Minh Forces g n o m e M Men.................612,500 Phnom Penh SAIGON Men.................335,000 Cobalt battalions...172 Viet Minh controlled 0 40 80 120 areas Cochinchina 160 MILES ▲ Map of Vietnam, July 1954 59 3 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S Long-term causes France By asserted 1885 control. groups what education a overly complex and of at lack Minh of the expense seen of The the against a In continuation on western affront this to in the this of used to there 19th sense this nationalists. assimilation were Although rule organization. as an authorities Vietnamese further colony. nationalist French emphasis resources French period. French Vietnamese aggravating to 30–year The provided Vietnamese widespread be various designed a centralized control. Church further uprisings can after, westernization. culture, over under French Catholic Meanwhile France for Viet of Vietnam come and to bureaucracy rule. signicant failed the period Roman Vietnamese metropolitan they the over had resistance programme inefcient number control Vietnam this armed and traditional for now Throughout staged introduced An imperial is made enrich were a century, Ho Chi nationalist Minh tradition. Short-term causes The rst amid end a of act 30-year and Second to adrift in trying to reassert were trying to use not the been defeated explosions of in thousands territory of this let gap nationalist small they the alone stepped party for the received French proclaimed Ho of Chi Japanese) send on In that the months Viet Minh north between of the what re-occupation of an no country he of the results. French never As and Ho’s Viet north by Vietnam ratied the Minh troops the on French of the French rose so and did and issuing around a he a for led before Hanoi The of and of 1776. his occupying south. Choosing to for of the recognition French negotiations Haiphong and Declaration agreed violence a the which and interests Union”. of transfer Vietnamese had troops exchange of the document the Ho further levels hundreds transferred. entered competing in be directly, American troops left administered Minh had amounts for withdrew occupying South-East cataclysmic Minh, 1941 (who evils, In plan Nationalist two movements vast would Viet element Defeated Japanese the of the the colonizers situation From 1945, the agreement in the Viet the of real Japanese Chinese lesser no power of the charge Japanese juggled “within frustration that the French the strange in before. states. result French and the the a with September Ho of and believed independent government those still the modelled followed, Party, 2 as amorphous pre-war that from between nationalist fact leadership. As the developed emerging unseen The while leader Vichy Ho way This whom against troops, deliberately the the a the Pacic Minh, and Independence own to support. independence by troops the situation independent rather communist against American could and Vietnam relationship chaos. Nagasaki. Japanese idea with force and but now adding in authority establish eld, Asia an politics compounded the armed to is complex deteriorating, power ux Hiroshima of guerrilla colony in what international The colonial was throughout power, Into the confusion in administrative were Asia War. was traditional were conict confusing World superpowers ideology empires Class discussion the dynamic the victorious of of yielded between Hanoi. Open To what extent was a war between the warfare erupted in December with the Viet Minh retreating to their Viet French and the Vietnamese inevitable Bac stronghold fromwhich given the goals of each side? struggle 60 against the French. they would conduct the rest of the nine-year C H A P T E R 3 . 1 : C A U S E S O F T H E V I E T N A M W A R Source skills The Viet Minh Source A Ho Chi Minh Vietnamese 2 “All men certain of Declaration September are created unalienable Happiness.” Independence means: right all to standard of oppressed and justice. The French abdicated. have at for have “The the earth and and America are and equal years, the have won centuries. in from Creator Life the 1776. have acted and with the pursuit Declaration In birth; a broader all the the people which In its for monarchic place has to of capitulated, chains, independence the imperialists, violated contrary our have broken overthrown of in French Fraternity, They have their of sense, peoples it have a free. Japanese have have dozens of by Liberty, appeared theyhavedeprived ed, them are statement eighty Equality endowed these the the of the Bao nearly a has established liberty… Dai has century Fatherland. that and humanity democratic Emperor for abusing Fatherland ideals every regime been our Our people reigned the present Republic… whole determined colonialists happy people time for Democratic the than are States fellow-citizens. Our same supreme more on Politically: fettered the be Liberty, our United peoples to They among immortal the and Nevertheless, Independence , equal. Rights; This of the live of 1945 Vietnamese to to ght to people, the reconquer bitter their animated end by against a common any purpose, attempt by the are French country.” Source B Ho Chi Minh to US Pierre Brocheux, “First, you like help, not One must One also a is a One Chi in doesn’t in fact it through needs a set of Ofcer A that task things gain bible. Minh: understand formidable necessarily contracts. say must France Intelligence Ho to that like gain gain beliefs, a Fenn, independence cannot arms, be 1945. but in gospel, gave the by apractical that a From great without nature of bombs training analysis; and you power some advice throwing propaganda, me from achieved independence organization, Marxism-Leninism Charles Biography outside and and such. discipline. might even framework.” Source C Viet 1 Minh Not and 2 Not or to do what belongings to insist on is to its likely of the soldiers to (1948) damage the land and crops or spoil the houses people. buying or borrowing what the people are not willing to sell lend. 3 Never 4 Not in directives to to break do or our speak word. what is likely to make people believe that we hold them contempt. 61 3 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y 5 To help water, 6 In them W A R S in sewing, spare time, Resistance, 7 Whenever 8 To teach their to but tell not possible the daily work (harvesting, fetching rewood, carrying etc.). amusing, to to betray buy population simple, commodities the and short stories useful to the secrets. national for those script who and live far from elementary the market. hygiene. Source D Ho Chi Ho’s “Army cadres men Minh, Selected cadres with He work 1952 concern themselves administrative standing eld. July Writings will forms on not a components one be truly whole come leg. jobs, It is solely Party wrong procient which would with for a be with cadre because not military cadres to army, strong affairs, Party be acquainted mass, and Government business. They only government complete are with and should like one party one of its tomiss.” Questions 1 a To what the extent chains, and have is Ho’s which won for contention nearly a independence “Our century for the people have have broken fettered Fatherland” them [Source A] accurate? b 2 What With reference values and methods 3 of Compare Ho’s 4 Using this the era. It Civil of sense wars of of Vietnam ousting pre-war clock of world back and to and add For over power and for Source D? content, historians analyse the studying the A and Source D tell us about would the rst, Cold their status. In War sweep along was the the with the of ideology played a and a in the Asia way were Ho and the French and the the years by to in role the the ongoing ideology to secondary Viet Minh 1945–1954 wanted to extension French willing among world notion part Minh evaluate War combatants. control that. knowledge Indo-China that the own of strategy. South-East Viet prevent your though, foreign the what French main French. control C Source Minh. among end two purpose Source guerrilla the be of by independence. would the the the numbers 62 also In free imperial Ho’s conveyed origin, contrast for then, that motives. its Viet sources in being decolonization would War, motives the and the to is limitations strategy ideology In message and the role to mix in the wanted this reassert die of Chinese reclaim wanted ght rst post-war their their turn in a meant the large 3.2 C ombatants Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ How were the French hampered in the early years of the war? ➔ What were the advantages and disadvantages of the Viet Minh structure? ➔ How did political considerations aect both the French and the Viet Minh? ➔ What role did foreign involvement play for both the French and the Viet Minh? Key concepts ➔ Perspective ➔ Signicance The Viet Minh To say and the that this late scale unit is guerrilla Forces. The routes well moved In lookout terms of sabotaged they Viet organized They the years in force divisions, which operations support. level armies, – and these using grew in used of the the to contained all of the artillery, than men guerrilla forces was or hit elements supply sub-divided into of and required always on ambushes, were local, Distinguish next forces local the the these of were forces. war. Viet run level that In Minh’s tactics. regional regular force needed and in units As forces operations. the main the the later much large-scale regular in guerrilla sophistication, support Minh serve be units command. and scavenged. force these Popular movements force force, be the or transportation would could were At villages and larger small equipped 1,000 “traditional” Minh central shouldered and the that to small regular force of large- Quong positions full-time better in when While eligible the up units Viet intelligence, were of size in Viet Minh Dan From small- forces maintained conducted traps. Minh the Quong material were were battalions Divisions Viet you enemy Dan Quong – inaccurate local, hierarchically. and movement booby the and local on is forces. maintaining Viet based instance, war Minh conduct time forces and Viet to The porters For the guerrilla organized as organization, operations same French set from 1946–1950 highest the Dan and level occasionally western the regionally regular were The this military the intelligence abandoned directed operated military the for ability recruited used support combat, at Minh were a the the guerrilla were area, to at of capability. neighbours. transport were yourself part-time an porters had while strictly design components, units through was the Minh Quong their war in combat providing on supply and local, These as this Viet three Dan while of operations into were hamlets. the the organization bottom to part illustrated 1940s, structured as any well was to and As in organized conduct eventually regiments force. most into large-scale armour and battalions. air For the 63 3 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y majority 10 000 were of the men. war It formed began is in pouring Commanding centred on a a no the Viet Minh period south these division coincidence after from that various through inter zone system territories Shor t for integrated zones, these were more administrative zones used by the and reected Viet Minh. Within each zone, a central The interzone committee coordinated ideological, assassinations, the a the Viet simply Minh all taxation, that was of recruiting, a of the such and the This level propaganda structure whole regions military revolutionary conict military into system was organization warfare. including and around divisions expertise interzone of of as China. command several system. philosophy strength equipment controlled another aspects a units conquered grouped interzone than managed who have larger when recently components system so-called comprehensive would these 1949 Mao’s commander-in-chief organization – W A R S elections, supply. political and administrative functions The total strength of the Viet Minh changed over time. In 1947 Giap, of the Viet Minh. There were six of these the Viet Minh commander, had about 50 000 regular force troops zones in Vietnam. and about this strength regional Class discussion Giap 40 000 had and popular swelled popular commanded popular force and to 110 forces. 125 000 regional As 000 the troops regular war regulars, 75 at force reached 000 his disposal. and its about By crescendo regional troops 1951 225 in and 000 1953, 250 000 troops. How might the Viet Minh recruit its members? Viet Minh equipment Just as with assortment American around some to Each other called two per the sides Viet 27 (PLA) they wasn’t south to Viet dramatically Viet Minh the of a the to the of War of Phu artillery Minh willing 40 amount with share of planning at victory 000 the it. PLA in at offered People’s and were In their the to period in the 4,000 tons shipment of which Phu. new clients. Army experience sent this and 79ofcers Although 1946, Viet territory time many military since trained a the risen PLA the shipments Liberation the such Korean munitions Bien logistics. schools By as would on, the area, ries, Dien 1950 of had well They into monthly practical In 1949. soldiers had this as hands during month. recoilless Chinese pieces. tons and Minh guns their base number victory motley Viet weapons 250 down a Czech ever-larger main each and warfare to trained the new 1952, this lay captured Minh’s Hanoi, assistance PLA ’s in the artillery brought wound Viet Minh and Viet with machine could brought Early the 1946 light small they month constant had six armed Japanese, in material French considerable than Viet after US Bien the only ghters ofcers about China. Dien out thousand each Korean nearly more help Minh the were French, weapons quantities gained seemed and north-east at Minh broke few reached crucial years had off the large prove Material After As a 1950 from Bac, faced month. would over south war including After supplies contained of victory arsenal. the and Viet including whatever cast-offs weapons and When grenades use the arms ries mortars, Minh of 000 Chinese War. French, small ries. 60 continue as the of handfuls increased 1952–1953, 10 000 China. The French The French issues every fractures 64 forces bit ran as deep in Indo-China daunting in as post-war suffered those faced France. political by the and Viet Retribution for structural Minh. Political collaborators, C H A P T E R ideological Aid made Fourth in total divisions, a unied Republic during the economic approach was weakness, to plagued course of the by this war weak war. and in dependence Indo-China coalition The fact on the C O M B A T A N T S Marshall impossible. governments that 3 . 2 : – The 19 French Four th Republic Communist Party was a member of some of these governments The French government from and a vocal opponent of the war added a level of contradiction and 1946–1958. It was created by a confusion to the situation that made any effective military action close constitution after the Second World War. to impossible. Throughout manpower. French from the zone of serving all the had French tied a occupation in Expeditionary from war Yalta colonial Corps corners of forces sizable in Germany. theatres was what of cobbled was suffered portion left of war. the chronic Conscripts As together of a France’s a were result from French shortage post-war the legally French diverse Empire. to the forbidden Far military Only of army East units about 42% French Foreign Legion of the French forces in this war were born in Metropolitan France. Instead This is a formation of the French army the troops came from France’s North African Army and colonial regiments founded in 1831, made up of non-French from Africa and Asia. The legendary French Foreign Legion provided a nationals who wish to serve in the French reliable professional formation, as did the regular parachute units of the army. Initially the Legion’s ocers were French army. The French attempted to augment these units with locally French, but over time the ocer corps recruited but French-led auxiliaries – generally local tribesmen who had contained many nationalities. Likewise various reasons for ghting the Viet Minh. These auxiliaries were trained many French citizens make up the rank in secret camps by covert western operatives. and le of the Legion. The Legion has Local units Vietnamese or created conscripted at the generally the for It – led, the increasingly of the the new French the themselves Vietnamese Americans lot Viet of overlords and these Minh “ofcial” who Nixon’s equipped unenviable and nd Richard poorly popular collaborators force of the presaging poorly was could into behest “Vietnamized” effort. men with and National wished 1969 added soldiers their often enforcing recruited to into Army see policy. little to be system equally French the since 1831. was French war between brutal brutal served in every major French conict war VNA caught of (VNA), the The to army retaliation oppressive conscription. L TA Thinking and research skills As a condition of continued military and nancial aid, ● Iraq 2010 ● Afghanistan 2010 1 What foreign forces were involved? What was the level the United States insisted that the French turn more and more of the ghting over to the Vietnamese National Army (VNA), a process they called “Vietnamization”. President of military commitment at its height? Richard Nixon would use this same goal and name in 1969 as a plan for reducing the United States’ military 2 What were the motives of the foreign powers? 3 What were the tasks assigned to the local forces? How commitment to South Vietnam. The notion of replacing foreign occupying troops with local security forces was to were local troops prepared for these tasks? be used in other wars. 4 What challenges did the local troops face? What Research the events of the following wars and answer the challenges did the foreign troops face? questions that follow. 5 ● Vietnam 1969 ● Bay of Pigs 1961 ● Yugoslav Civil War 1994 How did the foreign power disengage from the country? How well did the local troops accomplish their security goals? 65 3 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y At the beginning W A R S of the conict the French forces had a total strength Class discussion of 115 000. Why would the Vietnamization of the (French, war be impor tant to the United States 55 government? to 000 In is last Africans, local Asian that of mobility, by a of and and these compounded degree years auxiliaries remember fact the the Foreign 150 forces the war 000 were nature capability of this Legion). VNA far of had only this to in of it 000 be is the as it added important ghting requiring fraction 175 could Again, equal war, a To troops. from the grown ability. did French a This high forces. French equipment On paper situation problem was was small to was and not eventually The was and using more 250 and for of of more about 275 by roads 1950 they the The by of what newly French for army and inserting marches this war? from be 66 the war variety – This they – even effort. of States eld of the began would weapons crude active in of at in best. cars armoured the vehicles of place French armoured effectiveness of On and which the south and forces gun personnel was country. and (Weasels) known to into used made to in France’s war; next in a C47 that would be the Minh. well In issue. for airplanes when hard fact dangerous limited learned would mobility and into of troops This French the mobility but further be Viet worked can. the war dropped the same were 1949–1954. to the the situation, grueling helicopters Algeria years overcome were elements half these areas lesson Indo-China. other helicopters to the and available against as extract remote in the using however, capability only combat that mobility frequently rescue paratroopers troops These, by partially Throughout were such air option solved a mobility been as and drops. planes way of French have operations used the out in in was evacuations this The fought 1950 topography upon units effectiveness. French the mobility situations troops in a United remained their could be paratroop condemned What was the relationship of primitive to new technology during air conduct not needed that number medical however, Dropping that helicopters. in paratroop reality, could forced would other dangerous American, French with the did. material States. Indo-China was the after supply the when British, mobility moved were As material situation standardized. The by its war into French pieces amphibious limited only forces French soldiers improvise a raft for a river crossing in 1950. units developed reserved the tanks, the armed effort and steady some later severely The a limitations terrain of way be system hampered United to keeping plentiful reality personnel sources. its French road armed in its ammunition. the had Amphibious M29C diverse units but as years found French and severely rst artillery. a the way artillery mobile carriers ▲ the form billion however, After in French more army, same equipment US$3 unreliable carriers. scavenged pieces limited, modern the acute became had a non-regulation spend French these had much Japanese equipment about in uncommon arms bankroll and French especially gathered German It the suffered their before used unknown to to give those the who C H A P T E R One was nominal air task. Fast for bombers the bad Phu the and Small artillery and everything in Morane could One services its the Hellcat bombs, be of without aircraft the a spring more could but as metal jellied of were the terrifying – their strafe and often Battle of weapons petroleum and the wood larger C O M B A T A N T S enemy sufcient bombsights number useful, napalm of over seldom any made were very in enjoyed was ghter-bombers but the was French however, There especially demonstrated. air that power, spotting. these weather, French air mounted dubious. used This Bearcat underwing was advantage power. 3 . 2 : to the drop accuracy were level-ight hindered Dien by Bien employed which by ignited path. Technology and war: paratroopers Parachute technology existed from the First World War, but in the absence of aircraft that could carry signicant numbers of soldiers, the idea of using it to inject troops to places otherwise inaccessible by ground was debatable. As such aircraft became more plentiful in the inter-war period, military thinkers around the world began to imagine how paratroopers might be used in oensive operations. In the Second World War paratroopers played signicant roles in the German invasion of both Belgium and Crete. Allied paratroopers were integral to the invasion of Normandy and Operation Market Garden, the ambitious plan to capture the Rhine Bridges intact. Paratroop military ● operations ha d a nu m be r of ele ments t ha t wer e a t trac tiv e fo r planners. An airdrop increased the possibility of surprise, expanding as it did the points of possible attack . ● Transpor t by aircraft minimized the eect of dicult terrain. ● By landing troops behind the front line, the enemy would be forced to defend in multiple directions. Paratroop operations also had a number of serious drawbacks. ● The number of aircraft required to transpor t large numbers of troops often eliminated some of the element of surprise. ● Because paratroopers operated independent of supply lines they would have to jump with all the supplies required to sustain them as a ghting unit. This often limited both the time paratroopers could operate without resupply from the air or a link with ground forces as well as the size of munitions they could use – ar tillery and armour were often beyond their capability. ● In the brief period between exiting the aircraft and gathering into operational units on the ground, the paratroopers were incredibly vulnerable to enemy re. ● While paratroopers could be inser ted into a combat zone by airplanes, airplanes could not extract them. This was a fact of life brutally evident to French paratroopers operating in Indo-China. 67 3 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS Class discussion O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S Technology and war: napalm To what extent did the United States Napalm is a jellied form of petroleum used in aerial bombs and amethrowers. Its suppor t the French war eor t with money name derives from its two principle components: naphthenic and palmitic acids. and material? How and why did this Developed in 1942, napalm was used in the Second World War and became a suppor t change over the period 1946– standard, if terrifying, element of all modern military arsenals. In Vietnam it was 1954? generally used in close suppor t of ground troops. When dropped from aircraft it produces a terrifying and deadly spectacle, incinerating large areas of jungle and any people unfor tunate enough to be there. Far from a precision weapon and fairly unpredictable once unleashed, napalm was the cause of many civilian casualties during all phases of the Vietnam War. . . . All of a sudden hell opens in front of my eyes. Hell comes from large egg- shaped containers, dropping from the rst plane followed by others, eggs from the second and third plane. Immense sheets of ame extending to over one hundred metres, it seems, strike terror in the ranks of my soldiers. This is napalm, the re that falls from the skies. . .[A] bomb falls behind us and I feel ery breath touching my whole body. The men are now eeing and I cannot hold them back . There is no way of holding out under the torrent of re, which ows in all directions and burns everything in its passage. On all sides ame surrounds us . . . I stop at the platoon commander . . . his eyes are wide with terror. ‘What is this? The atomic bomb?’ ‘No this is napalm.’ Viet Minh Ocer Bernard Fall, Street Without Joy: The French Debacle in Indo-China (Harrisburg, 1961), 39–40 cited in Michael Burleigh, Small Wars, Faraway Places: Global Insurrection and the Making of the Modern World, (New York , Viking, 2013) 224. 68 3.3 Strateg y and tactics Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ To what extent did the French have the requisite material to conduct its strategy? ➔ To what extent did the French actually control territory in Vietnam? ➔ To what extent did eective strategy depend on political control of territory? Key concepts ➔ Cause ➔ Consequence The French Despite generally advantage material. French which an that to colonial the may in the troops. played war they In On in A of three the of Coloniale guerrillas mentality and the Areas the 4 the supply, early about Viet the years one of big strategic the military one Minh war was engagement forces, in advantage, thus in forcing strong a surrounding forces French the In 1950 only did were larger control and the easy the of posts “control” created the prominently smaller and ease. in the the Viet outposts daylight one – such war of targets type of outposts area the may but another supply outposts the light posts the have of this been hazardous specically the Minh outpost large the rejected cities countryside. relatively in be Route Viet controlled controlled aspect routes would Battle progressed, French Minh hours, instinct, three victory the in interrupting other As which – these Minh these while military could they recruited French and of areas fact govern observation locally Minh Some the to contradiction detachments Viet gured Viet relative during armed the with and had in direct indicated Indo-China Minh. outposts, them neglected done a blockhouses 1946–1950. posts situation be was it French cover. in Between with of plan, the this outposts French large-scale (RC4). built hands large could poorly the sound battle, answer manned could Viet How these strategy rst created The the decisive years but such moved French night. to the bring of French and the re military China site to the conventional militarily a these the vulnerable, French in that bulk They map into mortar from a reality or string The country right a such strategy. artillery of of sought the Indo-China. wanted less inconsistent enjoyed use been for militarily? country. were defeat have battle” and make planning waiting throughout and forces war. holdings “big to would control their order the this haphazard French strategic while their not In they end While the safe for extreme by the at Viet 69 3 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y Minh itself, units, also to W A R S commit resources to the rescue of trapped and isolated Class discussion To what extent was the Viet Minh victory favoured attrition-style the Viet Minh commitment to a long, drawn-out, conict. at RC4 a result of mistakes made by the In the end, the French needed to bring the war in Indo-China to a French command? resolution could an not quickly. and empire The in French Alessandri, deprive rice, out Minh the departed and areas Minh Unfortunately against the and from they the of the these the in war in General and a social far-ung French saying struggle and 100 an any situation corner over victory could sought sort of the saw if the The political, be the same forces to work. these over local that support programme, French misery war Viet by areas time. precisely as a were as they method Minh, economic, won Viet deny to hold win reform that territory. only to was to for destroy seemed strategy They integrated to to effective Minh guerrillas failing to social and concentrating facets. L TA Thinking and research skills Research the careers of the following French commanders in Indo-China and complete the following table. Remember, before anything can be evaluated, it must be set against a criterion. Be sure to describe the criterion against which you evaluate each commander. Commander Philipe Leclerc de Hauteclocque Jean-Étienne Valluy Roger Blaizot Marcel Carpentier Jean de Lattre de Tassigny Raoul Salan Henri Navarre 70 Dates in Indo-China of General sought support Viet resources much years. local recruits Minh By 1949 crucial push population expect control as Viet military with the could past conict to so system the approach. themselves the by on In region, Alessandri this lacked is to French Gradually military that troops local they briey. Tonkin depended re-inltration the only the support French support, Vietnamese for strategy using administrative saw psychological all economic protracted Minh French a essentially regaining a local Viet then conict – the Using and the more experienced however, on for this essentials. Vietnamese were victorious had and these the nothing of The inevitable Throughout political, Commander taxes. infrastructure Viet sustain from Minh operations. small not French Viet recruits of would domestic decline. the the guerrilla Their Previous postings Subsequent postings Evaluation C H A P T E R 3 . 3 : S T R A T E G Y A N D T A C T I C S The Viet Minh Ho and his military comprehensive with the adapted war French. by the would forms of be of this aspect people of the the the effective propaganda, Viet Minh the and writings of situation. integrated political, to on the a as Mao In this long war Zedong a and vision, deployment civilian gain diplomatic, enemy, ensure but population. the support indoctrination could developed envisioned of the two non-military. enemy was on Giap they Vietnamese inuence plan what based the and the Nguyen for encompassed social even through support by Vo plan was to military and and plan men power psychological population two – detailed The won force Non-military commander and their and army of economic, also The the the Vietnamese primary intimidation. a objective Vietnamese supply of With this recruits, Class discussion food, What would it be like to be a civilian information and and of taxes. For example, money gained through direct taxation caught between these two sides the sale locally grown rice or opium was used to purchase weapons during the war? smuggled Of through course, the lens for of read tried to to had a place for a their The for. The military The form rst revolutionary occupying direct, actions This attacks. watch When Minh their While the Viet in guerrilla This meant supplying out Minh’s phase A Ho all tactical ranks. of French to from Giap his Viet saw or her Minh discussions The end of result which the exactly for and integral context the Viet they recruits or units and commissars of Communist political ocers. In many could broader what the the safe regional the mostly of this each struggle is used to denote rather low-level functionaries up to cabinet “ministers”. were the communist governments, “commissar ” US to than force. in into the the small While larger to prey hunt overgrown the outposts, were countryside positions vast of by any Ambushes, forces. the the avoid repower detachments their the weaker was distinct the for after the landscape, a well. shouldered Giap from Viet up away fairly that characterized French small by force war, the from defeated was superior was holed melted three objective regional plagued very Minh, war Giap’s in assumption main with emerged number in deployed on additional knew of recruiting, by who often enemy be the of traps and French were as distributed immune fact, through programme members knew said Giap’s relatively guerrillas them. to case end, booby were the they landscape the carried be based phase” towers mobile not not In the the the soldiers was this that was focused nationalistic them. was in among was regularly literacy consciousness, force, within effort strongly were A participated confrontation and occupiers very Viet To generally in force a soldier this ghting could “guerrilla assassinations, French of force, force. who follow itself each ensure Minh phase large-scale French. others same would of actions Viet tracts army informants individual who phases. the of motivated independence. ghting To and with indoctrination. consciousness system non-military albeit population. The and commissars deeply soldiers issue. propaganda political was this this ideology, illiterate effectiveness. operated Minh states. pamphlets largely ideological military Viet Political a address ideological the the communist component. and neighbouring steadily the regional Minh much built ofcers his forces, were of the ghting regular training trained force. and in China 71 3 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y at Mao’s Bac. In combat this base infrastructure hand Mao’s almost By to August PLA 1950 the ammunition, eventually The mobile Minh’s Minh’s Ho weapons established that a and food strong produced drag and and they be forces. for forces stores in Viet communication small would arms, mines to the PLA of actions Giap grew then the to ow the and it be ranged easier ability to including success of emulate, trekked delivered more of to his large over this tied the they tracts It was to of land, lines isolated harsh were around Viet supply these over Viet forces As division-size strategy. as the larger destroy artillery, regularly, everything conventional both lengthening move south Artillery, supplied opportunity. thereby China, Indo-China. war. with moved of in south. were Chinese phase mainland war guns the targets Giap’s never from from the responsibility along, required, could short the experience crucial French In of began guerrilla to regular It also “mobile” mixed was looking and Forces nature anti-aircraft link. the outposts. supplies the phase them. absolutely to the commanders and rail French and Nationalist Material arms territories to 80 Minh. move war the transformed xed to isolating that stockpiled and “factories” swept actions formations the a strength seeking was even small regional northern all Giap Giap about Viet on needed large-unit and and instantly advise Giap school. area grenades. When it W A R S a units and landscape capability the crude Class discussion road system or paratroop operations. How is Mao’s doctrine reected in the The nal phase of revolutionary war according to Giap’s plan was a general organizational structure of the Viet offensive in which the Viet Minh would wage pitched, conventional battle Minh? What are the advantages and with the French and sweep them from the country. This phase would disadvantages of such an approach? broadly correspond to the campaign at Dien Bien Phu. L TA Thinking and research skills Mao Zedong developed a model of revolutionary war that directly and indirectly aected the thinking of revolutionary leaders from Giap to Castro. For each of the following wars complete the table below, outlining the phases of revolutionary war as adapted by Ho and Giap. Based on this comparison, discuss with a par tner the extent to which the model is eective. War Algeria 1954–1962 Cuba 1957–1959 Congo Crisis 1960–1965 Nicaraguan Revolution 1974–1979 72 Guerrilla phase Military Non-military activities activities Protracted/mobile phase Military activities Non-military activities Oensive phase Military activities Non-military activities 3.4 Operations Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ How well did Viet Minh operations correspond to their strategy? ➔ How well did French operations correspond to their strategy? ➔ How did the nature of combat in Vietnam change as the war wore on? Key concepts ➔ Continuity ➔ Change 1946–1950 When it would moving the their Bac the After regular where the their would paratroopers. support Ho it out would would Vietnam, urban of be such their war the harm’s areas base subsided these awaiting and Viet way. as not Minh This Hanoi negotiation concentrated meant into operations had disengaged narrowly in rivers nish and force The the that on retreating the from wilderness north were slipped not an and for of the While they to would on top link up Clear rest this the for an Viet the would Viet Minh success, survival up Viet soldiers while the ambush The to In motorized with moving more the of amphibious foot. lost of initial constant try attempt River surprised ghting the on would depended. column trucks by by land a the After island, navigable over up drop hampered journey away. road capture. armour progress, their a paratroop The right Meanwhile up French strategy paratroopers moving became the their virtually Bac. escaped column. sluggish French kilometres paratroopers The to 225 Viet 1947 which dropping in amphibious relief making sabotage. by October upon 1,000 movements. the the Lea, area move in punch enemy An himself however, they of force knockout headquarters infantry were that fate codenamed surprise Minh they monsoon the operation and the war. achieve to evident French-controlled Viet of became determine road and forces Minh than road and forces the Class discussion French, the they superior December or the French 1947 territory There achieved were no major and repeat. attempting, interrupted north-east, forces. yielded goal of avoiding Further little French lasting a large-scale operations impact on Viet in battle with November Minh ghting and ability What does the outcome of Operation Lea indicate about the nature of the war? controlled. incessant ambush, their Slightly with this military frustrating varied brutal there were efforts routine larger Viet success, routine. 28 large to On by of either side guerrilla Minh regional overrun RC4, or French the ambushes in war in 1948, – regular outposts, dominant 1948 simply patrol, road alone. pacify, force units occasionally in the French General 73 3 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y Alessandri supply of spent food threatening The a major series Giap Giap’s French began advantage in large road This ordered hunted down stumbled out French Viet Giap Ho last and phase prove and them of jungle think their Dong a a that Khe The in they at the dense the bogged only Battle of Route the time was model. the 600 them on to two RC4 was all the Minh last survivors Ofcially missing. Coloniale 4 move battles the groped Viet or of had Once men. ripe The push narrow it the dead to fort down When of war as the then 8:1 one a evacuees. forces. He his of up results 4,800 perhaps revolutionary column vegetation, numbered China. efforts evacuation the connected leveraging same with French that French Minh’s seriously from evacuating column up the the with Viet September. assaults, column link road in planned yielded the to a cumbersome casualties, victory RC4, the sweeps, approaches coincided jungle. jungle on the infantry enemy 6,000 at execute destroyed Minh to of centred guarding isolated the listed stunning ght. attack to the the were of and moving the through troops move Meanwhile through French of squeeze pacication wave RC4 by previously. hopelessly the up to and outpost This effort attempting patrol 1950 the after dominated years of to outposts men. column 1949 ability shelling wave of extensive operation of outposts. most by unleashed a W A R S of This tempted to the 1950 would wrong. 1950–1954 Flush with decided new to take surrounding would, end de of 1950 and ghting wave after a and assaults Minh air started. they by over one at wet for the nal have movement, of pillboxes, in total, de go at help at the suggest phase of the that to the Lattre the Viet sought blockhouses to and dubbed River, in The Giap In the but leaving relied restrict De Giap of not their and his war but to French from May Lattre Vicious until establish threw the Viet They the three 9,000 forces the destroyers before after air the human not tried model French de 1951. Delta. and By soldier. repulsed retreat, casualties. Jean area that dead behind. were and power rains weeks not that and yet while heavy centres. strong the to revolutionary Minh January power defenders that Delta Vietnam. General March. countryside, urban from bombardment Day retired, to in defences the seem the of Minh the – Undeterred, end Ho counteroffensive” air Giap and Tonkin experienced Yen naval Viet Minh and Giap lowland French French the favoured Viet the Vinh French along “great forcing a China, the commander on of 1,500 at points closer inevitably sweep casualties. controlled ruled Understanding the the rst in the new Minh weather battles a be aggressive again leaving more to reliance 5,000 with ghting may had from French model, Viet Delta several three ordinance 74 the the back The brutal ready in was clashed Lattre’s support, had attacked These French supplies the demanding, de suffering Minh of a the and to This to Lattre and foothold Viet the – de ght Hanoi. according Tassigny Giap weapons the on, that points Lattre and were very movement by throughout Line. De Lattre good at, building the north tried to – a line 1,200 tempt C H A P T E R Giap into none of suited the battle it, him. French weapons carried force Much and to the complete airstrip. than remote prepare base. The Viet Minh use had and to long he outer the of took be too the be a while the the their have situation form Viet around of the Minh regional 110 000 amount by of war, massing force regular modern air, the his patient the and not try operation. Bien heavy that – which had to That troop the more of large them overrun high overrun ground the to such that a for he French stockpiled operation from strength. entire be an needed artillery to and ghting, some he to count San scheme French artillery upon Na liberating wanted Supplies at hinterland could defences new learned on the encounter, surrounding own aireld base thereby intelligence of a after this he in support outer this in if air of Minh-controlled base and, Giap thoroughly hold Viet such ring from depended. in a heart system. and a and November took vital Dien of signicant artillery supplied take early at typical and would when ever-increasing lessons road concept 1954 the had established in placement would defences spring of accurate eliminate base” – to the Giap artillery, French more more “air-ground siege sides could on areas monotony They San dangerous needed an established Na battleeld observation could that and troops, The took general only O P E R A T I O N S Chinese. areas. 000 Both and the He 10 Minh attack secure 1952 advantage attacked Viet to engagements By frustrating French the thereafter coming the the but jungle establish disposal others. posts crude to by lowland with the actions. material Giap 1951, 1952 for his the repulsed. useful the at break their outside was men supplied countryside, where of guerrilla soldiers Seeking in from patrolling out weapons again emerging 3 . 4 : base would for and a its come in Phu. Dien Bien Phu Most discussions between the need truth lies March off praise to and in nd May the the a victory position this battle had and armour to time, of A make deterring sorties his a been it to to in French the a oblige, that to air, had jungle had long sought been the a is waver and history that Viet large, looked in 1951 remote for May allow had the General the between Minh faced invading Ho at to a to to the ght. a negotiate naval, the Dien sound stage air French Bien change over method neighbouring to a and demonstrated, base used denied 1954 Navarre, was denitive such French seemed this be of dispute to Minh war. which also seem Viet aspects would that Phu the Vietnam of the of could in the thinking suggest Giap by in little. his all who force picking of Geneva battles for in who in Bien skill not in of Giap region Although seemed valley French As is battle and Dien As What begin counted intentions of Ho set place stand. territory the sizable resupplied command at and blame. nal was strength. take logic any base, into of to remote the where seemed Navarre’s strong Minh had over to a in superiority commander, Phu in 1954 negotiations decisive from it struggle in-between. 1954 By fateful resourcefulness Frenchman French war engagement. Peace a the the somewhere against Early of for Laos. large-scale French by the Viet mobility. 75 3 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y ▲ French soldiers at Dien Bien Phu. What role did ar tillery play in the Viet Minh victory? Whe n the atta cke rs 5:1. This ba ttle 1953, nume ric Giap supply ba se that porte rs. and of packed the in highlands atte mpts power the to supply Giap line s base at easy artillery Dien unusable the siege. their and the for Bien meant that unimaginable the to to wounded fragile airstrip, Minh effort As Viet could in but often as not the 40 link this it was would not, more of evacuated, battle. In i ts a ll , Hanoi. an it The French hills have the a that important the and later to and was in drift in to ammunition airstrip creating was o or. frequently the air t r o ops designed however, loss guns c a m o u a g in g va ll e y then we r e French u si n g into a s ur r ou n d in g T h os e became dug of c om ba t s he l l s com ba t th e with th e infa n t r y. tr ai ls . them. of u si n g quarter the i nt o 000 in t o positions, be of effo r t pu t along The the of N o ve m be r a r o c ke t jungle which shrank. fo r a bo u t period into hi l ls i de s. gunners for in ove r s l op e s dug air long c a r ri e d wa s the needed Minh an d s u p p ly m a t e r ia l the Viet late this energy Fr e nc h an the a Minh of bat t l e e l d” and s te e p s up pl y defenders the i nto the Vi et f a c t or b as e th e march st e e p th e perimeter suffering up the m o r ta r a of the were th e by p r o du c t tru c ks the dug t he parachute. in up m uch supply the defensive the on had for of i nt e r r up t As a g a i ns t large by drifted g un s ca r r y i ng Phu target the th e n a nd 1, 0 00 ro ute 1 95 4 “prepare a r ti l l er y, dragged depended positions food as t he r e - o ccup i e d on und e r ta ki ng Whatever French the be deplo y supply of a nd March d e fe n d e r s a m m un iti o n the frui tl e s s . human would French to discove r prove d massive a nd a l o ng se rvice 13 was Fr e nc h d e p e nde d va lle y ha d on Fr e nch m e th od i ca l ly thou s a nd s to themse lve s the to Fo o d cache d Hundreds th e s up e r i o r i ty After be ga n line s million co m me nc e d outnumb e r e d prepara tion. 76 W A R S as also scenes of C H A P T E R 3 . 4 : O P E R A T I O N S GABRIELLE B. Khe Phaï 1 4 Nam Youm P R B. B. Hiss Lam Kéo 1 4 BEATRICE Main P R ANNE-MARIE airstrip DOMINIQUE HUGUETTE ELIANE CLAUDINE B. Ong Pet Mt Fictif Mt Chauve 1 4 Co P R B. B. Pape My B. muoY maN Lai Secondary airstrip 14 ISABELLE Kho 1 KM PR ▲ French defences at Dien Bien Phu. In what ways did the The French positions at the outset of the Battle of ▲ battle resemble earlier conicts? What elements were new? French preparations French position bases, Gabrielle, Dominique ruins of support were got the and each to the be While used the enough and up, Minh too far itself the its in the from not rains that for from began. to out the base the in kept in in The the timber was could easily French support. and the not that was identify of placed Viet a was would and while quickly soupy too position the ght battle. far and as an Artillery managed. they strong wood important into Isabelle, central The built sufcient Isabelle guns they position inept. defences much poorly well-concealed positions camouage. position, for was were available hills position the could before central lacking but on positions outer The hilltop peril. and southern of Claudine, centred assaults position artillery, the Huguette, execution central anything numbers Giap’s re. Minh thorough. perimeter these cover infantry central that of turned The Viet were outer position was its Minh’s an Isabelle, position local the of artillery sound, support timely and was Minh What of Viet central blunt any in Viet the theory reserve surrounding inadequate take or been drainage artillery isolated A and the much Inadequate was could have reinforcement. for island, break hills withstand a interlocking to counter-attack the as consisted Anne-Marie position. stripping once away Phu defensive with may on spotters targets. mess to plan to steel used other sloppy surrounding The designed as Bien Beatrice, Eliane, central fortications were Dien village. further could at Dien Bien Phu They themselves 77 3 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y were easy targets. obliterated the two French French artillery to the amassing their of ● concealing able to the French main the re of on heavy gunners after had which suicide. a woeful Everything surprises Minh positions, that and negligent Giap did seemed guns and so artillery supply these effectively attacks on the as on guns to outlying anti-aircraft engineering positions, Although the casualties in guns the for make posts to hills overlooking weeks them before severely Viet and tunnels attacks of on the or the on end invulnerable assaulting limit and them the use trench after French of were the and the in to the of French ever closer over-running overrun miserable. in positions, next the French to 15 The massive the Viet surrendered. for the French Minh then trenches while the pleas were of Giap’s outcome. March; locations. out, once start digging positions, closer Washington, forces by nothing. wounded and mounting Unable French American rejected. By Negotiations to get situation 7 in help, May L TA Fo r to aid the French at Dien Bien Phu? ca t e g o r i e s each time combat changed period given. stayed analyse What the (continuity ca n same and the be day. nature said throughout Strategy/tactics Equipment Leadership combat the the according degree war and to the which to the the degree to nature which it change)? 1946–1950 Forces involved of about 1950–1952 the Geneva Thinking skills Why did the United States not intervene to their notwithstanding defenders signalling these or and inevitability French from setbacks battle, March sort central food French commenced a the accomplished debated the 13 toward helpless although the Viet Minh counter French air power? tunnel suffered of by Gabrielle periodically ammunition was on seemed concentrated and Minh course erupted counter-attacks last to strangling displayed there Beatrice Viet Minh anti-aircraft guns at Dien Bien Phu. How did capability slowly the courage battle, of a included: gunners artillery 78 based Viet bases. the Class discussion be These the artillery committed opponents. amounts sufcient French outer ▲ to battle French power having the the camp having ● seemed their support concentrating air into major commander defenders. large being ● days three positions ● ● the preparations surprise the Two of underestimation ● W A R S 1952–1954 3.5 Eects of the Vietnam War Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ What was the signicance of the French defeat for other wars of decolonization? ➔ How did the French defeat aect the Cold War strategy of the United States? Key concepts ➔ Consequence ➔ Perspective The complete come at killed dead Ho a and at over over achieved Geneva, a Chinese united, years. a be one pass. the in Instead, which he against never a shore Treaty Laos The the French Africa and Morocco of to did the Dai. in Indo-China French put its of United forces the had were Viet Minh fell strength States short and of in even giving had been ghting the 17th parallel, at some later under North his ed the date, albeit control became North political Cong US that in a of his him for the nine thereby with Ngo 17th parallel This is the demarcation line between a Nor th and South Vietnam decided upon Dinh communist at the Geneva peace conference. state ingratiate the lost its region to him to the to the never secure South the Vietnam, the to who were came US to to support, Vietnam population surrogate, establishing South Geneva ght elections these within the operatives non-communist. French by guard but of returned continue stance position and wake South Unication meetings, his the military would sponsor. communist to in the and anti-communist Having in the ghters Geneva (SEATO) Diem’s – US South he anti- was sought East Cambodia Asia and communism. their control will Tunisia, The as its the little of position they at placed Minh Viet and effectively sapped and was Viet both presence a the however, which consolidate leader. spread from both conict behind used used dismantled had the Ho. after transferring Phu the Bao regime Organization fashion, Bien its French of estimates partitioned Vietnamese basis policies from of for was South opponents, up of stayed Diem popular the 000 Some negotiations, many years then his Buddhist to the of 80 frightened country The million the over wounded. country While Diem – negotiating Emperor many form held The leadership North, against of that resumption the the to the enemy. and would 000 goal strength Conference. the his collapse cost 000. independent different under 200 300 Instead Diem stunning human sponsors. ensuring Close and huge administration to Diem’s shrunk to both France’s ght of for which in a speedy government. colonial other and orderly defeat holdings colonial negotiated The to holdings at Dien North such independence as shortly 79 3 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y after the French W A R S withdrawal from Indo-China. The noted difference was TOK discussion Algeria. Dien How might the defeat in Indo-China aect nationalists the French national self-image? How guerrilla might this have aected future decisions lost about their empire? How might this seemed defeat be viewed in light of past French for Bien in illustrated particular campaign Indo-China to Phu by – what and a war and strengthen to could willingness their the Tunisia resolve world be to and in achieved suffer. For Morocco when general it came with the at and having negotiating to ght Algeria. military history? ▲ 80 Algerian determined French, the time a – Vietnamese General Giap briefs his ocers during the siege of Dien Bien Phu table Exam-style questions and fur ther reading Exam-style questions 1 Evaluate 2 Compare French 3 What 4 To and role what Discuss French defence contrast forces guerrilla 5 the in did power was the Dien military Indo-China air extent the of from play war in in Bien Phu. strength of the Viet Minh and the 1946–1954. the war in Indo-China Indo-China? from 1946–1954 a war? the reasons for the French defeat in Indo-China. Fur ther reading Duiker, William NewYork, Fall, Bernard. Karnow, Windrow, in 2012. 1964. Stanley. McDonald, Defeat J. Ho Chi Minh: A Life. Hachette Books. USA. Peter. 1983. 1993. Martin. Vietnam. Street Without Vietnam: Giap. 2004. The Weidenfeld W . Last Joy. A Stackpole History. W . Viking Norton. Valley; and Books. Dien Nicolson. Press. New Bien York, Phu London, Harrisburg,USA. NewYork,USA. USA. and the French UK. 81 Structuring your essay There is any structures, be broken down conclusion. a number separate of however, We into structure basic the section to certain three discuss Skills ways have parts: an introduction (see an elements page essay. and All form. sound An introduction, and a conclusion essay essay can body, in and more a detail in 149). Planning your essay In of time-sensitive the take a rst elements little thesis? time What evidence? exercises to will these you use also ensure your out will you a history Regardless use to with and remember the for support your get you all planning time your it? or focused your will any before ideas is usually pressure, essay. How qualier briey, keep to exams, of outline however efciently you IB brief you deal questions, time that the suffers. sketch evidence Where Answering that like you is should your order your counter-evidence? you on you What one start the into will task. the help It will essay. Writing body paragraphs Your 1 body Topic paragraphs sentence: argument with something example, the that support the in sentences) on between how you the Thesis: sea, and in of is argument surface French the or concerned. is not forces siege” at can part An of necessarily Dien be an argument Bien argued is correct. Phu For fought either in the These sentences you made sentence: paragraph. in the your which you This the carry out detailed topic is the where and thesis. argument are the This is paragraph supports how in It is and the in last you the historic “facts” sentence. sentence make thesis, these evidence command the link explaining sentences relate to that the terms. example: Question: the paragraph the elements: negative. material demonstrate question For the the the “The argument of separate paragraph majority the three essentially that evidence: the of Coordinating/transition (or 82 or Supporting is the statement for afrmative 3 This which generally effectively 2 consist Although Second and Examine air World the role superior War, operations. of technology strategy technology played also a in one role played a in 20th-century the vital Allied role in war. victory Allied in land, S K I L L S S E C T I O N : S T R U C T U R I N G Y O U R E S S A Y Sample paragraph Technology Battle of allowing allowed The improved the them for a to By Technological of ability surfaced and the the Allied Phosphorous attack higher development submarines. the Atlantic. more end of the nd submarines rate altimeter war the allowed and shells accurate ab solute improvements to star at night. of re German rate supplies the The when improved death vital sink improved the of vision Hedgehog attacking accuracy German to U-Boats night move during of depth airb orne submariners from North vessels charge submerged of the escort was system submarines. attacks 75 America per to on cent. Europe. Argumentative topic sentence related to the thesis and question Detailed historical facts that suppor t the topic sentence Concluding sentence linking back to thesis and elaborating on how the preceding material suppor ts the thesis General Introduction statements exploring Reminders ● for Support structuring your your assertions with the question essay: detailed historical Thesis statement evidence. Argument with ● Relate ● Order each paragraph your back arguments and to the thesis evidence and from specific question. least Argument convincing to most Avoid ● When being overly writing a 2 convincing. with ● 1 evidence specific evidence narrative. compare and contrast Arguments paper Argument and 3 supporting use an integrated approach rather than with an specific evidence evidence end-on ● Balance approach. your paragraphs as best you can. You Argument should withspecific not have one massive paragraph and several 4 evidence short paragraphs. ● Argument Only use material that is relevant to your with Just because you studied it and know it, 5 thesis. does specific evidence not Restate mean it should go in your essay. Stay focused thesis on statement the question and your thesis. Summarize to Conclusion ▲ relation command terms briefly What the overall structure of the essay may look like 83 4 T H E S PA N I S H I D E O L O G Y I N T H E C I V I L A N D 2 0 T H W A R : C O N F L I C T C E N T U R Y Global context The or Spanish last civil Civil war. 20th-century derives from turbulent history. laid its the time to world. already and all economic was laid and drought. low and ideology the high dislocation international and What rst of in in and the Britain, ways had economies tempted United new, States of the helped stage. on post-war bring a the Fascism cooperation in self-sufciency. trend in international relations limited to took the to new regimes. economic and Most a cure for their economic at of these some point history. form in Britain the 19th had raised at was and divide were France, the were exact time taking were ideologically based in Countries reluctant hostile a hold Germany. outright of states, to toward state, – the out coincidences in the and Spanish contradictions Civil War. were Economic isolationism, isolationism conict, and interventionism, the changing balance of in to in Europe all played a role in the tragedy an that art this or conuence isolation power their and other many industrialized diplomatic ills Italy In never the Union. ideological as of – as that depressed ideology dominant depression, powers Britain were had was played not sides third Soviet favour US, world before. unlucky isolationism such with an with of world This All uncooperative both engage new the the the landscape Three importantly, dealt was in that economically into ideological world. countries more never 1930s states new War ideologies expansionist other the World and, Some including had War. by had the forces. in was powerful before powers modern World most seen new post-First controlled were Depression was the the unemployment international confrontation the large signicance 1930s First of so Ideologically, Great the depression the its the France by record The of industrialized like being loom others powerhouse by the to eschewed of few savaged The years the from it context. politically like Those, been far does Much global Economically waste was why history? economically a War So became the Spanish Civil War. century. Timeline 1936 Popular Front wins national elections 16 February 12 July Calvo Sotelo murdered José Castillo murdered 13 July 17 July Generals uprising Nationalist troops own from Morocco to 27 July mainland by Germans Non-Intervention Committee meets 9 September Franco named commander of in London Nationalist forces 1 October Republican government evacuates Madrid and relocates to Valencia 6 October 84 USSR renounces Non-Intervention Pact C H A P T E R 9 October Nationalists begin assault on Madrid T H E S P A N I S H C I V I L W A R Popular Army formed 7 November 8 November Italian “volunteers” arrive in Spain 4 : International Brigades arrive in Madrid 22 December 1937 February Battle of Guadalajara Battle of Jarama 8–18 March 26 April Guernica bombed May Days (ghting between POUM/CNT 3–8 May and PSUC/UGT militias) in Barcelona Juan Negrin replaces Francisco Largo 17 May Caballero as Prime Minister of the Republic Republican government evacuates 14 December Valencia and relocates in Barcelona 1938 24 July End of Ebro campaign Republican forces begin Ebro oensive 16 November 1938 26 January Franco declares war ended Barcelona falls to the Nationalists 1 April 85 4.1 Causes of the Spanish Ci vil War Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ To what extent did the divisions within Spain reect political and ideological divisions within Europe at the time? ➔ To what extent was there a non-military solution to the political problems facing Spain in 1933–1936? ➔ What did each side seek to accomplish at the outset of the war? Key concepts ➔ Cause ➔ Consequence ➔ Perspective Long-term causes: a fragmented country Divisions cut Regionalism loyalty to groups had often across and Spain some in terms regions, These divisions parties prior and to of Land were of Civil Half century, still of the a At the land by in the root and deal of end by of other parts other that of areas peasant political the anchored was the trumped many differences production small, Spain countries, was and While dynamic, myriad Spain were methods. In landholders, owned by the in by traditional the a forces in mere of the right in relatively 50 000 secularism society, spectrum, 50years conservative political Spanish political organizations, throughout concentrated inuence of economic direction. often estates. across rocked and Galicians agricultural army Spain conceivable country cooperation. vast country in other and many though great the in and dominated took church Church, education. As the reasonably was reected across had national and every Catalans, historic industrial War. landowners, Catholic of that about fractured Basques, dominated were ownership families. form strong ideologies the just linguistic, agriculture others in any in localism whole. cultural, while The a economically backward triad as precluded were Spain even Spain. few individuals. in the 19th especially regionalism anarcho-syndicalism again inuenced the formation of political and ideological movements. A political doctrine that advocates In industrial areas, such as Barcelona and other parts of Catalonia, a form replacing central governments with of anarchism that was based on trade union principles became popular. decentralized, worker-controlled This anarcho-syndicalism advocated decentralized, worker control committees loosely based on a trade of factories, as well as the other stock and trade of unions – shorter union model. Found in numerous working weeks, higher wages and better working conditions. If anarcho- countries such as France and Italy, syndicalism was largely an urban phenomenon, its country cousin was it achieved its greatest mainstream more traditional anarchism. This movement, strong in poor, rural areas success in the Confederación Nacional such as Andalusia, sought a revolution leading to a vague combination del Trabajo (CNT) in Spain. of 86 land redistribution, decentralized authority and freedom from taxes. a C H A P T E R This revolution spontaneous Anarchism Spain. from was Variants the late Stalinists By was action the dizzying not of of of the the about by creative only But War, even had the C A U S E S vague the T H E combination plying its were views trade struggling argued political O F S P A N I S H C I V I L W A R of masses. been Marxists different and of ideology Socialists these organizations equally socialism Trotskyites. Civil an potential left-wing and century. with the array come Marxism 19th feuded time to and 4 . 1 : 1930s support fractured. with had in for trade unionists. produced a parties. Short-term causes: the failure of the Second Second Republic The system of government that governed Republic and the Popular Front Spain from the abdication of Alfonso XIII in By April 1931, popular support for the monarchy had been completely 1931 until the end of the Spanish Civil War. eroded. into When exile and the army general centre-left parties wasted no time clerical legislation. collectives new to and many the those on dent in There under the the a great General the of elections politics, strikes of and Asturias, a Spanish left who had – of and left left by this the be Azaña’s nor left by process reached and resist time the to a of an the rise the to in govern. strategy was especially popular in made for furious. left more to it well response to the rise of Fascist and other right-wing par ties during the 1930s. Popular Front governments were formed in France and Spain during this period. the than a with Spain Both a new had in a two supported not 1933. of government wave reforms. short-lived the Morocco. the fate years defunct. abandoned interpretations the To of of some the on German and others, the The declaration region earlier To in rivals. new Azaña’s in of faith political The The Spanish enough revolt avoid – – 1932 government were new their from Nazis revolt Civil Republic’s liberals This off serious to the the nature have to The August down that of right ignore troops the put founded. or in throughout power. trust attempt of thus defeat right-wing par ties. The retired enough they designed to prevent vote splitting and order anarcho-syndicalist limits setting more Asturias left easily unstable seemed Spanish In course, little middle-class crescendo was radical trusted a the reverse far cooperation between left-wing par ties The forcibly government. largest to left, to right, opposition the perhaps, began hardened to the right of rebellion continued coalition the was, conservative reected were, revolt of in was the While the A political strategy of electoral state. far Popular Front anti- changes go of encouraged divorces. not made coalition government and and such the a slunk Spain. rose degree and right he eviction, and did they revolt CNT, disturbances 1933 Catalonia that not the legitimacy. right-wing the failed by conrmation could and immediately left, to force, the denounced crushed were also disturbances the who police While radical the by rural opposition decision-making autonomy and the suspicions of as labour While alienating demonstrated November government in new government they the bringing democratic happy, dissatised of new rising force Neither the The church marriages XIII, brought from split conservative poverty of Azaña. pensions. succeed year tenants civil left Alfonso agricultural, illustrated immediately unrest. deal Strikes of full of that ofcially army, The people Sanjurjo. it the left. national Sanjurjo’s convinced. The – and of Manuel protected political cooperation Republic, was of by sweeping them widespread form monopoly of support June recognize reforms ordinary organization the the did with faced. of its in led laws would extreme of a New the was Guard, enacting granting members only power, inuence ofcers, majority elections cooperatives, some part in government reduce Not to withdrew it was constitution indicate a 87 4 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y profound rested. lack Either entrenched of W A R S faith in the interpretation that no democratic seemed democratic to system point process could to upon which political reconcile the Republic differences so them. Spanish political par ties 1936–1939 Left Confederación Anarcho-syndicalist Centre Right Basque Nationalist Par tido Carlists King–church par ty Right-wing par ty union Nacional del Nacionalista Vasco Trabajo (PNV) (CNT) Unión Militar Anti-fascist army Confederación Anarquista Ibérica Republicana ocers’ organization Española de (FAI) Antifascista Derechas (UMRA) Autónomas Federación Militant anarchists coalition (CEDA) Par tido Comunista Spanish communist Par tido Sindicalista Syndicalist par ty Falange Spanish fascist par ty par ty (PS) de España (PCE) Par tido Obrero de Unicación Marxist–socialist Unión Republicana workers’ par ty (UR) Spanish socialist par ty Izquierda Moderate Republican Bloque Anti-parliamentary par ty Nacional par ty Moderate Republican Renovación Monarchist par ty par ty Española Marxista (POUM) Par tido Socialista Obrero Español Republicana (PSOE) (IR) Unión General de Socialist trade union Fascist army Unión Militar ocers’ Trabajadores Española (UGT) (UME) organization Par tit Socialista Catalonian socialist par ty Unicat de Catalunya (PSUC) Comintern Immediate causes: the Popular Front and the A shor t form for Communist International, Generals’ uprising an organization that originated in the As was perhaps predictable, in 1936 the pendulum of Spanish electoral Bolshevik seizure of power in Russia. Its politics swung back to the left. The Spanish left had embraced an mission was to coordinate and promote electoral strategy encouraged by the Comintern and practised in the spread of revolutionary Marxist- France, known as the Popular Front. This strategy took the lesson of Leninism throughout the world. Although the Nazi rise in Germany, where inghting among left-wing parties it contained representatives from many had allowed the Nazis to elect candidates across the country, and countries, it was largely directed from aimed to prevent Azaña and it from happening in other western democracies. Moscow and eventually became little more than a tool of Soviet foreign policy. 88 Indalecio Prieto, a leader of the Spanish Socialist Party C H A P T E R (PSOE) parties wing In proposed to avoid the Spanish candidates not other new was a any that and no not but When Española cabinet. the sought to that had had did The unied C I V I L W A R right- deep not of a lack both to the political go at run cooperation home the and 1930s. extreme of able did of the a It right in was from election, of those agree want. in In the tactics. thus right. not directly to ideological electoral united while faith democracy, and beyond longer they not electoral combination no that that stop beyond were did moderate parties done. problem word, of particular to the left-wing part, type anarchists, parties had settled, Robles, even proving Their proposed by cooperating encouraged on what that sense, in their they didn’t the democratic traditionally the of (CEDA) alarm in Azaña’s leader though April in a Popular the system, practised, the were intensied Front right-wing raised there 1936, no could alarm no of Azaña real had carried Confederación Marxists when despite government the face ofcers, of that 1936, of had labour some in a Calvo provided The an on impending the was elevated escalation been strikes a their to street of a r m y, of post their the Carlists bring civil ghting military while and other scheme. Azaña bases plotting with a the right- were The fact peace and between rebellious rival cadre of required. right-wing pretext from from and able the remote specically was Sotelo, the in and a r m y, a away Falange by obstinate contact Generals action to rebels made not the drastic moved three Mola the posed vocally transferred the support. support Republic most were stop rising. seeking the the was Franco not military to to isolate Moda did persuaded July threat and This assassination 13 Gil and Goded A z a ñ a ’s junior urgency the Autónomas the persuaded parties on S P A N I S H left-wing more concentrate the most this cooperate to out dust General groups, stability The T H E Spain. President divide organizing both O F policy. support. wing the designed still to vote, developments Hitler policies takeover leadership. Generals to the born in for centre-left trusting Derechas of as The Nevertheless, post a of on was not Understanding of various relatively order While an elections. electoral collectivist it solution Predictably, de and, strategy, was in political gave vote. freedom communist to between the left-wing cooperation sense to seldom the day. the agreement Front preserve 1936, participated the previous members the against other. legitimately, traditional Popular its Europe platform in members want, Spain, short-term electoral Azaña each defensive power parties be in of a differences to of radical organizationally parts There more against essentially taking elections and cooperated The cooperation splitting C A U S E S parties. Republican was electoral vote 4 . 1 : for the monarchist general’s politician Class discussion military What makes a government legitimate insurrection. Despite planning, the insurrection did not go smoothly in the eyes of the citizens? What can a right from the outset. The garrison in Morocco rose ahead of schedule government do to increase its legitimacy? and had to wait for Franco to arrive before proceeding further. 89 4 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y The Republican rebellion, infancy. arming del did Trabajo army. the Civil such Oviedo fell to and led centre and local Events in the garrison to as it was was local arming a the This in price the city of country of ba ttle As by surrende r. The control 90 the From the of as in city industrial Republic the and rebels, become a War. the obtain condence, Republic. the revolt could with units bring the of of and cases, thus the whether the loyalty some would Civil army sufcient the the in elements defeated saved garrison and If would town whe r e discord. the rising, round under the for parties, the on the of the a nd areas of In the help of lo y al against p oi nt, in of ci v i l the 12 wo uld was of and the and and the seriously l oyal i s t rebels. the impair 000 the the help h o l d in g s coast, Sp a i n. Th e fou g h t s ol d i er s of loyalists, urged be the In e a st th e of fro m the s t r on g h o ld a Ana rqu i s t a run n in g the l o cal Ge n e r a l the he a r t g ov e r n m e n t of e ar l y i nc lu d i n g be n e t t i n g Federación gu a r d s, w ou l d clear; government militias also c o n t r o l, g ove r n m e n t , a cce p t event militia divisions c en t r al the wit h B a r ce l o n a ho w e ve r, in a n a r c h o - s yn d i c a l is t f a v ou r th e The central any empowering A n da l u c i a n n or t h con ju ncti on in side. r e be l of with of government moot armed would maintained he s i ta ti o n l oy al . in whose Republican he l d the local arming strong remained was the the rebels. eventual war, p a tchw o r k tur ne d it The the all was the Madrid r e be l s large which point however, for in manpower however, on dislodging parties. Republican limited argued so, The the themselves very force stormed. p r i s o ne r tha t had doing throughout of facing ofcers of victory, s tr e e ts pa ttern, By g o v e r n m en t ti d e a of these a a nd C NT the the n only for its Nacional rebellion In and militia the barricaded Loyal option T he the with throug h himse lf, them dilemma political re ma i ne d (FAI), fought authority government this of depend the the rebels barracks orga niza ti o n garrison. Spain. only for Seville , Ba rce lona, Ibérica the the organizations local momentum, execute times prod uce d also to thus rebels determine the had Barcelona, thus workers’ who off a in hesitated rebellious factor. the in Guards could monopoly between Ma drid, poor with hand of revolt Confederación and stave throughout militias. its insurrection. capita l, the the effectiveness pa ttern the the would ghting to Barcelona local gain 2,500 in variety disagreements Republic to party the and The of sided against garrison. up rely really armed control. the giving governments the submit July, storm be action anarcho-syndicalist illustrate When 19 various would the also the the determining the it the Nationalists. Madrid on clear, resist warnings crush organizations to on other action leaders, ignoring to (UGT), country the the acted allowed political of the himself. If became left-wing resistance not. they after enough repower Catalonia, quick would was government. which or crisis Guard On local Goded if soldiers however, control of fast Trabajadores often the the level, successful most the of Madrid, depended were Republican weapons the de throughout instance, local of other Republic General the and Nationalists. help of scope General actions for the by was up The in sufciently insufcient Guard the centre On but cultural with the (CNT) their act Unión manpower the government not Once the W A R S Goded rebels of to l o ya l is t r e t a in e d n on - g ove r n m e n t a l C H A P T E R organizations to establish forces, the or in p l a ce s contro l . As a governme nt whe r e f o rm wa s of t he y army ce nt r a l 4 . 1 : wa s C A U S E S too c on t r ol , O F po or l y e ve n o ve r T H E S P A N I S H C I V I L W A R o r g a n iz e d its own weak. L TA Communication and social skills Choose from one of the following three groups: “Left” parties, “Centre” parties and “Right” parties. Draft a set of policies that you would enact if you were to form the Spanish government in 1936. Be sure to have policies for each of the following categories: ● Agriculture/land policies ● Industrial policies (hours of work , factory ownership, etc.) ● Education ● Social/cultural policies, including policies on religion Present your policies to the rest of the class. Spanish Civil War, July 1936 Spanish July Civil War 1936 Bilbao FRANCE BASQUES PORTUGAL Madrid Barcelona REPUBLIC OF SPAIN BALEARIC ISLANDS Seville Cadiz Territory held by Nationalist Territory held by Republican forces forces MOROCCO ▲ Spain was divided quickly on the outbreak of the Civil War between loyalist and nationalist forces. What factors might have aected which side would establish control of a region in July 1936 before any major engagements had been fought? 91 4.2 C ombatants Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ What were the relative strengths and weaknesses of each side at the outset of the war? ➔ Which side had the advantage in terms of international suppor t? Why? ➔ To what extent did ideology play a role within each army? Key concepts ➔ Continuity ➔ Change ➔ Perspective At the well start of matched Nationalists their start the distinct war in July As gained across war. in numbers. steadily opponent of difference ▲ the in From training, the the in 1936, the very and by overall forces progressed, numeric country skill the war a superiority, third beginning, weapons, within 18 the months there Nationalists was of a having the large the advantage. A Republican soldier keeps watch. To what ex tent were the Republican forces made up of professional soldiers? What role did this play in the outcome of the war? 92 fairly outnumbering however, the were however, C H A P T E R 4 . 2 : C O M B A T A N T S The Republicans The Republican remained with loyal (POUM), themselves before army. the strategic a the and for a of revolution was factories debated thought they at the within that an this eliminate by ostensibly the PSUC taking the The and the could POUM not serious distraction Localism when, albeit military structure. to the of of that these this the 500 Largo as the Barcelona the in in PSUC/UGT lay dead government of this was as a such impossible. In Asturias, the have of both committees of All de Moscow, actions Nationalists regain – divisions thus members action could relief what though of against planning. to even result. was however, Unicat escalating Caballero’s a military from and streets militia towns war. number the social policy Socialista of against that dangerous POUM a Catalonia, liberals, Comintern series endless cities, Social forces. confused victory believed the Partit ghting or very Rival and over attention most in struggle – various difcult were Countless POUM/CNT numbers far city been local of Oviedo, more more important example. moved Republican Asturias and from military defence for A very initiating Moderate the resigned hard their the in Marxist of the political militias goals Republic the over effective militias of he the with weapons. of scale. plans, winning of depleted. sound Madrid units ensure number in the years Republican was overall War. ghting business long, Caballero system The a and and hindsight, objectives, reorganized The in Minister ofcers unied of members the the committees. from ghting the the energy one with national Communist open was a those Republic. pitted of split from deployed haphazard Days fought The the with hampered militias effectively Prime made also for days the perhaps in decisions on Civil goal from faced Ideological, process strategy. diverting direction leadership survive inghting miner May military POUM May three the anti-Stalinist ghting removed After as forces. culminating 1937. of seize them independence workers’ arm turbulent but, between Even throughout part the Unicación to members operational were de that associated Nationalists. tactical regional local was Barcelona, militias. There militias to them supply the impossible overarching Republican sought and over leadership. by military Obrero managed arm to the managed volunteer negotiation. folly, the (PSUC), to time difference the by to fragmented to and run was as and contradictory integral Catalunya were close Anarchists same perceived Ideological and Partido coordination strategic prioritized were the of various militias they began exploited contradictory. Nationalists. and on and who those made as as stockpiled reluctant training was well such had eventually compromise times with chaotic level they elements as These enthusiastic, developed example, the that FAI. was differences was local at it and consensus committees rounds and military fact Command Gaining and weapons crisis, the organizations CNT War brave lacked difcult, comprised government, government growing militias on with Civil The Although and the working-class Marxista the forces to in to forces new address September into a Popular soldiers commissars, the of more Army remained who were increasingly 1936 when traditional would hierarchical have ideologically Spanish he political “correct”. communists, 93 4 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y increased steadily important Stalinist control did roles to the to Much of used The were I-16 the Soviet was its used had by was the the refused government. command militias to as played conduits Popular rift he for and Army, but which, submit The expanded came from facilities where little weapons to the widened become 109, sound were paper the combat in were when ever it right more tanks the aircraft bomber The The and in Soviet comparable to by sufcient tanks the was Polikarpov outmatched hands and hands. As and medium was ries, produced Republican aircraft. aircraft. generally including also assembled. SB-2 excellent on in USSR Republican Tupelov an Although Bf the ries remained armour, generally a help into on, CNT/FAI Spanish-made manoeuvrable, the the Soviet-built and ghter. bug” and did ofcers went support. Messerschmitt “the of further arsenal The class sturdy armed and factories army war commitments, artillery. models. of a numbers tanks up Soviet the drawn efforts manufacturing set German well and war. as were Caballero’s power Spanish fastest the communist the Soviets that Republican guns while pre-war the on the machine to of the and, reorganization ideological came dependent This elements authority Negrin advisors coordinate their central throughout as ideology. of little true W A R S were German Nationalists. The Nationalists The in Nationalists July such 1936, as areas the they numbers, men at as Falange including any one just Catholic as Nationalist who that The only was Nationalists The to be Soviet BT the military end Spain from By of and by frightened and able to militias, the The units war, to the other conscription were 300 General 000 would supported seizures political the overall elements land under the in their Nationalists conservative coalesced rebelled approaching Republican eventually had organizations increase Nationalists by that right-wing introducing were Carlist men. the the 87 in the number as dive the war from the tanks of have by such and Franco, leader of who the the the from a weapons was were air the elite more somewhat Moroccan more especially unied supplied well Messerschmitt Bf 109 when troops in the command the Panzer Republicans. sent later I Germany by ghter superior Germany Although by matched generally force. vehicles, by somewhat progressed. Nationalists. used was changed engagements, weapons bomber ghting This benetted these the forces Nevertheless Republican with excellent series as of such Stuka ght a also benetted quality in Nationalist Republicans. introduced. Aircraft counterparts would of of decisive Italy. Panzers and components strengthened Ju Carlists. military Nationalists and Junkers 94 that The weapons. in the Nationalists million were the ability than proved north. By of volunteers forces. conscription often the the These both ghting uniform a up by Falange Church collectivization. The and time. over landowners emerged made controlled, mobilized the were augmented its to Soviet the their early models was the and of model this outgunned tank by the C H A P T E R 4 . 2 : C O M B A T A N T S The International Brigades The western democracies, policies of victory, frightened were the often war at 30 the of many a into Spain publicly centre to Comintern. on the the extent be war, to the crucial the were presence, times such never as the in an most numerically other during disband the siege the was of the national the spread operated smuggled operated into the by battalions from the based Canada. Brigades and By fold Army. ghting major signicant hand, by conrming were Battalion effective of including interpretation again divided themselves Comintern volunteers ght some Brigades. against an the and stop organized battle facility, to not Comintern, a to Spain world, 1975.The each aid smuggling Europe, Republican were fought the the was the decided the Brigades on in to did from over by training Brigades, travel policies saw authoritarian ofcial generally western here against Such which International Mackenzie-Papineau into they all this death from government While Brigades Their seven the volunteers which debated. losses. as Republican to his and to adopted Nationalist countries, however, were that rudimentary were from ofcially a communism. stopped numerous but for democracy only coordinated until of these intellectuals, the countries and Britain, hoped volunteers and of Canada, Paris a such remaining The at There for communism held of in prohibition, one and spread not sympathizers in attend nationality, 1938 in organizations Franco the defence This USA opinion policies workers and Nationalist recruiting to France the unofcially of illegal cause. Soviet-dominated that were the represented Britain, communist it enlisting as and popular of made mostly and Brigades USA, for but people, Spain The terms Republican 000 into in they with Non-intervention Republicans, for as odds more fascism. such non-intervention an force and of suffered important Madrid. continues campaigns While the heavy morale certainly booster not a Class discussion long-term solution to the manpower counter to the heavy issues facing the Republicans, nor in Why would civilians from all over the world any way a support that the Nationalists received, the travel to Spain to ght for the Republicans? Brigades did buy time for the Republican Army in several key battles. Overseas support German suppor t Franco sought German planes to were carry to evident that stop as resources, with (air was the formed planes, maintain and dispatched of give those of arms, the planes them. was in Legion and The to from North that later the Africa, he too became Spain’s Spanish The the most The instability, a natural in Spain. bombers, as well Legion Nationalists signicant German ght Condor It that transport production. aircraft. to in Furthermore, supplied vehicles. request maintained benet arms a German still Europe. access for then border. Germany and however, Condor transport operate war, in 1936, Twenty Hitler could Germany tanks July Franco, southern necessary the to 25 grant. Publicly, policy France’s could as to communism foreign on early happy mainland. course small as than spread contribution, force) ghter the the especially artillery, material to victory Throughout Hitler more German she Nationalist from was immediately troops wanted situated aid leader This as the provided Luftwaffe consisted personnel the of to Nationalists 95 4 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y with a distinct match and it. The towns, Guernica, Second Spain, advantage, operations with the presaged World ghting was In at to wore as of the the resultant the War. uctuating contribution the W A R S civilian widespread all, any around one prove on Republican Condor into vital to 1937 000 the and of as in no 5,000 air the Basque targets personnel and Nationalists’ force Republican civilian German between had against casualties, bombing 12 time forces Legion 10 city of during served 000 victories, to cities men. the in This especially as 1938. Italian suppor t Italian Prime politics At the from outbreak personnel. with in By Franco, case of a (CTV), by as important Civil war, which the fought in as 70 in for the war, aid, the and and Spanish monarchists. material a secret receive tanks. contributing in Truppe included in a and agreement Spanish increase Corpo 900 in the both sizeable men hand reached would a aircraft his supporting had Spain, 000 700 throughout such dictator return to had further Mussolini army units, had nancially pledged Italian close army battles he 1936, Italian number Mussolini War, France The regular formations the with army. would well of Benito the November war Nationalist as Minister before support aid to the Volontaire militia These volunteers Italian number of Guadalajara. Soviet suppor t Stalin had to ▲ did in not enjoy supplying lead the the their forces of geographic Spanish world advantage allies. socialism He and was a that also Hitler torn distrust of and Mussolini between the a socialist desire and German pilots confer before a mission. anarchist elements in Spain. Domestic concerns, Five-Year Plans and To what ex tent did the German Condor Legion the purges also occupied Stalin’s energy. Nevertheless, by October aect the outcome of the civil war? 1936, Soviet forces. material Unlike the was arriving Germans and in Spain Italians, to who bolster the allowed Republican the Nationalists Class discussion to What are some arguments for and against German, Italian and Soviet intervention in the Spanish Civil War? purchase aid with came role. material Spain’s from the Much including of gold the inuence of ostensibly the to the create same Republicans Most and Brigades, with the Soviets commissars the forces on The recruiting combined Republican credit, reserves. USSR. political development on also the of responsible was and for at Soviet and planes organizational Brigades, ideological Soviet outright times for tanks important the by pay International ideological and this an the handled broader to Republican played control tension side, of had personnel. divisions conict hindered This within between the war the militias effort. The western democracies and non-intervention In evaluating Civil War domestic it and either side might be the desire own fear in the foreign the very of of response important thought proceeded TOK discussion is its a in a of avoid resurgent to the it was governed than any altruistic Popular ally offering to democracies that more the natural Britain, provoking western goals Although be cautiously ally, the remember policy war. to of to Front their any largely confrontation Germany. In a their support government counterpart support, Spanish by with in in because misguided France Spain, Italy and own for it of its attempt To what extent is intervention in foreign to limit German and Italian aid to the Nationalists, the French Popular conicts an ethical issue? Front 96 Prime Minister, Leon Blum, suggested a binding agreement C H A P T E R between nations that they remain out of Spanish affairs. The 4 . 2 : C O M B A T A N T S result Neutrality Acts was the creation of the Non-Intervention Committee, which effectively A number of laws passed in the US barred the sale of arms to either side in the Civil War, a stipulation that Congress sought to establish the US as was upheld by Britain and France and ignored by Germany, Italy and an ocially neutral country. The rst act, the Soviet Union. The result was to force the Republicans to rely even the Provisional Neutrality Act of 1935, more heavily on the support of the Russians, exactly what the British was intended to expire in six months and wanted to avoid. The US also refused to sell arms to the Republicans, prohibited American citizens from trading Roosevelt’s hands being tied by the Neutrality Acts. This, however, did war materials with belligerents involved not stop American oil companies selling oil on long-term credit to the in a war. Subsequent Neutrality Acts of Nationalists, as oil was not included in the Neutrality Acts. In the nal 1936, 1937, and 1939 expanded and analysis, non-intervention severely damaged the Republican war effort extended the 1935 law to include credit but had no real effect on the Nationalist forces. and loans. The acts did not, however, include the sale of oil. Foreign inter vention in the Spanish Civil War Country Association Ar tillery Armour Germany Nationalists 17 000 600 1000 200 Italy Nationalists 75 000 660 1000 150 3000 1000 1550 900 USSR Republicans Personnel Aircraft International Brigades United Kingdom Republicans 2000 France Republicans 10 000 USA Republicans 2800 Republicans 1000 Czechoslovakia Republicans 1000 Poland Republicans 5000 Hungary Republicans 1000 Yugoslavia Republicans 1500 Germany/ Republicans 5000 L TA Canada 300** Thinking and communication skills Choose either the Republican or Nationalist side. Write and deliver a speech persuading Austria* foreign powers to intervene in the war on Italy* Republicans 3350 your side. Be sure to include ideological * Although the German and Italian governments ocially suppor ted the Nationalists, considerations in your speech. Use any the brigades were formed by volunteers who chose to ght for the Republicans out of principle or ideology. audio or visual materials you can to enhance your plea. ** Purchased from French government before non-inter vention agreement 97 4.3 Operations Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ To what extent did the Republican and Nationalist forces get stronger or weaker as the war progressed? Account for the change. ➔ To what extent did foreign intervention play a decisive role in the battles of the Spanish Civil War? ➔ To what extent did tactics and strategy inuence the course of the war? Key concept ➔ Change ➔ Signicance The early days one major city government’s Morocco would the when carry revolt, increasing were the early After would be no old scores led to new a union of the with members. to Throughout Bilbao, the several attacks conquer 98 on rebellion. of sides the suffering violence in in used to – early November forces of that laid troops vital to there took to the settle enemies. This conquered Catholic in in in were no Granada generally repulse to form was war. offensive year. clergy, trade the Fame militia the and siege and legality forces 1936 that sides and violence. Nationalist September Franco’s sham the prove cause. communists Republican a side and beginning non-combatants. Nationalist Lorca stop of one the the slack the sides personal to for Moroccan both members anarchists, to on join the evident respective even to would Nationalist Citizens loyal transport up These in unlikely messages to marking and the anticipated refused became Falange García the it or legitimacy war, capital, out the whenever eventually of managed city, the army only stranded from relay take of remained were to Spain. their political retribution sought of generals, generally Madrid capital success of that planes in had came helped mainland, in were mainland, mainland Spanish control vigilante of Basque the the Frederico They the the the air the control remained generals ships transport to centres uprising Gibraltar naval Spanish increasing an the most defensive. to were Both poet in the the take troops the to for intervention number lend from the of violent further at regulars by Nationalists protection the of the eventual end any targets tribunals executed and afforded territory, while to rebels best which army Navy German uprising pattern Republican Africa quick navy, Spanish experienced initial opportunity the the industrial support international survival the Royal Moroccan most major Moroccan Logistical when saw Nationalists’ Spanish ordered the All The elite North Hitler transport the the British and from insurrection Seville. the The rebels troops of – the hands. government. corners. the of After it. the rst failing The on towards of to resistance C H A P T E R of Madrid rallying would point Ibarruri, for known Franco’s army German troops attacks also a most on fell. the but Clearly each of could not war. until and in the Basque and In the more Barcelona, against Republicans was the out Bilbao, battle of their between in against of hold capital, tension and more region one offensives by effort two would its pass!) Italian to gained communists military while not Basque when Delores launch region launching Republic. more to O P E R A T I O N S emotive of shall leading forces undermined organized of isolated year, 1937, the words (They arrival The The pitting pursued became in increase the June the warfare be the this Republican were of by failed. effectively parties open and Passaran !” used early the improvements into 1937 He the offensives more “No which progressed, concentrated Nationalists of atrocities left-wing broke a both years immortalized in materials. Nationalists ghting these three Pasionaria, bolstered the year various tension at of for Republic, La and Nationalist the experience, own, as was notorious As the Madrid, target against continue 4 . 3 : May 1937, anarchists. the were shooting other. San Sebastián France France Oviedo Burgos Burgos Barcelona Zaragoza Barcelona Madrid Madrid l l a a g r t g u Cáceres o r Valencia t u Valencia o P P Badajoz Córdoba Córdoba Granada Sevilla July 1936 August–September 1936 Bilbao France France Burgos Burgos Barcelona Barcelona Belchite Madrid Madrid l l a a g g r t u r Valencia o t u o Valencia P P Murcia Málaga March 1937 October 1937 International Republicans Nationalists boundar y ▲ Republican and Nationalist held territory, July 1936–October 1937 99 4 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S Bilbao and the north In of March Spain 1937 and the its Nationalists major was geographically and could proved difcult. commanders, Basques, they t. defending the skies This From the Republicans’ unwilling way to antiquated the and the both to its June the could defenders have artillery By the over a reduced 10 city June to by the a as the command of advantage. command, around the the pushed distinct this Basque of campaign Nationalist-held defences easily re. abandoned The forces Enjoying had also causes. the north territory personality challenged ying region. undermanned, and Bilbao. the region control practical Nationalist of and conducted Nationalists in Basque Republican-held and and region The Command independent the city Basque Bilbao. other Madrid the the of ideological aircraft Basque the ercely to force risk from from back centre reinforced. the region, air to bombardment and had March Basques over was its be orders The on not reecting ignored saw isolated therefore captured industrial Bilbao it were combination defences but territory were of aerial collapsing Nationalists. Guernica By in not the contesting north Condor cities the although it Basque did German commander ying German and a half the city the elds some create would and by part an to of bridge, carpet explain and their machine from many 300 massive Spain until usual city it city roads this the by was a was will – an of saw Pablo again a on killed in that military in spot. the The the democratic were in a There is the untouched the own goal. The the city decisions some not of allow The and the made as to ranging that to city Germans debate numbers horror force concocted views. of also with would republic. not air formal their levelling result bombing, artist press two designed factory left no of into the armaments was two Although German destroying immortalized work the for eeing civilians formed these city First Baron. population above. of the Red the air The by famous the the Nationalist was out the an undefended purposes, note, terror Basque Bilbao. Civilians tactic of value civilians Picasso a the as from bombing between the a Basques indication eeing were and the day, targeting targets of bombing military War. to region German launched carried 5,000. resist, terror led cousin gunned for World 1937 somewhere the to military However, story of Basque the against known market the essentially and carpet a deliberate Second in was targeted their two side, 26 over allowed Legion that Franco machine was Guernica, was by population were break of 1,700. taken side commanders painting important April partners civilians to its atrocity Spanish operational how ew doctrine gunning The Richthofen only lies Guernica. – campaign Condor Richthofen, propaganda the bombing German skies von bombing. probably the default von in the of by Manfred that on Luftwaffe elaborate reality by rely – Wolfram the and the was Guernica is terror later the the view terror two Because past that a of city bombers beyond argue city ace hours. swelled orthodox to the control Republicans April dominate bomb The the 26 to War Nationalist conduct On decision World 100 to towns. on the Spain, Legion and attack of day be in hung his in C H A P T E R 4 . 3 : O P E R A T I O N S Source skills What is evidence? The Spanish Civil bewildering sides. One of propaganda ▲ War range the was of was most the characterized propaganda distinctive use of by produced genres artistic of posters a by convey all posters this political from messages. the Spanish Look Civil at the War following and answer the questions. to (From left to right) 1 L ’industria Tex til de Cara a la Guerra. Poster, 1937 . A pro-union poster for the UGT (Unión General de Trabajadores). 2 “And you, what have you done for victory?” Poster issued by the UGT and the PSOE (Spanish Socialist Par ty). 3 Spanish Civil War poster, c. 1937 . “The farmer, too, is contributing to the war eor t.” Poster issued by the UGT and CNT (the anarcho-syndicalist union). Questions 1 What messages are conveyed by these posters? 3 Of what signicance historians 2 Does the use expressive value of of highly effects these emotional reinforce the language studying are the these posters Spanish Civil to War? and propaganda 4 Choose posters? an Spanish support organization Civil their War and involved create a in the poster to cause. Madrid Franco’s during forces the wrench the anarchist were war. city forces from and Nationalists back 1937. that to the From capital important unable Starting the the again point, despite rallying in to dislodge November Republicans. Republican and again however, the point fact for The army Franco the Republicans the from Nationalists International combined between that the the 1936, seemed resistance Republican to 1936 satised of capital to Brigades, forces November the tried to Madrid hurl and lay was the January siege an forces. 101 4 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S Jarama In another territory, there, in effort the The the and In elements US the their 14 of had The been losing the the major was air were thwarted, across between close goal but the of the fought to 40 and stop 20 000 tanks 000 and strong. Lincoln infantry. Understanding both link They sides advance. Madrid unable battle was from counter- fortied between were The including Brigade tanks. River hard Nationalist Nationalist and Republicans and Jarama were alongside Soviet the River. government the reinforcements, the ceased cutting Jarama 6,000 to Republican-held central across Abraham power had the Republicans rushed – able movement of artillery, tanks Brigades and the Nationalist force – rest relocated offensive Republicans Nationalist back and including Brigade February Nationalists each attacking situation, February a against Legion British from outnumbered, International the position. sides, Initially the off Valencia launched ground the the on end Valencia the of Madrid from Condor of and attacked By gave total gravity the 1937. German forces. cut Nationalists February pressed to specically to and throw costly to both men. Guadalajara The the Battle they cut off not Guadalajara were were In coordinate were able Initially, Once the ineffective to as use at left case from tank air equipment for similar each attacking CTV and routed force Republicans left as tanks. air The the battle fact, goal that was Italians the to 50 000 did tanks Republicans continued. forces counter-attack 6,000 they the cover Again the In meant approximately Republican Republican Italians by as Jarama. delays Jarama without effectively to but was defences. outnumbered a Like supported well more the pattern other, actions. established arrived The the the attack cover Jarama, ank. a support the against reinforcements Italian to independent this “volunteers” proved followed intended essentially Madrid. Italian of of battles casualties gave way. crushed and a the great deal ed. The Ebro oensive The Ebro also the sound early Gandesa, Popular city. and the Ebro and in last the major the into power military of of July but a after erce the to the were war. reached and unable The hammer the of losses occupy Nationalists the was With gained city huge to It 1938. Republicans ghting stalemate. artillery of mid-November advance Brigades bloody and operation to surprise, Republican International settled air end element The objective, the front superiority the from battle. primary Army The their its in was lasting preparation ground Class discussion offensive longest, the the used Republicans, who Why would Negrin, the Republican in turn were ordered to hold at all costs. The result was a war of attrition Prime Minister, use his army on costly that decimated the Popular Army, keeping it in a weak defensive position oensives rather than building strong for the rest of the war. In the end each side lost about 60 000 casualties, defensive positions? losses 102 that the Nationalists could weather, but the Republicans could not. 4.4 Eects of the Spanish Ci vil War Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ Why did the Republicans lose the war? ➔ How did the Nationalist victory aect European aairs between 1938–1945? Key concepts ➔ Signicance ➔ Consequence ➔ Perspective Why the Republicans lost As the war territory large of 1938, but of and Britain 2 The April and ofcially and with into a these were lost and often able notably to Moroccan capability militias in of the other their the they and power War soldiers had of to the the the gain of the Republican continued the 1939 to France legitimate surrendered and effective For with their they Nationalists whereas valuable the was in 1937, Nationalists received, Legion. The efcient the The Republicans victory part, aid the primarily Condor fought Stalinists. forced which foreign arms Anarchists fought from central insufcient offensives, war, these over. Lack German gave beginning forces of the a piece November February as to smaller defenders capability ineffective. of the reconnect to which in downfall. posture use last regime inghting, to of reduced much July Valencia, reasons. their a erosion been tried from the was attempt of and Republican military did had capital, Franco the in defensive effective air regular from and expense the 1939, Marxist/Trotskyists costly make role Madrid and of Civil political a in the of constant Republicans Madrid last a they offensive Early control saw 1937, of The several played Although most just for control, all east Ebro Spanish inherent were the The predominantly impossible. of The communists weaknesses and recognized Spain. 1939. materials October Barcelona. with leaving Republicans command south Republican of Republicans By unsuccessful. fell, Despite government on the control were strongholds resist. to surrounding areas the controlled. territory land two progressed, they use ghting Republican experience at the territory. Aftermath and signicance of the war The immediate people died majority ed the cost of between were of the July war was 1936 non-combatants. ideological purge that devastating. and April Over followed 1939. 500 the An Of 000 estimated these Republican Nationalist 500 deaths, 000 the vast supporters victory, settling in 103 4 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y France, take of South decades W A R S and to Central recover America. from, a fact The physical exacerbated destruction by the would pre-war lack development. In terms of its broader impact, the Spanish Civil War has been Ar t and literature inspired by the described as a “dress rehearsal” for the Second World War. It is true Spanish Civil War that Ernest Hemingway, For Whom the Bell Tolls (book) George Orwell, the later. to Carpet military and a images this bombing operations infantry clarion of made call for war of become civilians, and their the would the violent integrated debut in Spain. international left commonplace ideological use of air confront a reprisals power, Symbolically, to half the the decade linked armour war threat was posed Homage to Catalonia (book) by expansionary fascism, a fact Spain realized three years before the Pablo Picasso, democracies of the West. Guernica (painting) The Nationalist victory strategically weakened the western democracies Woody Guthrie, in the region. Britain’s position at Gibraltar and thus in the “Jarama Valley” (song) Mediterranean was threatened by a German and Italian ally. France now Ken Loach, had a fascist state on two of her major borders. Germany had secured Land and Freedom (lm) preferential Guillermo del Toro, appearance Pan’s Labyrinth (lm) World The Clash, The mining on rights Axis in side Spain of and the Spanish Eastern troops Front made during the a nominal Second War. war was cast “Spanish Bombs” (song) perspective. Herber t Read, characterized side the and To in the as a freedom different roles intelligentsia struggle on the depending of the between other. For West, the the on one’s the forces war of working own was repression classes of political often on the the one world, “Bombing Casualties: Spain” (poem) it was about landed/industrial interest versus workers and unions. The Lowest of the Low, Industrialists, the Texas Oil Company, for example, saw the war as a “Letter from Bilbao” (song) struggle against economic way, the proprietary views divisions explain and expansionary and within how war the and authoritarianism interpretations both the communism of Republican captivated the the and the that war particular comes reected Nationalist imagination of with the sides the brand it. In of this internal and world help in the late TOK discussion 1930s. The The British, French and US governments such did not come to the aid of the Republicans Parker, as war André Paul gures prominently Malraux, Robeson Ernest and in the works Hemmingway, Woody of writers George and Orwell, artists Dorothy Guthrie. in their ght against fascism in Spain. Strategically, the war brought fascism to both of France’s major borders Within six months of the end of the and gave the fascists direct access to the Atlantic, so vital to Britain’s Spanish Civil War, France and Britain interests. In the event, Franco’s reluctance to wholeheartedly throw were at war with the Axis Powers and his lot in with Hitler and Mussolini spared the Grand Alliance of the two and half years later the US would Second World War the reality of dealing with Spain as a declared enemy. follow suit. How might the events of the This can be attributed to some key differences in fascism as practised Second World War have changed the by Franco, Mussolini and Hitler. For his part, Franco’s regime was able interpretation of the Spanish Civil War in to survive into the 1970s by a mixture these countries? repressive 104 authoritarian tactics. of broad right-wing support and Exam-style questions and fur ther reading Exam-style questions 1 Examine 2 Evaluate Civil 3 5 role the of ideology sig nica nce as of a cause foreign of the Spanish in t e r ve n t i o n in Civil the War. S pa ni s h War. Examine Civil 4 the the rea s o ns for th e R e p ub l ic a n d efe a t in the Sp ani s h War. Evaluate the outcome of Compare forces at effectiveness the and the Spanish contrast the beginning of the Civil of International Brigades to the War. Republican the forces and the Nationalist war. Fur ther reading Beevor, Antony. Preston, W .W . Paul. Norton 2007. & Radosh, Ronald Union the in Rhodes, the New Co. it Made. Hugh. York, The The New and Spanish Richard. World Thomas, 1980. Spanish Spanish York, Habeck, Civil 2015. 2013. The War. War: Orbis. Reaction, London, UK. Revolution and Revenge. USA. Yale and and Civil Mary War . Hell Simon Civil (eds). Good Civil The Toronto, War Spain Press. Company: Schuster. Spanish 2001. University (4th Betrayed: New The Haven, Spanish Civil Soviet USA. War and Canada. rev. ed.). Penguin. USA. 105 5 T H E F I R S T T O TA L W O R L D W A R : W A R Global context Some historians century the as years period the 1789– 19 1 4 than the Indeed the history during and reaching up to a to which this referred 1 9t h as a f o r ce s impe r i a l i s m, s o rt s Europ e a ns , the ms e l v e s all more a r b i tra r y period, of othe rs to in in the s hou ld 1 9 th these s e ei n g widespre a d they mea n i n g fu l took Eur ope a n in t he t he s een leading w ho l e, pr inci pal aspire. society Ye t in wh i l e he ld It the wa s 1914. history, w i thi n mater i a l held the p o te n ti a l importa nt of eleme nts and of f or the to not cha ng e let bl i n d of “p r o g r e s s ” co n i c t great Wa r pr omi s e a nd tha t a nd Eu r ope watersheds p rodu c e d ch a n g e p r o po r ti o ns . contin ui ty post-1918 the c our s e e co nom i c and and the of Wo r ld a nd howeve r, scale l a tte r one Firs t scope t he m p r o s p e r it y thi s As politica l, enormous as years a lso social, mi l i t a ri s m , be force s dispa rity. 1 8 0 0– 1 9 00. s pe ci c a ll y can on t he Ce ntur y” , indus tr i a l i za ti on, ze nith 1914. considere d more domina nt nationalism, science, ha v e ”Lo ng th e us be tw e e n It of is , sheer to s co pe signicant the pr e - 19 14 wo r l d . Timeline 1914 Assassination of Archduke Franz Ferdinand June Battle of the Frontiers; Battle August of Tannenberg First Battle of the Marne; Race to September the Sea October–November First Battle of Ypres 1915 First use of gas on the Western Front; Allied armies attack the Ottoman April Empire at Gallipoli May Italy launches Isonzo oensive German U-boat sinks Lusitania June December Allies evacuate troops from Gallipoli 1916 Battle of Verdun February–December June Battle of the Somme 106 July–November Brusilov oensive begins C H A P T E R 5 : T H E F I R S T W O R L D W A R : T O T A L W A R 1917 Germany resumes unrestricted February submarine warfare; US receives copy of Zimmermann Telegram Tsar Nicholas II abdicates March French Neville oensive; Canadians April capture Vimy Ridge; Elements of the French army mutiny First US troops land in France June July Battle of Passchendaele begins 1918 Wilson introduces the “14 Points” January Soviets sign Treaty of March Brest-Litovsk with Germany; Germany launches Spring oensives Allies launch Amiens oensive August Ottoman Empire concludes separate October peace with Allies Kaiser Wilhelm II abdicates; Allies and November Germany sign armistice ▲ Arch Duke Franz Ferdinand (left) and his assassin Gavrilo Princip (right) 107 5.1 Causes of the First World War Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ To what extent was the war preventable? ➔ How did the causes of the war inuence the nature of the war? ➔ What is the relative responsibility of each of the European powers for the outbreak of the war? Key concepts ➔ Cause ➔ Consequence ➔ Perspective It has become known by a as “spark” they also choose, and the July of causes trends often causes militarism Militarism A political, diplomatic and social required emphasis on military matters. Evidence to of militarism often includes increased it seek did was larger the to of of as an First 20th the work militaries. the the It is war the can First be Whatever can through century, be the World up War, causes) trite and metaphor broken end leading ignited boring, you down into of the 19th to the fateful a century events of Crisis. however. industrial in of (long-term clichés War isolation, on keg” truth. World July in causes While developed dependent of of “powder essential the called causes a cause). the that not speak War, (immediate beginning 1914, These cliché Great encapsulate the number a the this itself, They capacity. were Colonial interconnectedness as well as the scope interconnected. possessions that of the we can war begin as unfolded. military spending, development of military technology, a general suppor t for Long-term causes the goals and plans of a nation’s military and the inuence of military leaders on political decisions. It is we did important refer not talk in made and to make terms war capacity 108 to think the of First likely. of a big empires involving World two, War limited maybe in mean the follows is developments trend the three, when strict inevitable. European The we are, What These the war. what causes probabilities. between and about long-term more tension probability war as powers. towards Instead, a set countries. of fuelled of a say not in “cause”. causes history, – What they we developments the Further, larger likelihood we sense, suspicion, they short, fear increased militaries, must that the industrial limited, regional C H A P T E R Allied 5 . 1 : C A U S E S O F T H E F I R S T W O R L D W A R Powers Norway 0 Sweden Central Powers 500 0 Neutral Miles Moscow Powers 500 Kilometres North a Sea e Denmark S c i t l Great Russian Empire a B Britain Berlin Neth. German London Empire C a s p Belgium i a Lux. n S e a Paris Atlantic Ocean Austro-Hungarian France Switz Empire Black Sea Romania Bulgaria Serbia Persia Italy Montenegro Ottoman Empire Corsica Albania Portugal Spain Greece Sardini M e d it e r r a n e a n Cyprus Sicily S e Sp. Morocco a (Br.) NEJD Tunisia Algeria Egypt First World War – European alliances ▲ Militarism Broadly speaking, emphasis navies On at the many the is that less if likely they if of of were true about trend militarism towards century the can precise, warship the the that at powers not social as be historian aspects troop we – overall in and two that ways. appeal concentration should the societal armies highlighted technical hand, an massive tonnage, other the generals, militaries than lost If its the the of that would that the be to remained country own, was the the last largest believed held had a turn were countries before Regardless, – On to growing. you 19th are deterrence faster emptively before the talk The consider relation of to and those the military society. other size growing of there historians European idea the end appeal wider statesmen, early can expenditure. certainly major we military. hand military aspects It the the one military to on in this could larger static. too the This help avoid that was great. might big rival a have was attack the use the This the been state’s short, of most war. military, problem a to In militaries Paradoxically, country’s The worried was a attack. temptation differential century, history. true rival your Actions or polices designed to discourage an attack by making the consequences of that army deterrence was the attack prohibitive. pre- army it. the fa ct r e ma i ns t ha t the mil i t a r y fo r c e s that the division European powers ha d at the i r disposal in 1914 we r e i m m e n s e. There A military unit of around 12 000–18 000 were approximate l y 200 a r my divisions in Europe in 191 4 i ncl ud i n g men. Divisions were designed to contain reserves (part-tim e s o l d ie r s ca l l e d up in the event of wa r ) . Th e s e within them all elements necessary to massive armies we r e fed by va r yi ng de g r e e s of c on s c r i p t i on in all ght an engagement – infantry, ar tillery, European powers w i th the e xc e p ti o n of G re a t B r i ta i n ( i n t r o du c e d in medical and logistic services, command, 1916). Men of mil i ta r y age we r e required to s e rve fr om t wo to six and communication and intelligence. ye ars. In fact, the te r ms of se r vi ce were increasing. France pa s s e d th e 109 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S Thre e Ye a r La w manda tory two to thre e the Russian the world. some these to ve fact As the y on case that all report of of for wishful would reliably call military rivals, age. aware was of even an the have deceptive they size before of was also technology in the were up to 400 evident meant that producing 10 to miles 600 (16 of 80 to as their army not by great that these To July in of In likelihood would required and if an was they had even combination massive of and army poor poor could able-bodied sword. of other military apparatus, it bigger distance depots the may reected conscripts as strength men To of her states, planners, the mobilization could t he theoretical must mobilize. This be was to 1914. the size of forces. armament could the Russian Russian enemy was numbers double-edged that e nou gh reality created the the military these hurl kilometres). Machine per In minute. a on meant only used the in was the military most a W hi le w o ul d - b e contradiction. The a nd mo b i l iz e were in ar my r e s e rv is ts . the duty one-fth focus potential artillery rounds equivalent in ramications Militarism about behemoth. the any the picture were imposing ominous methods Dreadnought as that was deciencies actual undertaken service This inclined Russia or into meant largest m i l l i on a ny Russia, have between organization a c coun ts , g row i ng . infrastructure, military 1.3 thinking problem. The HMS Dreadnought was revolutionary in all aspects: design, speed, armament, materials and production methods. from s ta ndi ng a l a r m i ng paper, dangerous the ▲ we re impressive seem a to more all the co ul d a lone pa use atta cke rs, By was million g ure s g ive it i ncr e a si ng s e r v ic e tsa r ’s about cla ime d furthe r 1913, yea r s . a rmy The numbe re d in milita r y armies By foundries a guns could each navies, modern of one-tonne practice, and 1914, Krupp and explosive gun Skoda projectile theoretically machine but industrial re was the ries. A class of battleship rst developed in The Anglo-German naval race was perhaps one of the starkest the UK with the class name coming from illustrations of militarism. When the British Royal Navy launched the the prototype for this type of ship, the revolutionary HMS Dreadnought in December 1906, it instantly ships, obsolete. made HMS Dreadnought. It was faster and more every battleship then aoat, including British If a heavily armed than any battleships that country was to have a modern navy after 1906, it had to spend money existed at the time. It immediately made on Dreadnoughts. When this was coupled with Germany’s desire for every battleship aoat obsolete and a navy to rival the Royal Navy, as expressed in the Second Naval Law became the standard against which all of 1900, it created an arms race that would see the size new ships were measured. increase 110 by a combined 197% between 1900 and 1914. of these navies C H A P T E R 5 . 1 : C A U S E S O F T H E F I R S T W O R L D W A R Warship tonnage of the powers, 1880–1914 1880 1890 190 0 1910 1914 Britain 650 000 679 000 1 065 000 2 174 000 2 714 000 France 271 000 319 000 499 000 725 000 900 000 Russia 200 000 180 000 383 000 401 000 679 000 United States 169 000 240 000 333 000 824 000 985 000 Italy 100 000 242 000 245 000 327 000 498 000 Germany 88 000 190 000 285 000 964 000 1 305 000 Austria-Hungary 60 000 66 000 87 000 210 000 372 000 Japan 15 000 41 000 187 000 496 000 700 000 Source: Kennedy, Paul. 1988. Rise and Fall of the Great Powers: Economic and Military Conict from 1500 to 2000. London, UK . Fontana Press. P . 261. Large or even engender with growing suspicion economic likely. Further, and rivalry, it militaries fear in do rival imperialism makes a large, not cause states. and wars. When They this nationalism, massively do, however, suspicion it destructive makes war is coupled war more more likely. Military and naval personnel, 1880–1914 190 0 1910 1914 Russia 791 000 1880 677 000 1890 1 162 000 1 285 000 1 352 000 France 543 000 542 000 715 000 769 000 910 000 Germany 426 000 504 000 524 000 694 000 891 000 Britain 367 000 420 000 624 000 571 000 532 000 Austria-Hungary 246 000 346 000 385 000 425 000 444 000 Italy 216 000 284 000 255 000 322 000 345 000 Japan 71 000 84 000 234 000 271 000 306 000 United States 34 000 39 000 96 000 127 000 164 000 Source: Kennedy, Paul. 1988. Rise and Fall of the Great Powers: Economic and Military Conict from 1500 to 2000. London, UK . Fontana Press. P . 261. Industrialization Some historians equated to relationship a Great the massive century The it nature Of By had of course, than this large that all the by in war 1880; to in do. spread the industrial There more likely. was not the far rst the output are, taken rest of war does however, that Among uniform these a of not the root role the of in 20th war the across in 1914 is any a the For the century. making powers. a the determine more consequences in is 19th England and help cause strong constituted industrialized would a disputed half consequences among is what Europe certain played of second power there generally had more total while matter not in that to was the is economic that, industrialization manufacturing increase What output Europe as 1900 concepts, production this come increasing war in 1870, measures, armies increase European had, two by contend complex. industrial revolution been the in that Others these more increase before Atlantic. than was contended power. between Power century. have military of general fact example, 111 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y while iron and steel approximately in Britain. had terms, in to by 1913, the France between political tension. In to order between feed point had was These the for and the disparities massive in behind in United had same all States actually steel period. the create turn industrial the it Germany’s the helped which in 1913, British, 329% woefully powers, these increased 1890 approximately Austria-Hungary. tension production 242% More increased W A R S production In powers machines, absolute except competitive increased economic diplomatic the by decreased powers and needed neo-mercantilism access to resources, which in turn created a neo-mercantilist mindset An economic doctrine that emphasizes complemented by the drive for colonies in the second half of the the need to decrease impor ts by moving 19th century. This thirst had been momentarily slaked by the “scramble toward self-suciency. This move often for Africa” but by 1900 that well had gone dry. The European powers requires an increase in colonial holdings had claimed all of Africa, with a few small exceptions. Sources of raw to supply raw materials and provide materials, not to mention markets, had either to be wrung from existing markets for nished goods. holdings or Not had only total of to navy. It did artillery not once shells a previous rivalry was long day. year. the for Even The increased, to 1914 to backward artillery connection a in between the was the their huge protect industrial 200 system tenfold economic To powerful producing a the lucrative British. factory 1916, power. 1913 in modern, harness Russian shells By and outsold France another trade. Britain needed powers from had of signicantly By the so that Germans the began. million diplomatically, equal Germans war 4.5 was trade, take the manufacturing the the this or output exports market increase potential forcibly industrial German American and wrestled, 000 was increase rivalry and on military evident. The alliance system If these great, and the end long at the split before end into of countries of that her as support into in war these 112 had of the the the have to work 1871, war. His policy event two of Cold Eastern Cold treaties, he War, wars, War to Europe These two then a in dissolved 1914 alliances and NATO disastrous were Europe agreements that or method with was, to either was were alliances the with of the in to create The Bismarck in each had of To two this The to by means carefully intricate was Italy a became to major part the Dual embroiled added effect isolate diplomats of military Bismarck cumulative set between turned pledging intended, French by Alliance 1879, state other it an Dual addition 1887. Empire preserve established something undo. was opponents. Russia as German to deterrence. years, more the sought Alliance, Europe, hard of alliances. forging of three Triple Treaty rest nished Within agreements from of the large-scale the globe. in a to smaller, set caused brought states Austria-Hungary, against Reinsurance albeit the from and Similar secondary part have communist iron” shield. Alliance a a and Germany in by alliances would 1980s. rival, Bismarck shielding of the around “blood alliances Pact the two connected After interlocking Warsaw were the of France going to C H A P T E R This work loans to elected too, was not was to the ever German While when it been nearly as this erupted from as a however, Russian refused of notable was the on of Canada, to war earth. should guaranteed militarily, Russia had had alliance net was to not large very in Colton in result the of Britain to the scope. The called statesmanship was a Russia. race Africa tentative and was then the a result. in Africa Signicantly, in the affairs differences into Alliance with the as of the Triple the British one linked which of her top the helped web this, For draw of with largest committed almost Entente of Two dominions” This neutrality. the secret. alliance to “white county. On perpetual agreements some automatically another war. other and Britain’s also were complicating and complex “the in partners since her her into treaties 1839 part, an and 1900–1914. made or by public was support Balkans, Britain commitments, old Triple independent global interlocking, diplomacy, have the further it and on Belgium’s tension war, be the a was The naval differences thought, settled it action. were she 1904 military when The begin world. The Britain century. Japan settle aided same. France metamorphosed than Zealand war no of the complicated so-called New period this the but declare in Serbia, increase subtle the would interests with causing were result Britain to the alliances. War. to or isolation” the with in that Kaiser’s condition, of with Cordiale had Cordiale was right alliance British British turn closer possibility. ramparts African around do formal Tensions agreed the which noted, and guaranteed agreements The Even Britain that the of the seemed military systems some been so agreement binding involved Australia the by W A R million pledged the “splendid of a France if W O R L D German culminated distinct watery South contained or her rigidity Entente a dangerous her an France Entente rigid any alliance already 1907 the disputes hand, the powers, and a treasury. time attacked F I R S T Russia, £400 Tsar likewise now from the came The Cordiale By less to examples empire Britain a The smaller free and agree has of Europe. these by Japan It to Britain in her First France. Entente Empire Entente. made with Britain’s continental war. as changed victory isolation. number the preserving her had Now The T H E ofce nurtured friendship do O F approve totalling 1894. was behind eschewed 1890. ever to to Austria-Hungary war emerged retreated into agreed helped pressuring agreement, well Each by was rapprochement By and new in Germany isolation She however, battered emergence saw it. statesmen world, Germany in if in C A U S E S foreign France loans This formalized or refused Treaty 1894, offering two-front Russia her British diplomatic with and – France Russia a and planning. Germany reveled suited prudent. Russia France. of Bismarck post-Bismarckian 1890 Alliance, attacked France the Reinsurance military nightmare traditionally the tsarist attack attacking when and Between with would in forces had renew coordinating Italy easier 1887 Franco-Russian Russia had in isolated. relationship and made Russia 5 . 1 : it secretive suspicion more system what most likely was forthcoming in the and also historians Olympian and fairly between arduous to that of of alliances powers. it Palmer No While would maintain, Roswell statesmanship”. summer set great ensured Robert of rigid the be requiring and such Joel level of 1914. 113 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S Imperialism/nationalism nation A nation is a group of people who share It a number of commonalities generally people. including language, culture, historic two development and territory. generally is important In sides Imperial imperialism high in A set of actions and policies by which of one national group dominates another the national group or its territory. largely of the same tensions has been the mind coin. of the the known exploration to the as the as the is, of of one in Henry heart, nation it the state had will because Until of 1870s, Stanley of are dangerously measure Africa”. interior, group dominates. became large for a nationalism exploitation By African its those “scramble areas. at and powers century, subsequent coastal of feelings European such potential nation imperialism 19th and explorers economic The a imperialism nationalist half limited that therefore, the become European in between second entrepreneurial to keep ways, aggravate the what to many 1850, Africa had however, begun touching to off awaken a race nationalism by European states to claim their own colonies in Africa. The potential An emotional attachment to a group and a of this “scramble” to bring far-ung powers into conict should be desire for it to be politically independent. obvious. It colonies, out the rules had certainly Bismarck rules would no want interest Despite his powers new of efforts, stay Kaiser, her of on “place the in by some the II, 1890. stage. sun” and Part game, thought world the in colony to was her of Young his over the of Wilhelm a hammer as he these he did African efforts, African to war. the European questions lay which not land European problem result insulting developed a to overseas that Just colonies, distant of for 1885 hopes into war the an in in own some because close disdain ownership. dragging ways Berlin her in his Africa over powers dangerously retirement in exploiting acquiring other in Despite conference disagreements and Wilhelm Germany get a and Germany come out Bismarck. Germany new would to off in Bismarck’s desire hosted between his to claiming stave disputes jeopardize after for was in was Bismarck’s what the under-representation demanded brash, that provocative Germany and Weltpolitik ultimately The foreign policy adopted by result at the end of the 19th centu ry by sought to asser t her to the this Weltpolitik ill-conceived policy (world became policy) evident to in achieve 1905. it. The During French-controlled Morocco, Wilhelm boldly proclaimed a state that the inf lu ence status around of which visit she dangerous Germa ny of Morocco should be re-evaluated at an international conference. world. Unfortunately following had wished between entente Agadir the assert the German the rest to he Europe The the isolated and held in served of the Algeciras While process only to German travelled France by to feeling a wedge the and Moroccan into ally. that Kaiser drive motives the her the the strengthen calling supported Crisis at territory. and Kaiser pressure Agadir the wary unequivocally and dangerously entente, again Britain conference, claims authority, of stage. once Algeciras this French world to claims. becoming Kaiser, Anglo-French 1911 from the upheld make on in imperial away to and methods for year, port question Wilhelm Germany of her came was victimized. The Balkans The the role turn that of was populated and centred domination empires, century, 114 nationalism the in in the the century by a the the is played best number small the of ethnic independent region had growing and inuence nation the and in groups traditionally Austro-Hungarian crumbling in demonstrated international the broadly state been of of split Ottoman. power Balkans. referred Serbia. the the end Ottoman to at region as Slavs Political between By tensions This two of rival the 19th Empire, C H A P T E R coupled with inuence political Balkan living this Austria-Hungary’s the system. under the Serbia’s When Italy Serbia saw resources. Macedonia, to went with the time sea, was when Austrians creation of Serbia the ten It of is months European empires. wanted anxiety to read of angered to at countries such countless African European as whose drama, a by such France, Asian drama to this by raw was shortly an to of the this and a twice- authority. The massive increase by from the size in global hunger Austria-Hungary would not increasing have to to a occur the – mention overlooked become the was emboldened garnered and often backed Austro-Hungarian her Serbia, are by when total simultaneously and who in access result sum necessitated expansion and Serbia War done prodigious Germany 1911, claims, schemes materials to Montenegro The together. the while Russia peoples, that causes as an reassert in Albania claims, nationalist partially holdings, expense Britain, and fed was added spearheaded had a attention Balkan The in volatile. consequent 1908. Albania. possible empires, their in she nationalist background countries expand those of the Serbian as negotiation determined production, expansion territory, pan-Slavic made of state grievance intervention, just of was Second and not Yugoslavia. force Bulgaria, a W A R age-old divided prot the supporter Kingdom and with W O R L D her dangerously by F I R S T European lay or pan-Slavic sultan’s T H E nationalists future Serbia Bulgaria, in resolve, pan-Slavic these was a a The Albania, Slavic war stop Empire industrial The a further militaries resources, who to Russian important of to to the Russia their Ottomans the League going though Bosnia, the from Bulgaria Austrian that of in O F expand of pan-Slavic becoming Turkey. on and Greater leader international Independent determined European for with determined humiliated share by Russia, faced with a was from Balkan designs thwarted in the prot defeating Serbian annexed confusing Empire by lion’s radical C A U S E S part reawakened convinced region war retrench unstable of rather Tripoli the to region but to to very numbers the wrest Forming she Austria-Hungary. down the a become situation, addressed This to desire this were opportunity Greece, the in Habsburgs tried an and quickly ux Growing ambition and to The made Austria-Hungary, frightening 1913. region, aspirations. federated With in 5 . 1 : global in this tragedy. Short-term causes The July Crisis When most asked something family. As to Indeed, his they one 1914, itself caused two that ensuing tumbled them crisis the shot in state being the the of light and that in were Rather, the powers War, will it scope heir visiting their of of fate. it was four was an the The the the inability causes years of 28 royal in Habsburg on the had World War. throne, June Archduke in not it Austrian First Sarajevo assassinated No, the even that inadequate the to with reply woefully long-term into people likely member is Ferdinand, while unique of a this Habsburgs. war. European scale Franz particularly sparked World shooting the were of First knowledge however, with Archduke heads of the seen, Sophie not eight with event when the historical have an wife were of do we explaining and what rudimentary years 1914, was but 1881– assassination to manage outlined the above that disaster. 115 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S Political assassinations, 1881–1914 1881 Alexander II of Russia, Emperor of all the Russias 1894 Marie François Sadi Carnot, President of France 1895 Stefan Stombolov, Prime Minister of Bulgaria 1897 Antonio Cánovas del Castillo, Prime Minister of Spain 1898 Empress Elisabeth of Austria 190 0 King Umber to I of Italy 1901 William McKinley, President of the United States 1903 King Aleksander of Serbia 1904 Nikolai Bobrikov, Governor-general of England 1908 King Carlos I of Por tugal 1908 Luiz Filipe, Crown Prince of Por tugal 1911 Peter Stolypin, Prime Minister of Russia 1912 José Canalejas, Prime Minister of Spain 1913 King George I of Greece 1914 Archduke Franz Ferdinand of Austria Certain group it members “Union appears that government. the general Berchtold, to crush with A pledge of unconditional suppor t given their by Kaiser Wilhelm II of Germany to Franz Cheque Joseph in July 1914. The pledge was in ultimatum reference to Austria-Hungary’s dispute designed with Serbia and Russia. aspects ally, in ultimatum has of for war be It on to the previous against change western this 116 was the that afforded for all. nature has the the terms offering Bosnian Hand, the by This from the and chief the mean Germany, Austrians the of the the did ultimatum affront war her only formulated of it von assassination would intent of of Leopold authorship as terrorist although Serbian the chancellor, Cheque, as the Black specically support exact accept, capitulated to the Blank were to many the size To alliance As full army, a directed against of an of the was of Serb more the demands, response surprised Serbia The 29 so much within “every than hours reason many of this as a when added Tsar obligations increasing the that, through memory ordered partial that Germany Sukhomlinov, along sense Tsar, Wilhelm mobilization mobilization the of the direct two mobilization July. Vladimir cousin, France, Austrian mobilization forthcoming, German was against this night Minister, his most the 1914. the to to with he war humiliations. War that that Perhaps went order not The seem believed on frontier. demanded Serbs July Balkan the and Blank debated, to and unlimited Serbs. been frontiers. Austria Russian of once the throughout ofcials, opportunity so-called would viewed Understanding the the pledge away”. their seize the extend as sovereignty. 28 Russians threat not Austrian nationalism the Kaiser drops response did supported known Hotzendorff, impossible Serb the a to Austria-Hungary The to military commonly support years itself. to Serbian Conrad After Nevertheless, for this wished European the Nevertheless, staff, Serbia. that of Death”, South-Slav Blank Cheque so of of cease the ordered as part neutral entire panic all full the the Austria, the of Tsar to Russia’s Kaiser, preparation. mobilization Schlieffen Belgium. to length gripped military the of owed persuaded Plan, he When of the was C H A P T E R Some historians Britain was would never Edward of did until Belgium on empire out serious Grey, action her a believed stay 3 that the the very August what to last For now a part, this Britain’s were conict. his dispel moment. 1914, was Germans looming possibility. nothing the into of the When treaty C A U S E S clinging Others to the German obligations T H E W O R L D W A R that this Secretary, Britain’s army F I R S T hope that Foreign reserving the O F thought British notion, world 5 . 1 : freedom crossed brought her into and war. War plans The as opening “war by required the The sole fact men plans control France to in the composed of 41 at own sluggish cause case grand At of of by the a a major their of these glance that required it it would the chief he in arms as in been 1914. had by to able So of to soldiers vital was government system be referred millions German to in in the move to had 1880s. millions carry great the out a plan plan against arc that upon that to in war would start the a German for a itself and dangerous uncer tainty”. Think about all the things that might go wrong with the and Schlieen Plan. How might the Germans Paris have accounted for these possibilities? be Russia’s immediate mobilizing rst. Germany’s with Historian John Keegan has said the force, would an Thinking skills Schlieen Plan was “pregnant with massive This forces 1914, war designed against conquer armies was after staff Luxembourg Germany July was war, France. Austro-Hungarian happened that called Russian Plan named general two-front through Schlieffen Kaiser seem a Plan, German The west sweep depended as of east. the a the Meanwhile, of The Schlieffen of conceived the would France Russia, the powers so nightmare Russia armies, in was time mobilization. by often railroad European frontiers, combination war, threat have mobilizing that German plans that and of unprecedented Schlieffen, In War act complexity. mobilization. strategy rst the northern held the entire German of World endeavour Bismarckian of days bay the von seven into this on of west concentration within of 1905. the First Indeed, degrees Alfred with Belgium to all famous 1891 deal that varying most the coordination positions creator, from to of of system was to of L TA The its level railroad taken of a days timetable”. In entire France. general staff also had élan vitale a hand in the preparation of the French war plan. France’s Plan XVII In called for a massing of French armies on their eastern frontier, the context doctrine from the main thrust of the German army. These troops would then in eastwards, regaining at once the honour of the French the was built territories of Alsace meticulous and Lorraine. timetabling and Whereas the organization, Schlieffen Plan XVII the ideas of élan vitale and the offensive spirit, prompting and the coordinated assistance of the British at the the expens e Defici encies in of s ound Plan and tactical cons iderati ons be overcome w ith s u f f ici ent Russian enthusiasm mobilization at tack rested could on of defence. planning on m il i tary army prudent and French 1914, élan vitale was rush preference gallantly of away and vigou r. army. 117 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S Antwerp BELGIUM Ypres Brussels Liége Somme LUXEMBOURG Aisne Oise Reims Verdun GERMANY Marne Paris Nancy Seine Actual German troop August–September The ▲ Schlieffen Plan Widest sweep of movements 1914 Schlieffen Plan Schlieen’s original plan called for the capture of Paris within 41 days of mobilization. How did Moltke’s decision to wheel the rst army in front of Paris, rather than around it, change the nature of the entire war? L TA Thinking skills Read the views of the following historians regarding how the First World War began. Sidney Bradshaw Fay was writing in response to the nding of the Paris Peace Conference that Germany Fay. 1928. The was solely responsible for the outbreak of the war. Fay maintained that it was a complex Origins of the World assor tment of causes, notably imperialism, militarism and alliances that pushed Europe into War. New York , NY, war. No one country plotted an aggressive war and many, including Britain and Germany, made USA . The Macmillan genuine, although unskilled, eor ts at mediating the July Crisis. In some ways, Fay and those Company. who agreed with him are par t of the larger movement that wanted to reintroduce Germany to the community of nations in the spirit of the Locarno Treaty of 1925. Fritz Fischer. 1976. In the wake of the Second World War, German historian Fritz Fischer re-evaluated his country’s German Aims in role in causing the First World War. In contrast to Fay, Fischer found that Germany sought an the First World War. aggressive war of expansion in 1914. Germany was surrounded by hostile countries and her New York , NY, USA. economy, culture and inuence was in decline. A successful war of expansion would solve these W.W. Nor ton. problems and was therefore plotted and encouraged in the years 1912–1914. The July Crisis was deliberately managed to this end. Fischer maintained that these attitudes and desires were not held solely by a malecent and deluded leadership. After examining a broad cross section of German society in 1914, Fischer concluded that these attitudes and aims had broad suppor t from business interests, academics and all political par ties in Germany. It is not dicult to understand why this was a contentious position in post-Second World War Germany. 118 C H A P T E R 5 . 1 : C A U S E S O F T H E F I R S T W O R L D W A R Eric Hobsbawm. Writing in the Marxist historical tradition, Eric Hobsbawm does not nd the causes of the war in 1989. The Age of any one country or person, but rather in the system of industrial capitalism that dominated the mpire. New York , NY, economics of western Europe. Hobsbawm argues that industrial capitalism’s insatiable hunger USA. Vintage. for resources and markets fuelled the New Imperialism of the 19th century. While this need was temporarily slaked by the “scramble for Africa”, it soon brought European countries into conict. Further, within industrial powers, this competition required a close partnership between the government and arms producers, for whom peacetime prots had to be maintained. These prots were required so that the industry would be around for the next war, a war in which strength would be measured not in military strength alone, but also in industrial capacity. By arguing a systemic cause of the war, Hobsbawm and other Marxist historians bring a degree of inevitability to the war. Regardless of who led the countries, or which countries were involved, they believe the system would have caused a war eventually. Niall Ferguson. 1999. Niall Ferguson, like Fischer, blames one country in par ticular. For Ferguson, rather than The Pity of War. Germany, responsibility rests with the actions, and in some cases inaction, of Britain. New York , NY, USA. Ferguson believes that Fay was wrong, that anti-militarism was rising in Europe by 1914, Basic Books. secret diplomacy had solved many disputes, and that Germany and Britain were more than capable of settling their dierences. Rather, he maintains that British political and military leaders had planned to intervene in a European conict from 1905 and in fact would have violated Belgian neutrality themselves had Germany not done it rst. Fur ther, he maintains that Britain misinterpreted German intentions, seeing them as Napoleonic rather than as essentially defensive. These leaders misled the British Parliament into a declaration of war. John Stoessinger. John Stoessinger nds liability for the war largely in the personal failings of those trying to 1999. Why Nations manage the July Crisis. He believes that each of the leaders acted out of an over-inated Go To War. 11th ed. sense of both their own country’s weakness and their enemy’s strength. Fur ther, the New York , NY, USA. supreme leaders in Austria-Hungary and Germany failed to exercise sucient control over Basic Books. their subordinates, who actively conspired to provoke at least a regional war if not a general European war. Once the “iron dice” were cast, none of the leaders had the nerve to order a halt to the mobilization, even though this was a completely viable option. Had dierent personalities been in positions of authority in July 1914, there may have never been a war. 1 Which historian has the most convincing thesis? Why? 2 Add your own row to the table. What do you believe caused the war? How might it have been avoided? 3 How might the era in which each of the above historians was writing have aected their views? Why is it impor tant for students of history to understand the context in which historians write? 119 5.2 C ombatants Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ What were the comparative strengths and weaknesses of the Allied Powers and the Central Powers? ➔ What eect would the entry of the United States and exit of Russia have on this relationship? Key concepts ➔ Cause ➔ Consequence Central Powers 1914 Of a population divisions in advanced efcient that of fronts war system Central of 1.4 of 7.8 German battleships. control force defence had troops. also This allowing Seas eet Fleet had the North 14 Sea They given troops By to Germany’s army an exible by the and end 1.2 and fact internal between the its of two the had million. and advanced able 146 had Austria-Hungary Bulgaria Dreadnoughts were a enhanced while and for adjacency move men muster army made operations. technologically communications. in to million had was geographic them could German which efciency million 2.9 The control, military 11 Turkey Powers troops. enjoyed mobilized High Central and combined million, This and in the million command Powers engage Germany naval million communication, and mobilized The 115 some movement the lines of 1914, 22 older artillery re concentrate relatively this fewer colonial responsibilities. Allied Powers 1914 France, in Russia 1914. Both was a 212 army was, and volunteer however, in army. equipped, could The size small and as 120 it thus in of case 2.8 by a and British army months would dragged nor of In of in poor were was separated the 1914, powers the of army, 265 while could eld. quality This and million Britain’s put foward number insufcient army. swell war. likewise large from coordinate contribute on. these men army would population conscript control French the a Together Russian command the had million geographically early combined equipment the concentrate the war of While was 1914. not dominions the in had France some hindered the Communications, Tsar’s and force divisions, quantities the Britain Russia greatly her their during Likewise to however, the they and Russian forces war, its antiquated relatively and but it colonial size of could her ally in well and operations. remained possessions ghting contribute force little. C H A P T E R For example 1914, but armistice The US April them Britain army military Guard. in the The States 4.3 million men. 10 The a States Dreadnoughts intended to British massive safe being so was had and at She a Britain a older 200 of of in had was or a concentrate The a larger short War the that mobilized war, with Act of 1916 years. and empire was advantage in in In National months Expansion powers forces it two-power interests naval the conscription, of of of The enormous. World Naval the men, million standards. 19 outset of Italy. Dreadnoughts take British her the modied 20 8.9 C O M B A T A N T S August time million including number much to In the industrial able patrol men in the from however, First at her had 42 French, introduced the of of By European army. navy She total 000 1917 the course food to by soldiers million was, battleships. the however, Britain 5.6 affair maintaining in of and States Act disposal. agreed could a them combatant over 6,000 overseas. mobilized about size mere men million small at a 000 world-class Navy, her lanes. 8.4 United the 23 this also, who had Service a was 500 empire, stood self-sufcient France, that her the was Royal eet shipping with of double battleships. not and increasing United United Powers army the army sent Russian, Selective dramatically The had 1917 potential 1917 it Allied of from Canadian 1918 the 12million them the by 5 . 2 : of patrol her had older and dependent the the to policy, 39 on alliance Mediterranean, North Sea. L TA Thinking skills Look at the data in these tables. Per capita levels of industrialization, 1880–1938 (Relative to Britain in 190 0) 1880 190 0 1913 1928 1938 Ranking 1 Great Britain 87 [100] 115 122 157 2 2 United States 38 69 126 182 167 1 3 France 28 39 59 82 73 4 4 Germany 25 52 85 128 144 3 5 Italy 12 17 26 44 61 5 6 Austria 15 23 32 – – 7 Russia 10 15 20 20 38 7 9 12 20 30 51 6 8 Japan Iron and steel production of the powers, 1890–1938 (Millions of tonnes; pig-iron production for 1890, steel thereafter) 1890 190 0 1910 1913 1920 1930 1938 United States 9.3 10.3 26.5 31.8 42.3 41.3 28.8 Great Britain 8.0 5.0 6.5 7.7 9.2 7.4 10.5 Germany 4.1 6.3 13.6 17.6 7.6 11.3 23.2 France 1.9 1.5 3.4 4.6 2.7 9.4 6.1 Austria-Hungary 0.97 1.1 2.1 2.6 – – Russia 0.95 2.2 3.5 4.8 0.06 5.7 18.0 Japan 0.02 – 0.16 0.25 0.84 2.3 7.0 Italy 0.01 0.73 0.93 0.73 1.7 2.3 0.00 – 121 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S Total industrial potential of the powers, 1880–1938 (Relative to Britain in 190 0) 1880 190 0 1913 1928 1938 Great Britain 73.3 [100] 127.2 135 181 United States 46.9 127.8 298.1 533 528 Germany 27.4 71.2 137.7 158 214 France 25.1 36.8 57.3 82 74 Russia 24.5 47.5 76.6 72 152 Austria-Hungary 14 25.6 40.7 – – Italy 8.1 13.6 22.5 37 46 Japan 7.6 13 25.1 45 88 Energy consumption of the powers, 1890–1938 (in millions of metric tonnes of coal equivalent) 1890 United States 147 Great Britain 190 0 1910 248 483 1913 541 1920 694 1930 762 1938 697 145 171 185 195 212 184 196 Germany 71 112 158 187 159 177 228 France 36 47.9 55 62.5 65 97.5 84 Austria-Hungary 19.7 29 40 49.4 Russia 10.9 30 41 54 Japan 4.6 4.6 15.4 Italy 4.5 5 9.6 – – – 14.3 65 177 23 34 55.8 96.5 11 14.3 24 27.8 Source: Kennedy, Paul. 1988. Rise and Fall of the Great Powers: conomic and Military Conict from 1500 to 2000. London, UK . Fontana Press. 1 Using the information in the tables above, rank the countries according to how powerful they were in 1914. What criteria are you using? What is your denition of power in this context? What happens to your ranking if you take into consideration the information in the tables on page 111? 2 What conclusions can you draw about the relationship between the information and a country’s ability to conduct a war? 3 Compare and contrast each country’s pre-war and post-war gures. What conclusions can we draw from the comparison? How did this aect your “power ranking”? 122 5.3 Operations on the Western Front Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ How did the war change from one of movement to a trench-bound stalemate? ➔ What was the relationship of oensive technology to defensive technology on the Western Front? ➔ To what extent did technology break the stalemate? Key concepts ➔ Continuity ➔ Change ➔ Signicance Opening moves As the for by month peace declaring war the war was felt that they what been they as July or on were into system, suspected, if 1914 in was thought forced alliance of remained came Europe. Russia not at on this reacting was out Germany’s perceived not to 1 their hand. and a so too threw 1914. acting control. From powers as the such Kaiser point of of conclusion, and self-interest, the what infamous Regardless To that ended the foregone than national intended, close, August point rather of a Germany the and little “iron whether the leaders embraced the sword machinery mobilization Europe hope dice” tumbled of had the operated into war. Timeline 1914 Austria-Hungary declares war on Serbia 28 July 1 August Germany declares war on France Germany declares war on Russia 3 August 4 August Germany declares war on Belgium Britain and her empire declare war 4 August on Germany 6 August Serbia declares war on Germany Austria-Hungary declares war on Russia 6 August 12 August France declares war on Germany 123 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S Britain and her empire declare war on 12 August Austria-Hungary 23 August Japan declares war on Austria-Hungary 25 August 28 August Russia declares war on Ottoman Empire Austria-Hungary declares war on Belgium 2 November 2 November France declares war on Ottoman Empire Japan declares war on Germany Serbia declares war on Ottoman Empire 5 November Britain and her empire declare war on 5 November Ottoman Empire 1915 Italy declares war on Austria-Hungary 23 May 21 August Italy declares war on Germany Italy declares war on Ottoman Empire 28 August 14 October Bulgaria declares war on Serbia Britain and her empire declare war 15 October on Bulgaria 16 October Italy declares war on Bulgaria France declares war on Bulgaria 18 October 19 October Russia declares war on Bulgaria 1916 Germany declares war on Por tugal 9 March 15 March Bulgaria declares war on Romania Austria-Hungary declares war on Portugal 1 September 1917 6 April Greece declares war on Central Powers 27 June 14 August China declares war on Austria-Hungary United States declares war on Germany China declares war on Germany 14 August United States declares war on 7 December Austria-Hungary 124 C H A P T E R Armies from Railways past wars, and but horses French British forces Because the mass toward these as they east if would battles to the west, in a its foot. of – position the bring men on to in their the beginning them and foot – engage to of Paris animals it would each the other headed million Schlieffen later. moving two in the days were be in The a 41 F R O N T other. of and over W E S T E R N men bulk France part, T H E than Alsace-Lorraine. For executing worked, and The O N each efcient limits on of toward more disembarked frontier. formations the trek O P E R A T I O N S move reached frontier millennia to process the (BEF) plan for be of began this soon Belgian the had of nished Force the massive armies major and moved would, powers part transport rushed soldiers that before major initial Expeditionary German much the the detrained south-east, Plan all made 5 . 3 : weeks the rst of war. Belgium The right through defend wing of frontier the designed were built, most The on took rst the the city, of initial a attack, Belgium the were through he l p to th e s he l l Ge r m a ns the in of of ove r 70 Bertha”, ca p t u r e d the a th e and 0 00 m e n. small in a by the string These the time they commanded men T he Ze p p e li n s or d e r wo u l d 42 0 to – advanced Germans on e use fo r t s, 11 of the n e u t r a li z e m a ss ive m i l li m e t r e Wi th i n S ch l i effe n at swing would Germany. 30 0 Germans k i lo m e t r e s . was standards. Liège 00 0 In would part, heavily existence from his tor y. the “B ig 12 ha d s w e ep of only plan, their army any bom b- d r o pp i ng ho we v e r, incl ud i n g kilog r a m the of by its in city Belgium the for invested by guns the co nsi s ti ng m a nne d While had imposing around to Belgians, could. largest b o mb a rd me nt f o r ts , according The Belgium the Ar m y to ta l with open they that route in aerial 770 as army, Paris. powers, withstand Seco nd 12 howitzers hurled best to concentrated surrounding siege ▲ to accessible forts, uses as major were German the German route fortications forts, the the en themselves standards of of Belgium da ys l e a vi n g of gun th a t the the r es t of Pla n . One of the biggest guns of the war, the “Big Ber tha” could hurl a shell 12 kilometres 125 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S machine guns to be red forward through the propeller and Technology and war: aircraft triplanes such as the Fokker, which, though more dicult to Like many military innovations, the airplane was not y, were far more manoeuvrable than two-winged planes. immediately recognized by commanders as having any Fighters were used to harass enemy reconnaissance military potential beyond reconnaissance. This was airplanes and balloons and later provide re suppor t for the perhaps understandable given that early model airplanes infantry while protecting their own bombing aircraft. were little more than lacquered canvas stretched across a wooden frame with a seat, engine and fuel tank . But Bombers: Fewer models of bomber aircraft were as with all completely new technology, advancements produced, but these were constantly improved upon, came quickly, with new models being churned out in a namely their range and the weight of bombs they matter of weeks in some instances. Very soon airplanes could carry. Strategic bombing, whether by airplane or were armed and ghting for domination of the sky, which Zeppelins, targeted railroads and eventually factories in meant impeding the reconnaissance of your enemy, the enemy’s rear from 1915. sighting for more accurate ar tillery re and eventually Airships: Germany’s Zeppelins ew too high for most ghter suppor ting the movement of ground troops with aerial re. planes and as such could attack British cities at will early Fighters: Designed for air-to-air combat, manoeuvrability in the war. By 1916 better airplanes armed with incendiary and repower were the key factors in a successful ghter. ammunition curtailed the eectiveness of Germany’s Innovations included the interrupter gear, which allowed Zeppelin eet. ▲ A British Sopwith Camel. How did the role of the airplane change over the course of the war? The Battle of the Frontiers As to Schlieffen’s be series put of into Plan offensives counteroffensives 126 unfolded action. The mounted by the in Battle by the of the German north, the it was Frontiers French Sixth as and time was part of Seventh for Plan actually Plan XVII a XVII armies. As and early as C H A P T E R 7 August the French had started operations 5 . 3 : to O P E R A T I O N S recapture the O N T H E Alsatian W E S T E R N F R O N T city Class discussion of Mulhouse. to liberate Prussian the its The Germans The French At rst fell exploit result advance of of in was the relying and was advancing their the at not was defeat and with like for it on the units to cities – hopes of the be and By Plan 20 24 the Why did Plan XVII fail? What are the offensive inherent problems with war plans? well. Mulhouse. fact the opened Germans August. the Lorraine Franco- as this in into working that on and of such gaps launched French. of itself doctrine seemed Sambre the the humiliation uniform French places launched retook counteroffensive happened army élan, French however, the halted XVII, and French after boldness back which the taken Plan advance, between engagements net August combination gaps would 14 territories War. and up On Other Ardennes, August the the French XVII. The Battle of the Marne (5–12 September 1914) Plan XVII some a 200 single the been 000 casualties day (22 Schlieffen been The German German become would failure including August). Plan, This unlike armies offensive known fall its for 75 the 000 staggering French French dead, defeat 25 army 000 seemed counterpart, was resulting of them to in killed indicate working as in that had resumed to briey as plan within stiff the for great Mons, Great the the at their Belgian but Retreat. Germans, required 41 sweep resistance. then Again, but days it through The pulled all back seemed remained from Belgium BEF to delayed in to be what be after the would going seen if Paris mobilization. German troops dig in at the Marne Ironically, as pulled back would prove As they the Germans toward Paris, benecial retreated, communication ● massive unexpectedly according ● a intended. subduing ▲ had A principle beginning the need to the known to tell to lines as on garrison pushed a forward number the of Anglo-French the the Anglo-French began to emerge forces that defenders. while the and factors the shortened Germans “diminishing Germans. captured As power they territory, their extended of the advanced, physical supply and theirs. offensive” was casualties, exhaustion and 127 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y lengthening W A R S supply lines requiring more men to maintain them L TA Thinking and communication weakened the German attackers. The further the Germans advanced, skills the weaker their force became. A vital component of the Battle of the ● The Belgian resistance had afforded the military governor of Paris, Marne was the decision of Field Marshal General Gallieni, time to cobble together a new army to defend Sir John French and the British to commit the capital. troops to General Jore’s plan for the Marne. French took some persuading. Choose to represent either Jore or French and develop arguments as to why the BEF should risk annihilation to help the French and why they should not. How might emotion have contributed to the nal decision? How does this link with TOK? When of a Paris its French – right and ank commander, the French Germans. turned to German ght stopped Plan. to When meet the cautious he at The his an of army opened owing to itself a in had a spelled thus the end picture BEF his prepare and defences 65 ordered of to the Kluck, the join These the actions Schlieffen Luxembourg events communications situation front between the in of von Army. of away He ank General gap in exposing French right Fifth the far stressful Now – the the with French delayed and into pleaded the wheeling Paris, 50-kilometre Moltke, this Army intended counteroffensive. slam tortured failed. had commander, a thus and withdraw Plan up von to to with and imperfect for Joffre along Staff, First guarding Army Armies. gap revealed Schlieffen it Paris First advance Marne nature ordered rear. the Chief had the Army defending Second German Schlieffen opportunity German German the as Sixth his threat into German headquarters, unfolded the and Paris French saw Army this drive The the Sixth spotted around Joffre, First and aviator not as they system. on 9 His September kilometres to the what? The Race to the Sea The retreat Second and Armies topography referred An in as enduring them It to of with was just France probed of to the 700 “The such now did the front were a motion Race to a the and their west likewise. the English from digging for for This of the rest German that of would the war is to to outank that which way they the The around one’s three French the and German of movements and of ground was a Similar more Alps or to operations less the that on continuous Channel. in major series the and determine and is enemy. defend entrenching in First the sometimes Sea”. attention. a of events the requires Channel. resulted series Front manoeuvre turned by entrenchment manoeuvre and kilometres sides in Western military accompanied front set the encirclement north Germans subsequent All It two armies British ank. the front operating armies The counter held, threatens directions. movements, extended south-east the end stretching along this front both furiously. Trench warfare The stalemate complex of technologies defensive in nature. defenders August that 128 that system in in developed This which, were imbalance this context, September dominated on the entrenchments, nature in and of the of for the than favoured ghting Western be majority stronger 1914. Western can the to Front, seen of the those war, Germans, hold on to seems a an that Paradoxically, Front as massively uneven those were as the the primitive that were offensive they were territory defensive in clash the gained in technology comparison to C H A P T E R some of the technologies designed to 5 . 3 : overcome O P E R A T I O N S them. O N Defences T H E W E S T E R N F R O N T were mines based on the shovel and barbed wire, later augmented with concrete. Explosive charges concealed The machine gun, of more use as a defensive weapon early in the war, underground. Mines can be massive is an exception. Of amethrowers, trench mortars, gas, mines and with tonnes of explosives dug into deep tanks only the latter seemed to hold any hope of breaching the ever- subterranean shafts or small antistrengthening defenses. personnel devices designed to maim a Nor was strategy Western been Front. both to sides. the be dangerous options, the The and the Second abandoned poison on April Allied the gas who, lines gas By the had 5 the to absence of degree the single individual. the always trenches from was allow were denied the out for these feasible of outanking, enemy yet had the landings only a that the not Alps of troops the to incredibly strategic alternative. Germans, It is to resorted for Front. ve months introduction time ground suffered Germans to by of was in after the the west the north to close called Germans of a 70 half 000 as shocked a to blunted to 6,000 had halt of east. to the But around it casualties In new had weapon the – salient and the in much by on 24 taking pocket of the troops months of the war staggered even the most hardened generals. How did the casualties for August–September 1914 compare to the casualties in previous wars (Franco-Prussian, Anglo-Boer, dead. men. May and Crimean)? What are possible explanations for these dierences? they important measuring hands. Battle as 1,000 6,000 Research skills The scale of the casualties in the rst the using including a in kilometres. attack Allied Second gap Canadian only gas toward minutes as three offensive city of huge arrived German remained at of numbered Ypres a chlorine drifted attackers casualties, their of it matter depth newly the a as opened the a tonnes cloud and targeted army size and kilometres close suffered ground, Canadian troops. exploited later 170 deadly casualties attack only losing shrunk 8 the released the colonial Allied days Germans the sector behind French some masks the Ypres 000 two peacetime kilometres had gap giving signicantly high by success the gas the 10 attack though entire in held The and improvised The and erupted the of did the Western Ypres with ank In became Feints, continuous Amphibious taxing. advancing caused lines. second army 1915, had defenders A of rst, basically the strategy mobility aircraft, Allies, the of geography gas. the Allied the on Battle the German 22 that as military movement. was lines. through war of the L TA The front overcoming degree around such logistically breaking of a of warfare, form front getting the alternative rest some the task siege required Because over the of Technology, moved this on all Channel, question. to Short predicated encirclement, up The Ypres. Allies The many. TOK discussion Fritz Haber was the German chemist who developed chlorine as a chemical weapon. He later won the Nobel Prize in chemistry for the Haber–Bosch Process. “ We should misjudge this scientist [Fritz Haber] seriously if we were to judge him only by his harvest. The stimulation of research and the advancement of younger scholars become ever more impor tant to him than his own achievements.” Richard Willstätter To what extent do you agree with Willstätter in terms of Haber ’s work with chemical weapons? 129 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S Technology and war: gas Gas used in the First World War was generally of Phosgene was a deadlier variant of chlorine that was hard three types: to detect. It was often mixed with chlorine, combining the controllability of chlorine with the lethality of phosgene. ● tearing agents ● asphyxiants ● blistering agents. Mustard gas was the most common blistering agent. On contact with the skin, especially moist areas such as the armpits and groin, it would cause severe burns. If inhaled The rst gas to be used was deployed by the German it would burn away the lining of the lungs. Death would army on the Eastern Front. It was a tearing agent and often come some days or even weeks after inhalation. although it briey incapacitated the Russians, it was Mustard gas was heavier than air and would rest in the generally ineective. low areas of shell holes for days, impeding an enemy’s movements on the battleeld. Chlorine was the rst common gas used by both sides. It was greenish in colour and caused irritation to the eyes More than one million casualties were caused by gas and corruption of the lungs. Death came by asphyxiation. during the war. ▲ 130 French soldiers and their mounts prepare for a gas attack C H A P T E R 5 . 3 : O P E R A T I O N S O N T H E W E S T E R N F R O N T Source skills Another Chemical warfare nine Read the following two accounts of the use of of Balisan her warfare and answer the questions that were Badriya killed in Said the Khider , bombing said and the gas military in resident, relatives sweep afterwards, including her parents, two follow. brothers, husband and son. Kurds recall gas attack horror at Saddam Trial A BAGHDAD, at the genocide warplanes weapons into Iraq the — trial A of Saddam bombarded in 1987 and survivor a testied Hussein Kurdish helicopters hills and bombed second day, survivors Wednesday that village Iraqi with pursued he chemical those man who ed a which Saddam the 1987–1988 the Kurds people After were 1988 the stand co-defendants Iraq in a are in trial, charged military which the tens sweep of in over thousands an survivors, the appeal Adiba dropped of bombs his of trial from until defense chief judge Sept. 11, lawyers Abdullah to give about time the the his Bayez her that close my described village spread other, tell the to me,” see in her what’s Bayez, a Narjis eyes, of a the Balisan, smoke came chest wrong mother of Kurdish stand, and attack guerrilla, accounting 1988, family The the can Aug. 16, saying that 1987 warplanes smelled “like by and including on was the or several an village attacks August of Ikmala in killed. to and with ve, me, her , she Only judges (yards) the brother eye dead, away Abdullah are those and and was Saleh hugging my Moussa. heart she Tuesday box. as “I in “I that can’t saw survivors the on plaintiffs to le and God village trial. in Bayez’s the case. Asked complaint against everyone blind of of Tuesday. her complain al-Majid May other testied wished exclaimed, Hassan two neighboring Hama, testifying whom of the testied Mostafa Bayez my ground it.” who survivors Ali meters the them Saddam in the all.” complaining stomach. said. had. Balisan Ali house, on Moussa resembled on Wasan against, I their were few said describe accounts the a wife,” attack The outside Shaaban feeling Hussein, daughter pain former weapons [defendants’] about a the 1987 ground brother’s Sheik apples.” “Then be brother’s son husband, Oula bombardment and each against legitimacy. Earlier , rotten took campaign, four chemical which that from in to took them. killed. adjourned consider court’s six northern hearing al-Amiri to of and Anfal also witnessed “On For claiming peshmerga, When threw “When I up I all took Source: got over her in www.msnbc.msn.com/id/14475531/ #storyContinued to Account of gas attack – 1916 wash her face ... all my other children were throwing up.” Arthur Empey was an American living in New Jersey when “Then my condition got bad, too. And that’s when we war consumed Europe in 1914. Enraged by the sinking of realized that the weapon was poisonous and chemical,” the Lusitania and loss of the lives of American passengers, he she said. expected to join an American army to combat the Germans. Bayez “but said the prevent Like my the In villagers, the caves, “All the she knew she only to and from said. I “I the refuge I by was When America did not immediately declare war , Empey mules, mountains the gas, blood, to see, scream, I We she couldn’t slight kids away from his do lines. breeze warning villagers camp, with her and her were Bayez died. swollen children’s’ eyes he sits Conditions been in are from passed a trench perfect the peering for enemy’s along to be a gas towards attack direction. on the – a The lookout: had a new man at the periscope, on this afternoon in me.’” taken said On eyes as blowing has question; The story take We my join German tight ‘Don’t boarded a ship to England, enlisted in the British army and was soon manning a trench on the front lines. many holding couldn’t was on anywhere.” vomiting that did caves bombed blinded were was thing nearby taking was people I children,” anything, ed came villagers burns. ve villagers helicopters many said. had the the with by four fth her swollen, the military people day in ngers their kept jail, to skin to in she see, a the same pried and when prison “I blackened,” room open saw she my said. he yellow I called cloud coming–” which was banging to I empty At on the the me: shell same the for from re step, “There’s along waited detached an periscope. out rolling But was sitting no the case, a sort ground more, rie, I which instant, cleaning of out was gongs front, the my it’s bayonet, alarm hanging started rie, greenish, in grabbing gave my by near ringing the down 131 5 C A U S E S the or trench, smoke must or A N D the signal helmet, not lose twenty E F F E C TS as any seconds for O F Tommy to don we call it. time; you generally in which to Gas 20 T H - C E N T U R Y his travels adjust have your I respirator , quietly, so about gas W A R S you eighteen trained bullets bayonets a helmet. my were large snout gas helmet is made of cloth, treated with are two windows, or glass eyes, in it, you can see. Inside there is a which goes in the mouth. You breathe nose; the neutralized exhaled gas. gas. Each at helmet, pull it in a is carries one out off, the in good even take old of tube the for the ve of hours them bag. placing one, the new air is being so spoke, in the loose ends under the the outside of the strongest around must your one a air this defective a minute, trench, pandemonium Tommies running dugouts here with adjusting and there, xed reigned their and of your your my dry, my the bayonets, were to in and Our machine gun ammunition gun’s on crew the from parapet the of busy and I The the the re gas is heavier of was They the air dugouts… on our sank the gas We had right to the spasmodic with was an to work soon quickly, too ground, infantry slow in twistings, went attack. getting clutching at West his but over new their ones on as the Fritz took the It mad rush. barbed loud “crack” wire… pressure leaking. to burst began on the The trench horrible; I sank my from my be onto esh, throat warned gun started to a swim, lungs Turning appeared pricking to over to the that to No. wind like oating then got me re in the step, a air. needles blackness. awakened How by one A delicious of my strong told I me wind that was I that mates had had cool, removing fresh arisen been and “out” air felt my in smoke dispersed for three my the gas. hours; they dead. examined it my on rst and was the smoke left helmet, side, just a bullet grazing my had ear , gone the had penetrated Out of through the hole made in the gas cloth. our crew That of six, night we we lost two buried killed all of and the two dead, excepting trenches in No Man’s Land. In death there is not much generally helmet; throat, [died]. that extra company his stop the up lls A could step. mounting bringing and our head helmets. be distinction, follows horrible machine communication those and and bursting heaps, seemed my sandbags was to thought dugout. than was and noise head heavy changed lungs. out a wounded. German some ries came, have head, bombers turning man out was was in Nothing reached Then helmet through trenches. like which tunic. our helmets, men pouring down fallen. my ear. snake, I Reinforcements looked trench, shrapnel went Germans seemed breath, over in 2, his wear change collar of helmet. For our They Suddenly, I tucking respirators, its they is of He hold foul tube slung To helmet, The this inhaling sleeping. new cloth mouth, canvas while the chemicals. the two waterproof times, through prevents helmet you the action the Tommy all passing the that One shoulder bag by through constructed or gas, they our and over through The your their trench Then rubber-covered place tube, front, along their through heads. which In on parapet. chemicals. guns There in All gun the glistening. nightmare. A machine raking friend and foe are treated alike. man Source: Eyewitness to History, www.eyewitnesshistory. he after a horrible com/gas.htm few to see Questions him die, but we were powerless to help him. In the corner 1 of a traverse, a little, muddy cur dog, one of the Compare being pets, was lying dead, with his two paws over his nose. animals dogs, cats, that and suffer rats, the they most, having the no horses, helmets mules, to gas, or smoke helmet, as it is called, at the save best attacked the thing, headache from and it is wearing not long before one them. 2 is a in eighteen-pounders an effort, re by step the was were artillery, lined What can Iraqi gets a and bombs near bursting to in disperse No the Man’s with crouching gas men, Gas was wars Land, Our artillery German keep 132 back lines, to at had try you surmise forces? How might you account What about were the the goals goals of of the army? hand to repel the put a barrage of not after and reinforcements. break up used 1918. extensively Why might in this 20th-century be? clouds. Construct a table comparing the advantages disadvantages of gas as a weapon. Is expected curtain re any more their attack or less “humane” than on weapons? the gas. bayonets gas attack. by violent and xed, of it. 4 The accounts vile- 3 Our two differences? German smelling the cattle, the A contrast It’s for the and company’s and Explain your answer. other C H A P T E R 5 . 3 : O P E R A T I O N S O N T H E W E S T E R N F R O N T The Battle of Verdun (February–October 1916) The German centred on attempt the to French operation was Erich Falkenhayn. von ferocity white” later in would 13 that to year, kilometres that ▲ his require reserves To they use the and had feed brainchild could the of these the guns the he wanted surrender, Like attack, of a in code Germans General French “bleed of at the of rst the French Judgment, Along plus enormous weeks million such Somme divisions the The Staff with resources. eight some 2.5 Front Verdun. Operation deploy amassed the attack amount the of the would named during city of attack they including had Western the British would Belgium the Chief to that the massive pieces, on around German Germans artillery effective stalemate the phrase. German front so not stockpiling 1,200 been of Initially chilling the the entrenched of the guns war. shells. German ar tillery at Verdun. What role did ar tillery play in the German plan at Verdun? The opening French to of hour and intention territory. Pétain. – was hard changed single the as defence then of to to keep hands every for move the track up in by down guns as giving It held alone. which the what The rather to the to torn The French never the seize General active with their difcult for landscape. which defence ground. trenches as than of the shells counter-attack them hills, the 000 dugouts, increasingly active to 100 advance, only and key – doctrine across Germans allowing 21February, entrusted the way forts of their was became doctrine side in hammer forward of on defenders possible use to weather, cautious environs series The for would continued a March Verdun, its of erupted French called infantry. heavy which nally the ground, with attack. of and of because soldiers French part, ringed times supplying bit their was French city it hunkered however, the their German 13 the that follow Verdun When defenders many kill postponed smashing to of road to plan, contesting of focus close German Germans, and city on was defences. determined Germans The the The The artillery the was He defence later. The battle their came rained forts. the bolster bombardment an the break army became meant village that of resistance managed to it Vaux was a cut. 133 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y From front April and problem Falkenhayn so continued was exact thing army was W A R S that into he beginning casualties sporadic ghting side ▲ would lose was which German ordered to to press now he on around a itself par Verdun approximately army to draw white. that attack into the By the a the end last – of of whole spring. The attrition, the the German June about until the the battle French French, would 000 along throughout drawn with 350 to French being wanted bleed were his the 200 the 000. December, In the each casualties. Canadian infantry on the front lines in April 1916 Technology and war: communications wires were generally cut within the rst minutes of a battle. Wireless sets were huge and unreliable, not to Directing the movement of groups of soldiers in as close mention easily intercepted by the enemy. And so tactical to real time as possible has always been both the key to communication in this modern war rever ted to methods victory on the battleeld and a considerable challenge. used for hundreds of years in some cases. When armies and formations were relatively small, runners or riders could carry commands verbally, the speed of Trench runners: All armies employed soldiers whose communication limited only by the speed of the carrier and sole responsibility was to convey messages through the the distance travelled. As armies and battleelds grew in labyrinthine trench system. This was very dangerous work size and complexity, sound (bugles, drums, or pipes) or and required a good knowledge of the trench system, visuals (usually ags) were used. The amount of smoke a system that could change regularly. and noise produced in a Napoleonic or American Civil War Flags: Semaphore ags were used by all services. battle, however, made such advances impractical once a Competent signalers could send up to 12 words a minute large engagement commenced. The telephone held some if visibility was uninterrupted, which was a complication promise, but was dependent on stable wires. by the very nature of trench warfare. The massive armies and immense battleelds of the Heliographs and lamps: Heliographs communicated Morse First World War brought all these issues into sharp relief. code by concentrating sunlight, making them useless at Generals were often miles to the rear of fronts that night. Paran and later battery operated lamps overcame themselves stretched for miles – the Germans attacked this limitation, but were still limited by line of sight. along 13 kilometres of front at Verdun. The Somme front Carrier pigeons: Pigeons were a remarkably reliable on 1 July 1916 was twice as long. Timely information to communication method during the war. The British army a Brigadier General about the progress of his men could had some 22 000 pigeons in service at any one time take hours and therefore the tactical situation could be, during the war and by the end had used some 100 000. and often was, entirely dierent by the time new orders Only about 2% of those released failed to return. reached those who had to carry them out. Telephone 134 C H A P T E R 5 . 3 : O P E R A T I O N S O N T H E W E S T E R N F R O N T The Battle of the Somme (July–November 1916) The epitome Western of massive held in into the of open the This to the end spent to nor by the logical with the men. place little It French of The – decided along the ● 1,500 ● 3 ● 11 200 kilometres of buried ● 69 000 kilometres of above ● thousands ● 100 ● lodging ● 300 The A artillery million 000 plan of for 1916 of had wire infantry advance would the barrage” shield that left The the had interim British 17 be would drive to to itself. it as close attack would be required army referred swelled the would would advance of that to jointly require: railheads sizes telephone ground by the from cable cable that mind, this 1 July “mines” As be of which 18 the land” they a theoretical unscathed breach to “creeping provide trench metres attacking trenches a be the would man’s them enemy would tunneled by would delivering such detonation their “no with On the artillery oppose lines. preceded both the assault German rushing The Army” lines. In would to the General be lled ▲ by this Picardy guns there to infantry. across destroyed Haig’s and laboriously rose be and north to men targeting) artillery the suited pigeons target underground been under decided famously total more artillery would effect supplemented massive various with “New a a the straightforward. nothing this 000 week-long (counter-battery advance with on trucks. seemed devastating of these carrier 400 barbed virtually for lines Cavalry, pour and land Champagne thought army River. and was the horses bombardment German rail pieces shells water massive new south on combination infantry. lines, movement sides 1916. had of a undertakings. they started this Somme the of until British that ● building both with sodden the massive Kaiser the the through resources the waves in the in generals lines restoring land 1915, process – with Neither postponed army” was rear, such Allied breach Verdun for the enemy’s up the rocky from standards “contemptible 2million broken, be the front. enormous stalemate. pre-war the operations the which followed exploit centre would to breach enemy’s to the the war the the left wasteful the in then warfare amassing break Tiny as to pounding elds of strategy was would front Amiens After a artillery style strategy. to offensive aspired reserve, familiar end of Front British cavalry to a British wounded at the Battle of the Somme distance 135 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y of 11 kilometres thought The asked the was, and more operation Joffre off a not took gunners the and it into were second lines line. force When of not the wave and the 100 they in were the cut accounting were casualties to the vast with before 20 the of from were of these wave of the were units (support) with of their force attacking Some their 000 of and attacking second reached little pounding Germans losses. the too them bombardment upon choked 60 “crept” machine the the it around incredible the but pressure offering wave transpired. though it whole when completed, 000 erce majority they take German horric this August, to thus though attack was – to the Rawlinson of threw the elements trenches down on them: as some land ordered and it and equal of order as operational, trenches, man’s forward were grim 000 no barrage infantry them While in much amazed toward exist. as week but None beginning month were saw General likely. bombardment, creeping dazed enemy the a advancing dugouts out, more wire horrendous What because wounded The subordinate at by The barbed the stopped up Verdun. the advancing did His was launched moved at this day. advance German them. guns rst be be clamoured make trench the disastrous rst day at the Somme? The during soldiers of to further. British troops What role did poor communication play in it over did it army passed machine Class discussion was outstripping protection. they the destroy jumbled quickly, on modest that French did W A R S the dead own an front attacking dead. Technology and war: machine guns The quintessential killing as develop the an American rounds a – weapon assembly line automatically Hiram minute Maxim of the was industrial to mass repeating – powered who by weapon designed the age, gas the machine production. a in the 19th weapon discharge Many from gun had century, that could those was to mass at tempted but fire same it up to was to an 600 rounds. By the outbreak of hostilities in 1914 all modern armies had versions of Maxim’s innovation. These were large weapons, which required a crew of four to six men to operate. Jamming and overheating were constant problems in the trying environment of trench warfare. Never theless, by the end of the war they could re 1,200 rounds per minute and were mainstays of trench defences with ranges of up to 1,000 metres. Smaller, more por table machine guns were developed such as the Lewis gun or small Vickers machine guns. These could be mounted on aircraft and carried forward in infantry assaults. Haig until the and British Germans 136 the British November. had 500 would The suffered 000. resume furthest 420 their advance 000 attacks was 12 casualties, on the Somme kilometres. the French By 194 front November 000 and the C H A P T E R 5 . 3 : O P E R A T I O N S O N T H E W E S T E R N F R O N T Source skills “It The Battle of the Somme was valour , a magnicent and its display assault only of trained failed of and success disciplined because dead Source A men General battle, Douglas Haig, December dispatch 1916. summary of bombardments points on the were rest of also our John carried front, out and daily during Keegan, from the 24th June to 1st July gas was good line, upon fteen effect a at more frontage miles. Some than which 70 forty in raids, places total there infantry between too, along amounted were Gommecourt our to at the in one was of Ypres these during kept dispositions, me the well week preceding besides informed serving as other to useful exception of 1 July to the 1916, unrelievedly it High Command … had was been that the gravely alarmed of sector the … British ground attack, had particularly been lost. … because Falkenhayn by extreme the the any results scale of the German General Staff] reacted to that loss left peremptory fashion, relieving the [commander] in attack, whose and War over in north World our undertaken and First discharged [Chief our The at German with further .” the disastrous period no Source D “If different advance the (http://www.rstworldwar. com/source/haigsommedespatch.htm) “Artillery can sector it had occurred …” enemy’s Questions purposes.” 1 a What does Keegan mean by “the scale of Source B the Private Tomlinson, 1/7th Sherwood in John Keegan, The Face attack”? of we got to the German wire, I was What is General to see it intact, after what we had been Colonel and I took cover behind a With reference small after a bit the Colonel raised himself on his knees forehead to by see a better. single Immediately he in his was to analyse its the origin, value purpose and and limitations hit B for a historian studying the of British hands attack and implying C] bank Source but Lisle told. content, The de [Source absolutely 2 amazed D] Battle.) statement? “When [Source Foresters. b (Quoted British in on the Somme in 1916. the bullet.” 3 Compare reveal and about contrast the what Sources bombardment that A and B preceded Source C the General de Lisle in a report to the 4 Minister of Newfoundland British describing the the Using the Newfoundland Regiment, which casualties on 1 July. (Quoted in Horror The of Battle of the Somme: Somme. The sources the role and that your the own knowledge, bombardment in the failure of the British attack on Martin the Gilbert, the suffered played 92% on efforts evaluate of attack Prime Heroism Somme, 1 July 1916. and War .) Passchendaele (July–November 1917) After the great exhaustion. Provisional the of Tsar mutiny, more not of Government many they in only the ways from though. the that the as of had Allies control French but for as The British the Third Somme was no a of at goal. point abdication in various army in had the the any a but route British. Battle had of not Expectations Instead of states bent Caporetto, left of Russian participate Ypres) earlier. the the at That assault year longer to the the were Italian assault Battle near was after refusing Venice. the as divisions assaults. before were collapse Austro-German the breakthrough the near taken Fifty halted known of was trenches, an been Battle 1916, fruitless strategy (also the The in face of army 1917. saw barely Passchendaele much of remaining what had Russian February broken that In in bloodletting The the evolved had British 137 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y would had advance preceded move the intensity ring the tank The of twice four attack no – at man’s sight. and and as many more do before shells surprise seemed was rain the Tanks became as long and offensive to to it grab again. the a The well to in A the the barrage German barrage with narrower defenders. work artillery on Somme across the intense and differed twice front. new dry, as than trenches, only many Needless element though of in guns to say, warfare rough, – surface land. progress soft longer forward no rst a Somme as times was torrential so after the artillery – the of W A R S short-lived. made mud so became close to any A sort German of oppressive bogged that down counter-attack advance impossible. men and the were said and The to movement the sink of onset ground out artillery was of pieces impossible. Technology and war: tanks A vehicle that could withstand withering machine gun re as armoured shelter for advancing soldiers. Following and traverse the moonscape that was no man’s land could behind the tanks the British infantry was able to advance theoretically lead to the breakthrough of which both sides 3,500 metres with limited casualties at which time the dreamt. On paper the tank seemed to deliver exactly this. First unreliability of the new innovation began to tell. It was not developed by the British, the rst tanks, so called to preserve until 1918 that the idea of massing tanks with coordinated secrecy and because of their resemblance to water tanks, ar tillery and air suppor t was implemented. This approach posed as many problems as they solved. First introduced at worked very well and presaged the tank’s use in the the Somme front late in 1916, they were usually crewed by Second World War. In the end the Germans were the least eight men, choked by the diesel and cordite fumes. These enthused about the new technology, only producing about early tanks travelled 6 km/h and broke down frequently. 20 tanks of their own, but using captured Allied tanks when they could. The French, on the other hand, produced over How to use these monstrosities? The Allies tended to 4,000 of various models and the British about 2,600. divide the tanks up among infantry units and use them When the battle engagements larger in gains little German it back. called they a on October than the and on the some 270 Germans the of and New The Although around within and the the the gures taking the units to Haig only have were now are attempt forces to its the the and would have the infantry attack, assault non-existent disputed, resulted exhausted. resume resumed to assaults British then village defending smaller These ground, forces Corps captured of General and British Zealand 000 series stalemate. ground casualty 200 a take Canadian casualties a Passchendaele. same November 000 of front the won encouraged September effect. 6 British that village pound end little the stalemate of Australian to Passchendaele. lost the a section artillery By did resumed September toward more bombard in the which on village Allied surrounding take Haig 26 of Powers territory, it. 1918 The dawn staring had some troops hope 138 at of 1918 each reason fresh in another 1 to from stemmed arriving on other million Western hope. the from France the across now the each on a The Germans thousands way – of over by the saw three moonscape. non-existent week the Front battered would soon Russian American 300 000 by summer. exhausted Both being front. The however, seeing For soldiers March armies sides, the who 1918 German new Allies, were with army knew, C H A P T E R however, society States. new that could For the forces thereby The by A moving Storm units 20 casualties going able to time and, not ports they however, they could casualties, By felt. August blow. that On 8 not “The black the as war the back replace. with was tank on day the Hundred toward of Days, where monarchy asked for on November an war they and were ill a the line. of They to Allies had jointly inux lost turn the to a the not to a the the of They channel armies. troops similar They that number losses set of four war in and General This series were air for of less knockout Amiens on this the rest would this of known Germans Once fact, a called the collectively pushed earlier. hostilities a of support tone actions years with front Ludendorff the acknowledged agreement, by goals the 000 the attack progressively started government end infantry German In a troops massive army”. 250 were were but armies. taken 000 kilometres overall British suffered US 8 of 39 they gains, German had many Allies only had surrender over if The the infantry race. try artillery, forces had of lose was were, the the taken day. and points, soldiers in German it “storm lines suffered afford halt gains had rst by strong British resulted had was speed. traditional lost Front. By to for having German armistice. their March contest they the reach launched they and use the F R O N T their they of British themselves Allied W E S T E R N United followed and forces, Western of 21 the 7,000 also reverse the attempted. the even T H E the required French Allies’ out O N was before the steady they previously army, 11 the as in Germans ground the was these over could on than Although the cases, The Germans August day offensive British the and that could table tactics holes Rather separated exhausted coordinated scale the not – Britain British leaving they beyond up” The it some race barrage successes impressive had not but the soldiers. offensive As had, acutely in were “rolled and areas. the the a new punching soldiers on the artillery of be knock these them, of economy juggernaut negotiation struck positions, so, German Amiens. end British doing operation had the to their O P E R A T I O N S mobilization? and rear speed forward slow that tactics the capitalize the from the to At would the US bypassed The 000 British of quickly, into take. killed. to three-hour Troopers over the weight moving soldiers, economic 1918 French new new the submarines offensive on deep to been of the debilitating troopers” their the German predicated the outlast Germans and force crushed despite not 5 . 3 : the the cease German Germans at 11:00 am 1918. 139 5.4 The war beyond the Western Front Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ How was the nature of combat on the Eastern Front dierent from that on the Western Front? ➔ What role did naval forces play in the war? ➔ In what ways did the Home Front contribute to the war eor t? Key concepts ➔ Cause ➔ Consequence ➔ Perspective The Eastern Front In its some wa ys author the assumption of under many e xpe cted. the in fa ct and Plan we st and wa s Russians 20 “a 1914 manage the German prominence, the not cooperating. the Russians train and combined The result Battle army by of defeat effort strength, was the suffered Germans, army which two was 30 000 General two the 1916 that deep – than to casualties Samsonov and to of the the John Th os e vastly end of the their than 000 war, face their their the soldiers suicide. and troops Army that rise were between Samsonov to saw would armies animosity Tsar a which who Second 95 After east having committed of Gumbinenn Russian greater had Sch l ie ffe n words transport his August un c e r t ai n t y” . Generals Russian report of the two without the Germans e nd ofcers personal armies be fo r e victory The that in until the F i r st we l l quick defenders. two wh a t R us s i a n a the battle the to the w a r. armies command turn of the the considerably encirclement Rather in Germans in th at In on P r us si a the da n g e r o u s At the e a s t. at time bloodied from the the east early with was the fact East Fr a n c e . w i th realized there allowed each in Hindenburg, War In o p po s i te bas e d e n vi si on e d in the German Germans fact, ha d the be e n in va de d defenders. the had same ve r y invaders and Tannenberg. had the This the Germany of e xa c t l y w ar in M a r ne p r e g na nt commanding Rennenkampf. by In at the e vi d e nt the Ludendorff ou t s ucce s s German reorganization Generals at plan invaded August Schli e f f e n 1 9 1 4, beca m e the d id plan m ob i l i z a t i o n . drawn great Se ptemb e r hasty to l o ng unra vell i ng outnumbered on a wa s unce rta intie s The F ur the r, ha v e Plan e nti r e R e nne nk a m p f ea rly it Th e R us s i a n Ge ne r a l would Kee ga n, 140 slo w Army in S chl i e f f e n envisio ne d . own. at the Russian captured C H A P T E R One week Russia n later, First Hinde nburg’s 95 000 his from last After the army regrouped not nearly autumn This of came though When Italy press the almost and the entered as war to on of east ensured the the on and side troops in lost of judged the the on Front war the one L a ke s , pr ot e c t of into a the Front. Russian forces point in were the Hungary. stalemate, become. in 1915, Germans be movement Western through had to His previous to Austrian at Allies the this south. F R O N T i n ic t i n g Lakes, The and the W E S T E R N the Ma s u r i a n the had settled facing wi t h T H E fo l l owe d . sweep Western the front to Front de a l w i t h dr e w Masurian allies B E Y O N D the that it W A R Germany offensive. Brusilov territory than German move his fr o m to of Ge r m a n s Eastern as army Battle threatened the bound the the Front to their General Germans the T H E R e n ne n ka m pf Tannenberg and obliged miles of Eastern Russians trench Russian 100 of his i nv a d er s a nd returned nothing were The the defeats 1914 as the e ne my. space on successful to not Austrians front. as the whe e l ed s ubs e que n t s we p t on and longer twin the e nci r cl e me nt topography would At forc e s casualties army The H i nd e nb ur g Arm y. 5 . 4 : a good offensive the to the Italian time to regained year. Gallipoli With the seems, new and stalemate in front the in hindsight, in another British France only were becoming obvious theatre of exploring that war. such more the By intractable Allies would November options. Over 1914 the by the seek to both week, open the objections it a French of the Class discussion commanders on the Western Front, a plan to attack the Ottoman Empire What were the strategic benets of began to take shape. attacking the Ottoman Empire at the The original plan was for a squadron of older model battleships, both Dardanelles? French Straits as two land the went. xed hours third British, with they Turks’ of and and the Gallipoli Australia and managed to but nothing the 25 New intelligence, decisive action president with third By a third it end the be 1915 and Bay, surrounded the made Suvla The Allied plans British which by on the tried by the These to he – by southern soldiers spot a neutralized two of terrain when the Within reduced be on of tip the landings hills, bad and the Mustapha became break succeeded only the in the stalemate creating a forces. acknowledged all elusive. surrounding rough Turkish withdraw and defenses destroying combination very leadership to a Ataturk by later (ANZAC). commander Kemal Turkey.) at enclave as to landed beach at was have days by navigation, Turkish known landing of was of Corps Turkish proved squadron forces stopped at Dardanelle successful would of narrow guns four patches were poor post-war narrow the what of to British Army small They the guns followed Zealand out more. (later shore 1915 the pounding mobile operation The up moderately defenders’ the way sweepers, were Peninsula, carve their mine April military Kemal of retired. On force they starting had forces. help While guns, of to their forces the asco from the for Class discussion Gallipoli Why are amphibious landings so Peninsula. Between 28 December 1915 and 6 January 1916, the British dangerous for the attacking forces? and the ANZAC most cost the forces abandoned successful Allies 300 military 000 their positions. operation casualties and of the the The evacuation campaign, Turks 250 000 a was perhaps campaign that casualties. 141 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y The it war would economic Empire, drag and which separate W A R S on social in descended peace, the the east pressures Treaty into of as that in the west. would revolution in Brest-Litovsk, The prove war too 1917, would great for eventually abandoning the bring the with Russian signing a conict. L TA Research skills 1 With the German signing army of was Brest-Litovsk free to the The War at Sea transfer It all its units from the Eastern is one of between to the Western Front . How were war, ironies and the of the German war that Empire while was a the naval major arms long-term race cause the massive eets created by this same race clashed only of once transferred? during 2 great Britain many the soldiers the Front the war. How did this aect the balance of There were two critical problems that faced the German High Seas Fleet forces on the Western Front? and 3 How long did it take the ow of American soldiers to nullify this increase? therefore pre-war of the Royal happened all ships second geographical. was to the sink Channel, 34 full run of defeats before 1914 engage the and at Heligoland inicting the brought eet to decrypted German the Sea. North The with both safer ammunition to inict their Navy Fleet more eet, in sides claiming and damage command not giving than of North for the Admiral them In was Royal efcient Navy. once to of less a hit the in the but Royal new began Navy large battle not a sortie in Germans to risk the leaving German and were rest the High into history communications the war. between than Scheer a the Navy. before of For English however, bases, The the Sea 1915, naval that their in the Unwilling again. remainder in notice battle meant returned Sea 1916 the Royal ports, other ocean. resulted 1916, largest The adopted Rheinhard May the North the retire had and economic bombard open ports Bank In to Fleet cruisers advantage. ambitions wage through by and advanced storage Germans the emerge the force the the its strategy to was of Seas from enemy. naval was and Dogger action. More propellant the their clash victory. This and attitude. for High battle precluded. controlled emerge 1914 subsequent however, would new looking lanes lanes Dreadnought in numerical this frenzied advantage engagement 31 was advantage advance on eet narrowest, arrive. in 1.6:1 accomplish German Navy a her numerical eet had German shipping would could ciphers on shipping its the eet damage a sea at despite the advantage surface bottlenecks Blight some to the major 2:1 numerical wide Royal a that, of Navy enjoyed of these 1915 Fleet a was short only Royal had way in to both The the Grand commander taking Scotland, approach. force, bulk ships access rst fell weighed goal One kilometres and Throughout only the the It that end The still Navy Navy’s merchant the and The Royal 18. Royal enemy. the time 1916 disadvantage Germans Norway 142 the was something the in Germany The on strategy. Germany By Jutland and other warfare naval Navy. at battleships in her shipbuilding, able of Royal Seas C H A P T E R 5 . 4 : T H E W A R B E Y O N D T H E W E S T E R N F R O N T Technology and war: submarines The submarine, or U-boat, seemed to hold out the promise brought new ethical dilemmas to naval warfare. They were of blockading an enemy without the expense of a massive unable to take on survivors of their attacks and lost all their surface eet. This was especially attractive to Germany advantage if they surfaced and warned their targets, as whose surface eet could not match the British Royal maritime law demanded they do. If the U-boats practised Navy and was in fact holed up in its Nor th Sea por ts for the so-called “unrestricted” submarine warfare and attacked vast majority of the war. any ship deemed to be headed to an enemy por t, however, they proved deadly. Unrestricted submarine warfare also The German Imperial Navy began the war with about 30 solved the perpetual problem of having to accurately functional U-boats. These were deployed both against the identify targets and from which country they sailed. Royal Navy and the British merchant eet plying the waters between Nor th America and Britain. Early models were While the U-boat menace was very real, countermeasures equipped with one torpedo tube, but later models could such as convoys, depth charges and rudimentary sonar discharge multiple self-propelled torpedoes. The U-boat turned the tide in favour of the Allies. The Home Front By in the time the November belligerent feeding, an nations. clothing undertaking As we all resources have nancial cultural war The Home the all that the manage Board of the The was occupied, Britain it and and countries of not these was feed at France, In and a the physically of undertaking – mobilizes resources, resources, World The War deadly are of this logic being can used of in free the In of such Act and so to as the Britain and directly Industries Canada raw across in economy War certain vital coordinate established the such market and Realm the identify that legislation were States acted we belief the the control supply a manage of a drastic the Munitions materials national as high a hand, United to level result had of be of for borders in war war such as production. imported. steel the goods to States, the increase had consumer by nation but sweeping fairly partly affected halt the Board. was other the to Defence United process a countries. First shared procurement. of a to by targets. whims domestically army, the Front. agencies Munitions of resources directly the massive agricultural agencies agencies expense from the say a ground mobilized industrial countries, steady a to was which In powers the the activities its on all to more maintain the munitions not these in Home passed and produced to left ensured one War been number military Government Imperial able and to a these in countries production be of major be for includes the government production. the result production food citizens. Sometimes of could not armies resources. as all The World had resources, become Canada Commission case Germany in is This different each. Many coordinated net What also First men vast war if of much effort. governments its production. total that could Act too human various wartime Resources in to Front. allowed is the understatement these known looked activity Measures lives and will Front created Home War they be educational became common economic would a of millions arming war however, effort, they the resources of proved resources, war, aspects It and that in machine tens discussed mobilization total terrible 1918, foreign and import and food vast Australia, While coal territories for amounts Canada it civilians. and of other war. 143 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S UK Munitions Production, 1914–1918 1914 Ar tillery pieces 1915 91 Tanks 1916 3390 – 1917 1918 4314 5137 8039 150 1110 1359 – Aircraft 200 1900 6100 14 700 32 000 Machine guns 300 6100 33 500 79 700 120 900 Source: Kennedy, Paul. 1988. Rise and Fall of the Great Powers: conomic and Military Conict from 1500 to 2000. London, UK . Fontana Press. This increase and this reallocation the of ranks took The it of of life cruel been the there been its and its 800 000 – and is to a this part, ow shipping of airships British meaningful was The disruption to In turn to the died of war of the the 1.5 The its two all the toll on years at one for bomber the production. and effort This lled 18% civilian women to war the for the and in 1917 such as the to disorders. conduct to cut Her the of reducing her eets Gotha, but army estimated tonnes casualties still This Britain related country. – Germany. an attempted million was only. German war had While materials issue started. the took blockade war bound both enemy years. technology whole 5,000 your Powers 300 use, of 15 point aircraft, close in contraband eet over to between ships military sinking and war men million naval for undernourishment food As places Central war. once back new the rationed. well. important defence submarine inicting in is and blockading take to be population over non-military last used Britain, later cities for as their differentiate meaningless began the and to – to war. Allies permitted eet reserve the had France’s Britain national German to In reallocated food military during destined Germans supplies weeks’ level be workforce of something the 1909 law civilians throughout on in blockade the if Britain’s population. warfare. six Zeppelin goods surface German their new effort the the during Both to even 20% women. that of however, civilian economic 144 war target. an massive Eventually only a to – joined by had and armies jobs International designation, bombs of cornerstone disputed. vital lled warfare contraband For were goods applied massive population logic had resources resources the become economic used that consumer “non-traditional” must to of Germany’s walks meant meant of dropped causing no 5.5 Eects of the First World War Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ How did the war change the global balance of power? ➔ Why did the war aect society so deeply? Key concepts ➔ Continuity ➔ Change Political By the time the functionaries the on war had Europe. Germany Dual already The had for a few information, Paris would of to a in had state 1919. redesign of In a urry itself and a rocked had of other peace split rule by changes Russia. revolution. into with competing in its a structure of The constituent communist interests, communication power settlement, political its experiment imperfect map various to signicant and would and way beginning was collapsed and the their was and Hungary goals, economists grope number republic part weeks to a Austria its confused try Paris Bolshevik become For diplomats, in imposed new Monarchy components. state leaders, gathered the incomplete leaders at Europe. L TA Research and communication skills Choose one of the following: ● Germany ● Great Britain ● Austria-Hungary ● France United States ● Repor ters ● For those representing a country, research your country and the Paris peace settlement according to the following categories: ● Economic, social, military condition in November 1918 ● Military provisions of the treaties ● Territorial provisions of the treaties For the repor ters, research the terms of the treaties and generate a series of questions that attempt to elicit the motivations of the countries and what they think the strengths and weaknesses of the treaties are for their country. Conduct a press conference in which: ● each country makes a presentation to outline its research ndings ● the reporters ask each country representative questions and follow up questions ● the country representatives answer the questions. Discuss and analyse the treaties and evaluate the Paris peace settlement. 145 5 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S Economic The First involved Empire World with spent Germany money, that When $23 supply. created physically brought of the war. of it was to by do war off of is the northern the many so of war and The historians In to would of to believe not the that the $17 time billion. expanded blight return peace to and the expansion eastern the British this short to high signicant devastation amount pay, schedule of Europe treaties economic ability Likewise it the and the have the this brought terms The billion spend standard France countries not demand, Germany’s doubtful. debt. gold contribution within $9.3 did managed skyrocketing own was it all States. spent countries amounts the for United France these mid-1920s. their the Demobilization areas the disastrous of war, went with ravaged them the in ination. imposed requiring payments was Huge Although reparations on countries until with exception Because Coupled disastrous productivity economically staggering States unemployment. were billion incurred United belligerent money was possible $19.9billion. each the War the the of of the wisdom reparation unrealistic. Social As a watershed, Women always ooded they Middle-class before. into many of wartime expand ▲ an take the the entered this When the had like of and of to income women and in in out political many came shrank work. on by numbers a degree of to society. women workforce, millions of effects While monopolized greater also demand themselves women before. country’s dumped male the war men. than of social workers peacetime Nevertheless necessities had combined levels, the to countries. British women at work in a steel factory. Why was it that many of the gains that woman had made during the war were shor t-lived? 146 each workforce industrial found wide-ranging never traditionally demobilization women franchise part independent contributions the War occupations economy these World workplace important up women With independence. back First into composed required ever the C H A P T E R As reections affected by of the the war. movements such Dix works and the Siegfried Sassoon experiences. Robert an In Graves intriguing States with 1920s the jazz becoming and the and the post-war Erich of it of is war years Maria music, surprising trenches that The poets emotional on the uniquely popular in the that German such personal E F F E C T S as to bear very The American cafés of arts artist on by entry music of W O R L D W A R were and wartime likes of and the form, and F I R S T Otto their the T H E artistic Owen popular France O F new Wilfred memoirs were war. the spawned power Remarque information wildly not the Surrealism. British brought and world horrors Dada of source brought it as wider The 5 . 5 : remain United to Europe, Germany in the 1930s. L TA Thinking skills On an outline map of Europe in 1914 draw the borders of the following successor states: ● Latvia ● Yugoslavia ● Lithuania ● Hungary ● Estonia ● Poland ● Czechoslovakia ● Finland 1 On what basis did the diplomats and leaders at Versailles draw these borders? Did the same principles apply to territories outside of Europe? Why or why not? Give an example. 2 Which 1914 countries would have objected to these boundaries? Why? 3 Identify points of potential conict based in the 1919 map. 147 Exam-style questions and fur ther reading Exam-style questions 1 Examine the role of 2 Evaluate the role technology World 3 To extent World 4 Discuss 5 Evaluate First the 7 To 8 Discuss 9 Compare what did in causing the the outcome First of World the War. First determine the outcome of the causes importance of of sea the First power World in the War. outcome of the War. the strengths extent the was role and Western Examine strategy economic World Evaluate 10 played in War? the 6 the concerns War. what First domestic of and the the weaknesses First World United contrast War States military of in the a Schlieffen total the operations war? First on Plan. World the War. Eastern Front and Front. the failure of both German and Allied offensives in 1916. Fur ther reading Ferguson, Books. Fromkin, 1914? War. Holger Keegan, House). Kennedy, Military and H. First Toronto, World Strachan, Oxford, War I. Basic Last Summer: Who Started the Great War in and Modern Memory . Oxford University New Lawrence. War. Hew. The of the Somme: Toronto, Marne, World . 1914: A. Heroism and Horror of Canada. Random War. The The Opening House. Knopf New of World York, (distributed by War I and USA. Random Rise and to Fall 2000 . 2013. The of the Great London, War That Powers: UK. Economic Fontana Ended Peace: and Press. The Road to 1914. Canada. Margaret. UK. World USA Battle World 1500 Margaret. First Explaining USA. 1988. from House. The the Allen Sondhaus, War: War Stewart. MacMillan, Random York, Great 2011. The Paul. MacMillan, 148 The 2006. York, Conict Lane. of Europe’s New Changed John. New Pity UK. McClelland that 2004. 1975. Martin. Battle The USA. Knopf. Paul. Herwig, the David. Oxford, Gilbert, 1999. York, Alfred Fussell, Press. Niall. New 2002. York, 2014. Cambridge 2003. The Paris 1919: Six Months That Changed the World . USA. The Great University First World War at Press. War. Sea: A Naval Cambridge, Oxford History of UK. University Press. the Writing introductions and c onclusions Introductions they and generally high-stress to make of the conclusions receive situations sure task. that such should and are key attention. as IB everything There Introductions little be exams. you no conclusions elements This is When write in any especially time is contributes “throwaway” essay true a to and in factor the sentences yet timed, you need completion or paragraphs. count. Introductions The introduction your thesis. must be The the Generally focus in Balance the the average is a the can rest go to the of the back beginning essay, of the try of the with While the the of the the essay question sentences the these thesis not be as in – and used While to go your your sentences question. essay It students writing is should enough have to are last general context into is elaborate question. leaving you element answer structure should often, leaving you, once rest your essay. address the Too important specic, introduction. not for the specic. introduction your of to still of most should most paragraph. concern rest you context introductions, the essentially the should relative constructing is general the they important, on from being nature, detail of speaking, introduction sentence contains thesis room get time just the the important slightly carried for your for nished also be the rest body of and of of your writing the then the the when than away rest thesis less essay. their If proceed introduction. essay and ll this with You in the introduction. Conclusions If students opposite tend is management repeat what should do a and ● Summarize Include ● Indicate the same general start by on partially been the the any more said of a much time This is function in the rest on their partially of of using the a introductions, function the essay. of conclusion A good the time simply to conclusion things: thesis arguments the overarching signicance way that statements with too – not the evidence – and how they relate thesis ● In spend conclusions. number Refocus the of has ● to to true a specic general to you task of the should more required topic to structure specic statement, by the other your statements, usually some command term events. introduction the form from conclusion of the thesis, should followed statements. 149 6 T H E S E C O N D E U R O P E A W O R L D A N D R E T U R N T O W A R N O R T H T O TA L I N A F R I C A : W A R Global context It is to some Second of the First First political, been of War 1930s untouched poverty, other this a by that period to of that the social It was and the out of of this The three Europe fascism ways one context of became made on Europe these the far more US and during and mutually incompatibility uncompromising had ideologies eastern many this the the dependence and in on in democracy, the country totalitarian central grew. climate No ideologies the ashes impression Europe. it. say out Nevertheless, deep and in dominated during War. humiliation countries which cliché erupted left economic and a War World World 1920s extent World was and likely. volatile the period by – incompatible. coupled with expansionist ideologies, more this communism namely This the introverted – When the nature fascism, dangerous isolationist stance liberal were of of conict mix was policies France of and Britain. dominant Timeline 1939 German forces invade Poland 1 September 27 September Soviet Red Army invades Finland Poland surrenders to Germany 30 November 1940 9 April German forces invade Norway and Denmark German forces invade Belgium, the Netherlands, Luxembourg, France 10 May Winston Churchill becomes British Prime Minister 15 May Belgium surrenders to Germany 28 May 3 June France surrenders to Germany The Netherlands surrender to Germany Norway surrenders to Germany 22 June August– Battle of Britain September Italy invades Greece 150 28 October CHAPTER 6: THE SECOND WORLD WA R IN EUROPE AND NOR TH AFRIC A: A RE TURN TO TOTA L WA R 1941 11 March German forces invade Yugoslavia and Greece 6 April 22 June Soviet counter-attack halts German advance Roosevelt signs Lend-Lease Act German forces invade USSR 5 December 11 December Italy and Germany declare war on the US 1942 Stalin and Churchill meet in Moscow 12 August September Battle of El Alamein begins Battle of Stalingrad begins 23 October 8 November US troops land in Nor th Africa 1943 Casablanca Conference January 5 July Italian fascist regime falls Battle of Kursk begins 25 July 1944 January Allies land at Normandy in France 6 June 25 August Allied airborne attack on the Netherlands Soviet Red Army enters Poland Paris is liberated 17 September 16–27 Battle of the Bulge December 1945 Soviet Red Army captures Warsaw 17 January 16 April Adolf Hitler commits suicide Soviet Red Army begin nal assault on Berlin 30 April 7 May All German forces surrender to Allies 151 6.1 Causes of the S ec ond World War Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ To what extent did Hitler plan a war? ➔ What responsibility do France and Britain bear for the outbreak of the war? ➔ What alternatives were there to the policy of appeasement? ➔ What is the relationship of the First World War to the outbreak of the Second World War? Key concepts ➔ Cause ➔ Consequence ➔ Signicance Long-term causes The legacy of the First World War It has become popular unsatisfactory evidence to this were themselves near were sliding chaos power aims. only was The to little Versailles, as relations, suggest of three Marshal Insofar the the they that are 19th eschewed looked to its that it was rst the not of the that in to is it For of to as its it First were sought them to former helped this in of of 20 any its key the war which the to and she French the war of the treaty years”. international World War recreate the of signing for it came from during end the victors Powers with one itself the certainly the Party outstanding to and empire Britain at issues continent its as in Versailles commander armistice politics and of war the is US, Nazi this civil that the issues the insofar leader of The had War Central verdict said address brought return an there the extracted The he of Versailles the Russia victors of at World and other countries. when to War the recognized these the had country. seat outcome of and politics. It Second exception devastating peace. politics natural mother of fought Nations a in international the World programme Foch, a the reversing Europe some empire League to of the their of years Indeed century of military often least enjoyed denied government unsatisfactory at First With European is roots Germany promise stability wars the and Ferdinand “This the future more combatants. had the a from Britain in the on to the view. ruin. subsequent face brought all in Bolshevik ostracized army, of into say partially Germany’s see conclusion support meaningful 152 to seems for the to some if not conditions commanding positions economics. after Versailles position. to and desire It conrm this to and would its empire return instead take part worldview should to the – serve balance C H A P T E R of the 19th disputes tool of Such century could be diplomacy an in issues the remaine d, dissatise d be if with it replaced, be by return used it as in in last no in of the Mus s o l i ni more be T H E S E C O N D W O R L D W A R international e xpe c t e d ma ny f o rm s . m a s s i ve to War to as a of s a me wa s Ve r s a i l l e s income pu bl i c r e s o l ve the p o l it i c s . p owe r. I t a li an s . of Ge r m a n y wor l d s ou r c e s came the that O F compromise. And and th e s e th e belief and 1 9 14 . Na z is a nd the C A U S E S resort. a l te r e d a nd l i g ht o nc e to Eur op e a n col on ie s especi a l l y a c oul d co ul d s om e wha t p l a ce i ts riled discussion to in underto o k Balkans a out tha n its of meant ho we ve r, 1930 s stripped Germany the was approach, issues had also sorted 6 . 1 n e e de d s p e n di n g th a t N a t i o n a l is m N a t i on a l is m to a ls o in TOK discussion p os e d To what extent can the citizens of a a thre at to more es ta b l i s he d e mp i r e s su c h as t he Br iti s h and French. country be held accountable for the The Soviet Union ca n be seen as an e xc e pt i o n . R u s s i a ’s po si t io n a nd actions of its government? To what extent intere sts were mo r e of an e ni gm a to th e We s t than it had be e n in can they be held accountable for the 1914 and she wa s ce r ta inl y no t the co n t in e n t a l p owe r sh e had be e n actions of governments in the past? in 1914, still althoug h 1930s This was 1919. they and could was also be and the and thu s her for be llicose looked with a the sense popular m i l it a r y potential wa s legacy and diplomatic any would of power of of faced to to an the in economic the them such its market in do so the of 1929. Japan in strategically up in Africa was to 1914. Europe or – Asia expensive adequately. limited only by health. crash leading empires to world and conict collide their them Italy years large the asset, into afford using leaving of to stock could could third Germany, had issues a vital economic bring with thus the m a ny une a s e for military diplomacy to to police maintain g e ne r al a a pp ro a ch Wor ld Wa r, p o pul a t i on . s i tua tion in 19 14 , of the This ne utr a li ty in In we s t e r n t oo k many US the wa s co n t r a s t int e r- wa r the to change to the to key the E u ro p e a n s pe r io d fo r m s , fr om s t u d e n t - le d peace Eu r o p e . World War This challenge such First pa c is m. o f c i a l First g ove r nm e nt s ’ the Eur o p e ans a nd weakness. to provide they Protecting inte r na ti o na l the been country a f te r throug ho ut The as w e s te r n a ttitud e of after denied little as interests. situa ti o n support movements were ma rk e d the years colonial empires, attitude on – Europe. international continuity have controlled empire have liability, neither their international word a France defend the may France 1930s in its advantage may destabilizing in their of a nd France saw true an colonies countries Britain and it and country especially Britain thus Britain each While While If them and course, say i nd us tri a l massive. Between Of he r in western weakness it. The rise power and expose of Europe was was obscured fascism that in the one by of the 1920s military absence and 1930s weakness. Fascism The the catastrophe conviction of democracy were the of one benet from a of rose First others, many. of Two perspective to the World that incapable the class perspective, the fore War political convinced systems organizing ideologies and in the the and that other many, based on governing rejected from dislocation of an and conrmed liberal modern liberal states to principles, ultra-nationalist the First World War. 153 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y Fascism, into In its Italy, unrest this in into and for but a that certain pressures. A Lebensraum, was it was in to Italy, people Austria, expansionism war of in its built in Germany Jews and to east. and expression Nazi of the was built into of The and 1935 the a racial Nazism were The policy Italian Italy process political rhetoric virility. kind, and inferior of military Initial invaded destabilizing fact of of the lethal Germans need provided this a racist expansion, military strength. that and more demographic national national The but superiority preached tool modern Nazis’ with further. Czechoslovakia to was of ideology. in in Mussolini’s Empire Mussolini’s economic Slavs the massive to and own, the concepts, response and socio-economic of strength insufcient its ride Part substance. national premise to Roman more even anathema for on Europe as parts the in a an fuelled was justication be as also in that of of expansion terrritory Germany had power. empire Darwinian belief to an took expand violence Depression take proved for Taking for Great expression fascism to grandeur the situation social and weakness would Balkans justication as an quest execution. Germany ultra-nationalism, theatre the with as the in form its on used rhetoric diplomatic The was invoke expanded Abyssinia the to symbols, forays it parliamentary was autarky was as tenets. Mussolini and theatre and based central W A R S or seen, Restoration of German-speaking Poland were ultra-nationalism. not The part means of and Nazism. Short-term causes The Great Depression After the First economy the United there fore, A nancial aid package from the US to economy. Germany. The package was in response a to the French invasion of the Ruhr and in subsequent German hyperination. The Repa rations plan provided US dollars to renance the which German currency as well as capital to seeme d German banks and businesses. be ga n the n to to the German into and in tur n work recover Wall Hitler cause of and who had between the war or the f o rm a tt e n d a n t to be of e c o n om y, that on Dawes US US as M o n ey G e rm a n y. a nd Br i t a i n , t r ia n g u l a r with the Plan tu r m oi l . to This of years, d e pe n de n t the France US . the na t i o n a l was p o s t-wa r th e to the 19 24–1 92 9, o nl y e con o m i c from Ge r m a n y l oa ns G er ma n y ea r s look Crash of in the sold its s o- ca l l e d that it German this wave brought isolated powers helped for in an ne w ow c u r re n c y, G ol d e n of fuel into countries markets. South economic can be Ag e of by as a to power. protectionist Germany isolation, into long-term ideology China Germany 1932 hardship seen increased America, diplomatic as recalled plunging adopting such This banks unemployed expansionist countries US securities, were Depression prompted that cash-strapped Germans rode Great elsewhere isolation 1929, million Nazis European Economic T he in the healthy a do p t io n owe d from investors also policies to the Eight sense depression economic in Street and this the r s t. th e that be Re pub l i c. loans In at s hape a nd w a r ti m e to r e c ov e r y ca p i ta l o w e d cl e a r cl a i m w ith C ri s i s a nd b a ck of w a y, tru e R uhr b e ca m e way ki nd some loa ns pa id it a ny Any in the of Wa r in prov e d depression. ofce. The to form We ima r After 154 would This solution the cou l d States. Dawes Plan the Wo r l d that and Japan, economic and the rivalry Balkans. especially in the C H A P T E R case of the Economic at exactly size of United States, hardship the their time also the which 6 . 1 emboldened hampered the expansionist C A U S E S expansionist rearmament powers O F were of S E C O N D W O R L D W A R powers. the rapidly T H E western allies increasing the militaries. German expansion With the ideological manipulated about the undoing the reaction did not He and react Treaty of the responding, This would was push of he to the rearmament naval said, the to In the rst signied he wait of Hitler a tore he of the French approach and accelerated tacit up Allies’ Britain although mandate, set Hitler’s for When a conscription lengthening and 1935, for and Hitler 1935 example programme of people, announced accordingly. Agreement building, and envelope step Socialism German Versailles. be to his National the treaty his Naval next of from judge Anglo-German German was, hated terms. West. it clauses rearmament, conscription to the disarmament and justication though it. seeming approval France The to of limit German rearmament. In 1936 he ordered again the German demilitarized by commanders had show the edgling The of army. next year, and to expansion the in French did nothing, intervened while its across intervene. in France stance. border, If the 1938, and would of an Nazism act pushed forbidden by for the was the use recourse whole by war promises within Czechoslovakia. in any as approach Agreement borders the relations, of a to British to was should not again Civil France British risk his on the side upheld ally to to emboldened. War object territory German want rigorously her they rules last resort France Hitler than of had the was did not German and no it a was he to unilateral Germany and preferred built on the guaranteed believe that to agreements response, sand. occupied commitment British Perhaps underpinned treaties ignored and Britain reason Allies’ of for If Austria, the dead. preference than when annex Again clearly assumed relations signing to negotiation. sanctity rather illustrated months or Britain the European When solid that like Germany Versailles. Hitler’s diplomacy rules were six response more did Britain German response. Rhine Spanish and disturbingly played the Hitler Hitler east? ambitions without Versailles. Allies’ Hitler France why to Rhineland, the Versailles longer was back to the for objections. ephemeral of pull France rebels on waited no international her re-occupy and to Germany in to commitment raised action, and When the West’s inclination the territorial more no orders threats Anschluss, and army non-interventionist respond The the Versailles, slightest Franco their tested then Hitler’s Munich what remained Poland’s this commitment Munich. Appeasement Very simply, conict. appeasement This, appeasement post-war saw as however, was used Prime to give obscures in commentators British is the used Minister in to demands in order the great complexity 1930s. With the the word Neville with benet disdain Chamberlain’s with of to to avoid which hindsight, denote naive and many what they weak 155 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y approach to assessment German seems to foreign hold, appeasement differently. Appeasement can be seen ● based on discussion ● based on Britain’s ● considering ● treating ● avoiding ● resorting These no clear each war to threat how Japanese the war the costs even not of feasible, threaten it and her its and of own in applied he British 1930s. recent of Supercially scholarship traditional military Britain’s this interprets British diplomacy: strength interests merits by the of a and negotiated each could for to be movement of seen so. Hitler’s to if as it a be less such crisis. it At of an a to was a not the Sino- Munich, concern than intervention Germany’s toward clearly return Certainly globally. foreign was Likewise interests. Britain the do Rhineland, sovereignty end to autonomy. intervention, an any to the British concern Czechs’ as British German British shores interest re-occupied interests of the of Britain’s threatened more kind late negotiation were When judged the more possible Anschluss any in continuation scope situation was Chamberlain if were to a and on when normalized as global war policy however, economic issue adventures. direct more the principles policy Class discussion W A R S France or was actions did Belgium Is there a moral or ethical element would. It did not threaten their sea routes and communications through to appeasement? the Mediterranean. Empire. There were policy L TA Research and thinking skills that in It in Rearmament, to two terms of way underlying German German no started actions leadership impeded 1938, central the the when Europe. same agreements. operation nevertheless assumptions in held international in values The it This as came rst did second of the continued to British in Britain. applying assumption Britain and assumption this was France was that For each of the following positions, German ambitions could be satised. Both assumptions in the end research the views of the historians proved to be false. Once it became obvious that they were false, and listed. Each historian may either suppor t the British rearmament programme was close to putting Britain on par or reject the perspective. What are the with German military output, war became a more feasible solution to strengths and weaknesses of each future situations. historian’s position? This interpretation suggests that the key question is not why did the The policy of appeasement caused Allies not ght for Czechoslovakia, but rather why did they ght the war for ● Poland? production ● As mentioned, British rearmament had reached peak RAC Parker AJP Taylor Globally, menace by the mid-1939 and Sino-Japanese British holdings. French war The rearmament seemed to Nazi-Soviet be was sapping progressing. Japanese Non-aggression Pact ability Nazi ideology caused the war the ● USSR as a deterrent to German expansion. In the end, the British Eric Hobsbawm abandoned ● AJP Taylor ● Hugh Trevor Roper ability to interests worked 156 their affect assumption the through until it course of diplomacy did not. that Hitler world was could affairs no and longer be by sated so feasible. and doing to removed thus their protect Appeasement their had C H A P T E R 6 . 1 C A U S E S O F T H E S E C O N D W O R L D W A R Source skills Power Chamberlain and appeasement but The following is an extract from the memoirs from we Halifax, Chamberlain’s Foreign Source A interest. peace other element that gave fuel to the res of I the unhappy phrases which Neville the stress ‘Peace of sentences with great emotion Honour’; allowed grated harshly ‘Peace on the for ear our and predominance probably the in Europe; most If I that that had Power ever thought be was dominated quite Europe, surrender in favour of obviously would bring surrender, a and British lasting but there would ever be peace in Europe I did so not long as Chamberlain himself time’ – ruled in Germany. The next act of aggression to might use. with criticism Nazism under Power to should believe was undue faced Secretary. resistance The now of formidable Lord obtaining were be one that it would be far harder for us to resist. such thought of Source D even those closest to him. But when all has been said, The one fact remains dominant and following Second When war did come a year is an extract from The Origins of the unchallengeable. later it found a World War, written by British historian AJP country Taylor. and Commonwealth convinced to that every way of the wholly conceivable sparing alternative effort Europe remained. Chamberlain united foundations the of had that and been ordeal And within soul of was itself, conscience made war, the to and best The nd that thing the no settlement policy, which triumph that did. for intentions. cynical at Munich had Hitler, Nor British peoples or against Soviet was worked who was it had triumph to started merely statesmen, calculating a precisely a with triumph indifferent that Hitler for this to far for the might British end; be not less selsh fate a clear of or far-off launched Source: Halifax, Edward. 1956. Fullness of Days. Dodd, Russia. It was a triumph for all that was Mead and Co. London, UK . best and most enlightened in British life; a triumph for http://spar tacus-educational.com/PRchamberlain.htm those a Source B Churchill’s Commons 12 It on November fell to Neville crises of the speech Neville to the House Chamberlain’s for a Chamberlain to be in one contradicted in his hopes, and wicked man. But which he was disappointed? which he was frustrated? of by the supreme events, to They were surely of to be deceived a what were these hopes the peace, toil even for at the peace, great What does What What were was these among that the human wishes faith most heart – the peril, strife and for that noble the peace, certainly of popularity or (Source What are the 17 meeting of Source D? With reference to discuss its the origin, purpose strengths and and weaknesses Source B for historians studying utter role in the war. clamour. Lord of 1938 the Admiralty, describing a Diary cabinet Compare Source 4 September with implications pursuit the Source C entry by B) of speeches/1940-the-nest-hour/neville-chamberlain First he in 3 Cooper, when “contradicted was Source: http://www.winstonchurchill.org/resources/ Duff mean was and love the to Churchill Chamberlain Chamberlain’s disdain harshness in of of the and content peace, denounced Versailles. Questions 2 instincts had peoples; be b benevolent of between War. Hamish Hamilton. London, UK events”? abused? who justice Source: Taylor, AJP . 1961. The Origins of the Second World says by those short-sightedness equal of death, 1 cheated preached 1940. world disappointed had triumph and Winston who A and contrast and Source policy of Using your source s B on perspectives of Chamberlain’s appeasement. own e valuate effective the foreig n kno w l e dg e a nd ap p e a s e m e nt th e s e as an p o l i cy. Chamberlain. 157 6.2 C ombatants Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ At what point could the western powers challenge the Axis Powers in terms of military strength? ➔ What was the relationship of industrial power to military strength in 1939? Key concepts ➔ Continuity ➔ Change ➔ Signicance Axis Powers The the Tre aty of Germa n High Comma nd undertook War and a structure 1930s. 1918 we re the It the The was thi s ke y Germa n to a na l ys i s thi s lessons f or th e b ot h a nd the it E ve n f or The the of e x pa n d st a ff be for e of t oo k Hi t l er that in Wo rl d wou l d the fr o m mi d- the battles l e a d er s hi p came its of c or p s First c o m ba t be yon d s i ze Ve rs a i l l e s do c t r i n e to a c t i ve e x pa nsi on the Ge r m a n of c e r co n t e x t be g a n and on the small l e s so ns the g e ne r a l i ni ti a t ive plan in that s u bs e qu e n t w h en warfare. a r e s t ri c t i o n s ho we ve r, 19 20 s. Ge r m a n e x i bi l i ty, ha d the of a na l ys i s tha t severe mean, G e r ma n y m i li ta r y mobile a rmy pl ac e d not dur i n g meant wa s tha t ha d di d idle Ge rma n we re the T hi s thoro ug h what restrictions. of Vers a i l l e s a rmy. to p o we r, Ve r s a i l l e s restrictions. In its 1935 100 103 conscripti o n 000 divisions armoured force , ee ts. army while so m e the by and ghting g ht over productive the lo ng By m il l i o n c l o se to keep w a r, an d cons um i ng ov er i ts of ove r to in its 1 9 39 e c on o m y a nd of many GNP . it d i vi s ion s The and men in i n c l u d ed air 1 9 3 9. s u bm a r in e a a nd wi t h i n of fr o m wa s German i n c a pa ble c on q u e s t its army 193 9 m ai n t a in wit h wa s in a i r c r a ft s u r fa c e g o ve r n m e nt 1 5% six t a n ks . 4, 00 0 b u il d th e Ge r m a n wa r These su p p li e d w it ho ut of the 2,4 0 0 bo t h it of e ve m e n. to th i ng Ge r m a n ha lf the bo a s te d o ne te r m Over s tr e ng t h e x p an de d is modern la nd. rearma me nt it ano the r a the thr e e b o a s ti ng also be lie ve d t he d i vi s i o n s . Ve r s a i l le s , navy quite raised 21 Neve rthele s s , command 158 – to divisions ba nne d Like wise a me n p e a c et i m e material th e of German sustaining si g n i c a n t e xpe n di t u r e we n t to C H A P T E R Throughout their the the Italian war allies. compensation accompanied dangerous terror of vessels as of and she entered the same the real the the she war. weaknesses to to with The European the Italian new exacerbated up to Il notion Italian navy though, powers, economic her military/industrial that the German by Duce poor to in militarism, regaining both complex military in Italy was all had did, for the surface obsolete modernize compensate leadership that chaotically because to by crisis his of C O M B A T A N T S without material resources territories with planning, vague the War economic power, economic a handicapped World The to Counter-intuitively, weaknesses indeed First her. him expanded other conquer were and He lacked economic ability and famously the Mussolini ultra-nationalism, Rome. all in owed brought submarines. before were suffered deemed peace ancient well military she Germans had incompetence, and rearmed rst blend and glories the the Italy 6 . 2 before some of without them. branches These of the himself. Axis ground forces (Europe, Asia, Africa and the Pacic) Class discussion Country Maximum strength Germany Army: 6 500 000 Hitler stood by Mussolini to the end, even having him rescued from a Waen SS : 800 000 Italy 3 700 000 Japan 5 500 000 Romania 600 000 mountain prison. How can we account for this loyalty in light of Italy’s military shor tcomings? Allied Powers As with the Axis Powers, the legacy of the First World War deeply Relative war potential of the powers affected military expenditure in the inter-war period. In the 1930s, in 1937 France spent nearly accumulated available and to social 50% between rearm in malaise of 1914 the that its budget and face 1918. of settled on This German on debt and meant pensions there rearmament. France in the 1930s was The fed less economic the United States 41.7% Germany 14.4% money deeply USSR conservative army. Tanks theory was still based on 1918 Great Britain Aircraft navy key of was rival. the was production a offensive of France theoretically war she had distribute In much defensive Line. the as and this was public among period, stability, If 1920s army. if she dominion and The there to was 1930s reliance 90 she call been up her It in of the the of case the British and the support it 1930s. war. At she and 1930s the had in inward, bolster of in precluded 1914, France 4.2% Japan 3.5% Italy 2.5% it Maginot million of Source: Kennedy, Paul. 1988. Rise and Fall of the Great Powers: Economic Change and were outbreak the instead to Military Conict From 1500 to 2000. Fontana Press. London, UK . 1918. as, of indeed, living, turned her the her not their empire in the colonies. In the maintaining rearmament. idea complete preferring governments policy in expensive standard to élan the 10.2% her France’s with most Five divisions, as against of The infantry. was a use Although besotted notions nationalism to for little been turned poverty abroad, of powers. massively of into policy returned crisis public on had divisions was look was vague in tanks British had it divisions independence economic had minded which to force, European command infantry demanded. attention. of the for other dangerously organized European face by muster available tanks modern statically could not below French fueled inter-war voting far reasonably As expression fell 14% experiences. anything a small else, Nevertheless even when 159 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y L TA the war broke W A R S out the British army mustered four divisions to send Research skills to France. To what extent was Britain ready for divisions. war in: the By British Force ● By May the time army (RAF) 1940 conscription the smoke numbered had 900 of some bombers had the 1.6 and raised Battle million 600 this of France men. ghters number The with had to settled, Royal which 50 Air to defend September 1938 the ● island. The Royal Navy was the largest in the world, although still March 1939 stretched ● September 1939 and thin having Singapore, the to defend outposts Mediterranean and as far the away home as Hong Kong islands. Rate each date between 1–10, with 10 being very prepared and 1 being Allied ground forces (Europe, Asia, Africa and the Pacic) completely unprepared. Do the same for Country Maximum strength Great Britain 3 100 000 USA 8 200 000 USSR 6 900 000 France 5 900 000 (with reserves) Canada 730 000 India 2 500 00 Australia 727 000 New Zealand 157 000 South Africa 255 000 France and the USSR. 1 How did the preparedness of each country compare? What might be some reasons for the dierences? 2 How did each country’s level of readiness aect its foreign policy at these three points in time? Wartime production John Keegan military quick victory. of the Axis of the United by the forces. were fact for the added the the most Germany Germany some time in of large of repower centres had were being living When early and not he system. bombing. Initially sufcient, territory not became an its the after to began to but as when war the and rise, were time the production in used went size bombing. of on the standard face of of the Allied meet was plummeted. of Production control Germany’s goods workforce. War help this out German Consumer and to for concentration the centralized even raw 1943 production the Axis had of From industrial Armaments of onslaught transported supply and 1942, maintain reach production targeting augment of war moved Until of and night likes exacerbated luxury. production. to territories 1944 and none the German its its for fact evacuation to day Japan war attempt production war, Thereafter to closer maintain out the In with was down This such making Minister occupied of to of any ineffectual. used Production especially shrank. in to it, committed were demands subject offensives. and rationalized economic economic was mirrored designed attrition well torn region. enjoy was weakness path were it economy. of were the production not decentralized fully Speer 1942, did war This in they strategy army Japanese long facilities lay managed difcult a mountain these produced women Albert in and of that Soviet Japan Japan the Union. when Ural complex face more economy still and the the economic German for production moving industrial said Soviet spared and the withstand factories into of like be the Allied Germany’s say, can and part way that to could Soviet benet Germany’s is same States harm’s materials. 160 The that the of argued that economies Even out Both has strategy, far the from occupied C H A P T E R Unlike have their to British of from material. three went production North roundsof the to the The included ammunition. 36 By specically production gures, America. This Allies, consumer production impressive aid enemies, sacrice war both US effort a yards understood production. during Britain liberty Britain, war economy billion 1943 for and the the war. of cotton ship was Despite USSR produced a it About cloth being and 41 C O M B A T A N T S would half of their depended staggering 6 . 2 on amount billion completed every days. Armaments production of the powers, 1940–1943 (billions of 194 4 dollars) 1940 Great Britain 3.5 1941 1943 6.5 11.1 USSR (5) 8.5 13.9 United States (1.5) 4.5 37.5 19.5 62.5 Total of Allied combatants 3.5 Germany 6 6 13.8 (1) 2 4.5 Japan Italy 0.75 1 Total of Axis combatants 6.75 9 – 18.3 L TA Research and communication skills Research the production quantities for one of the following items for each of the six major combatants in the years 1939–1945 (Germany, USSR, US, Britain, Japan and Italy): ● Aircraft ● Tanks ● Naval vessels ● Merchant vessels ● Trucks Plot a graph depicting production quantities by year using a dierent colour for each country. Compare your graph with others of dierent items. ▲ 1 What patterns emerge from the graphs? 2 How do these patterns help explain the course of the war? A tank is produced at a General Motors assembly line in the US 161 6.3 Strateg y Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ What was the signicance of the ABC 1 plan for the conduct of the war? ➔ To what extent were the German strategy and tactics feasible given its material situation? ➔ To what extent did strategy contribute to the outcome of the war? ➔ What role did ideology play in strategic decisions for both Axis and Allied Powers? Key concepts ➔ Cause ➔ Consequence ➔ Signicance Axis Powers As in vaguely the east Poland. sketched into He then settlement in forces other to to do two-front Hitler’s fascism the in the what had of the of seen as a 162 of his air for the on had to been could what sought could readjusting alluded it Hitler population Europe capture British and be the taken no France while hated not at Plan was avoiding in his not leaving her space was Versailles would quickly, – This detailed Allies enemy Schlieffen Lebensraum expand. the although that with the chiefs his of with Britain. of German back. In designed, the effects the Hitler but of a of in not of been fate Führer USSR and the in the Baltic RAF defeated but in of can be and in rather had his Union, in east productive east he Soviet and turn States choose, the accept Regardless While the not the secure the events. did formed When, German with army destroy had the Russia? between belief France. British and did this of Napoleon’s invasion they fall conict actions to struggle and defeat, German course the struggle Once the the southern the style, the and their risk Soviet for desperate before of he history Bolshevism oil leadership plans in postpone the dictate cataclysmic Churchill should and a even reality aggressive help a Or he be point strengthening drafting wage the accounts Russia to invasion be Should to to some defeat, to supply, True was at thinking, Isles? response force there France’s believed circumstances military – strategic ideological Romania. let 1914 western ideology that accomplish re-evaluate. settle elds and communism his wake invade to in sights again western worldview Hitler to to his – Kampf, war. and core with Mein German calculation Poland deal words failed, In in west His in the turned the autobiography. intervene out which he had preparation the skies C H A P T E R over Britain, Soviet From the Germans 1942 on, German particularly Rommel’s exploits of was the Middle with a Germans in view to North 1943–1945 offensive 1944. some ways a forces peninsula to German States German – mobile massed points, isolating follow to required open territory The the east the Soviet have the and to had forever the This which the invasion open would in war, – and any of the forces only in to German as it 6 by forces. Blitzkrieg, precision very strong would Blitzkrieg point. panzers Both Red spaces dash. In Army. existed. It went of open could channel. the had June relatively the into Italian and enemy had these as the on infantry conditions but her German with end Both in was overreach. integrated against army with Canadian bypass it the Bulge added resistance. headlong For adopt say the the Russia, Russia, support known abundance, the of attainable these to dominated air forces the Normandy Traditional tanks of in doctrine Poland. ran one might burden were and and of had British, were in actions collapse at Thus, for Mountains. front the for quest south Battle we remaining German spaces swallow or other thrusts Anglo-French Polish the operational a rearguard Italian When the as swung massive The search conquests. Germany success denitive however, of defensive France the of that reduction. up” a in case a the Caucasus beachheads the later and retreating their to army series Balkans. Offensive existed pressed wide, and early by previous understood the a defend artillery” for be posture early “mop spaces Union, in her War”. them through panzers of the secured armour. conditions oil as to her German responsibilities. “ying secure can as the especially “Lightning dive-bombing these energy dominated seen immeasurably tactics, so-called and armies added of forced Greece it be defensive function were was the the thrusts, The in 1944 their securing Africa When can conquests United and securing December German strategy oil, East. occasional in all S T R A T E G Y Union. resources, oil devoted 6 . 3 In may on Napoleon’s. The Allied Powers Between planners January secretly approach neutral. nd the war. followed ● Italy ● Allied the was in to be Powers defeat strategic a from of March in 1941, British, Washington Secrecy planners themselves plan ● to US and met had war was already with these would paramount both as US discuss developed strategic eliminated to quickly concentrate on as a Canadian common given a Germany schemes. and that the contingency and Japan, According US was should and to military strategic the the still they ABC 1 plan: possible the defeat of Germany before Japan bombing would become a key component of the overall strategy ● For British the and most throughout seemed all working part the the on US an holdings the war. more in the Pacic broad-brush The Allies justied atomic did with weapon. would strokes of prioritize the The ABC defended. 1 victory suspicion North be were in that African realized Europe, the which Germans landings and were the 163 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y subsequent war may but Sicily although have they differed really The Lend-Lease Act set up a scheme through which the US sent aid to the Allies during the Second World War. Immediate payment was not required as the US was “lending” the materials to the Allies. The programme also provided US warships (destroyers) to Britain in exchange for the lease of a number of military bases in the Caribbean. The US had Lend-Lease agreements with a number of Allied countries. to it was as factories relative all the was safety Allied in December of the the afford tanks for to to the 1941. so. of the multiple production The on States to ships sink the in the the the had to Red of in this a of a far in vital concentrate the role the during lost could 54 000 given that production all their front. Tank Country Number Produced Sherman USA 49 300 T-34 USSR 57 000 Panzer IV Germany 8500 Crusader Great Britain 5400 Tiger I and Tiger II Germany 1850 Churchill Great Britain 7300 Pershing USA 2200 in war excess have than tank in ratio they wider be this industrial them may but of would part Tank production 164 Midway. entered rate more war of strategy exchange even for December was Army the efcacy Battle played a of Allies Pacic, 1,500 Kursk, made could the States at The distribute Soviets over out The implemented, reassemble produce was war Allied produced The in policy United Battle war. mobilized strategy them. would gap and the RAF . the Union Germany while were to This fully dismantle once be defensive in of This to forces of questionable Lend-Lease especially 000. was offensive been onslaught Italian theatre and the had Mountains. Soviet a essentially decision ability as bombing component The Germans 20 knocked Italy losses United favoured war one key Liberty fronts, on the Ural the go the German U-boats’ Britain did economy Soviet victories, than do a heavy won enemy. the Germany’s much over of tanks of of that the strategic US had entry of German Battle more The campaigns eliminate how their their ahead not through they clear outproduce strategy on after the Italian did war. and before 1941, Lend-Lease policy the only production Even and they persevered throughout but W A R S 6.4 Operations Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ What factors led to the early success of the Axis forces? ➔ To what extent did each side integrate land, air and sea power? ➔ To what extent did the Allies outproduce the Axis Powers? ➔ Why did the Allies win the war? Key concepts ➔ Cause ➔ Consequence ➔ Signicance Poland Poland would seemed the allowed relative ideal for lack to be of Blitzkrieg. the Polish regroup made of Just by off While the the 5 air am of ground infrastructure roads, rail aspect of and authorities The on 1.5 1 and air would million to isolating those as and bombers Germany’s an air essential after power element would which it allow might would the instead anvil of the Pact be driven Soviet Red pl a n e s air f or a L uft wa ffe fa c i l i t i e s , wh i c h raids also m od e r n ce n t r e s . these ci vi l i a n r ai ds panic ha m p e r the la u n c h e d e r a di c a t i n g ma n a g e d ta r g e t e d a r my Te rr or a l so to a d e l i be r a t e t a rg e t e d clog o p e r a tio n get those fu n c t io n : wa s would it to of Po l is h the roads bot h c i vi li a n m il it a r y. soldiers divided Warsaw, that into driving capital dive plains The Molotov-Ribbentrop army the for ce T he s uch thus open theoretically against 19 3 9 , air e s s en ti a l a nd the Poland spoils. P ol i s h r e s ul t ing east, same Po li s h Polish were the hard the T ho s e German to up of Polish co m m uni ca ti on T he toward get of d e s t r o ye d. raids quickly drive instead come Poland Large, Stuka allowing withdrawal, codicils surface, formations. operations, of The tank screaming of S e p t e mb e r d a y. the September then 1 refug e e s and the the tactics. large targets, path secret ele me nts towns. eeing to of ground illusion. portion a nd give its On innovative their easy the we r e lines the to a g a i ns t the the Blitzkrieg. topography an on raids for of movement with the only its trial would fairly east, east end the with a prospect before cities cover claiming massive terrain sightlines army mercilessly Army, rst integrated in that the unrestricted unobstructed fully be crossed two behind Polish avoiding while formations. at army large the This is, the lines. Polish same in frontier groups. time fact One The into Poland went main formations, encircling what north attack preferring and transpired. Some of 165 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y the Polish they forces would set W A R S managed up a to disengage defensive and perimeter withdraw around their to Warsaw where capital. German soldiers break down a barrier on the German–Polish border, 1 September 1939 ▲ Following the main force were units of the Schutzstaffel (SS), the Schutzstael (SS) Death’s Head Regiments. Hitler’s orders to these units were to rid Poland Originally Hitler ’s personal bodyguard, of the “enemies of Nazism”– a long list. These regiments rounded up the SS grew into a massive organization Jews, communists, socialists and any local leaders deemed to be a threat. within the Nazi Par ty. Broadly tasked with Whole villages and towns were burned to the ground. Civilians were a par ty and state security, the SS managed deliberate target in this war from the very beginning. domestic and foreign intelligence gathering, the Gestapo, policing and racial The policies including the concentration camp the system. The Waen SS was the military soldiers branch of the SS, which fought throughout Polish siege city of for Warsaw ten the began days. suffering authorities to on 17 Although that the September. the city terror surrender the was bombing city on The Luftwaffe defended the created by pounded 140 000 persuaded Polish the 27 September. Europe alongside and in coordination with True to on September. their pledge, the British and French declared war on Germany the German army, the Wehrmacht. 3 South Africa By had practical aid attacked German to 10 September, followed the suit. beleaguered Canada, But this Poles. Australia, meant On 4 very New little September in Zealand terms British and of bombers Class discussion Frederick the Great of Prussia once said “he who defends everything, defends limited frontier damage. with ships at French their army births units in Wilhelmshaven made tentative resulting advances in across the Germany. nothing”. To what extent does this apply L TA to the Polish army in September of 1939? ● Thinking skills What lessons might the French and British allies have taken from the brief Polish campaigns that may have better prepared them to face the German army? ● What challenges would a campaign in western Europe pose for the German army that it had not encountered in Poland? 166 C H A P T E R 6 . 4 O P E R A T I O N S Casualties: Polish campaign Dead/missing Wounded Captured Poland 70 000 133 000 700 000 in German hands Germany 13 900 30 000 Civilians 25 000 217 000 in Russian hands Battle for western Europe Hitler had conquer were fa r for bolstered that the spring of the by a an to Germans more the y The and in T he y be a r m y. a It w es t kno wn s o l di e r s the q u ic k ly argued as t he i r fo r became the t hat in to th e Wa r 15–20 Maginot the to Hi s to be t t e r e n e m y, on e h o we ve r, wa i t B r it a i n raise to time e vi d e n t , h a ve be c a m e for c e s we st Fr a n c e . m or e Pho n e y w a it i n g to turned we a k fo r m i d a bl e wo u l d r ei n f or c e d e ci e nci e s and more Br i t i s h a nd tr a ns f e r be he s i t a n t to t he for reserves the a until or to “t h e the s om e Sitsk rieg ”, d i vi s i o n s , Line a pp a r e n t w e s t e rn and in the the the fr o n t . Line Siegfried Line Ardennes Dyle B r i ti s h i nte r i m, a nd co ul d be ca ut io us . C a na di a n corre ct Maginot to believed oppor tuni ty campaign a r my a d v a nc e mobilize to hi s believed gro w i ng 1940. British provided Polish wha t German of French tha t he generals prepare hoped what Holland Forest Line Front on Dunkirk May 24 Defence Perimeter Amsterdam Army The Group B Hague Rotterdam England M a a s R iv e r Germany London Ostend Dunkirk Ghent Nieuport A lb e Calais Belgium r t C a n a l Cologne Maastricht BoulogneFort Emael h e Namur Army R Arras n i Eben R Liège Lille sur-Mer Group A i Noyelles e v Dinant r Abbeville Dieppe St. Valéry-en-Caux Amiens Meusa Army River Group C Saarbrucken S e i Luxembourg n e R i v e r France Paris ▲ Hitler ’s plan for the invasion of western Europe. Compare and contrast this plan with the Schlieen Plan of 1914. 167 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y The war in the but neutral, Norway of troops Stiff landed and advance. event, That send a smaller north. through forces, from the and Maginot as Line main to of – of as it from its plodded the the if fortress and through the slim far plan to and would be generals that – in a forces push Allied Maginot proved attacked Line. to be exposed In large was manning the Ardennes? by forces Manstein, garrison and would British the von in off. then the Ardennes the high and impenetrable of attack Eric if be British German French German bulk the What paratroopers. and Netherlands armour would What not resources mountain the were French General hoped? and bolder thought force danger. among the and separating third slowed could important the French success pulling German ambitious French emerged force of Ardennes A for Belgium the tanks, the debate an German by western ofcially German British of France with by Navy, the into secure 1940 reinforced opted hope help supported prospects some in the with the March drive Although navy also Royal into Hitler France. by In the German German however, thrust of a Norway. would north the attack 1914 fraught the from April, end, with of the that majority devised impenetrable of on Norwegians, object forests bulk plan, the of especially daring of an the vast the in support end with Sweden. the force repeat The from expected In open attack provide Narvik was Führer. an occupation decided the thrust seeming Its from the their The at had not would strong By command did with obtained resistance troops any rather operation. Germany Class discussion west Europe, base W A R S any as the ank event, How did operation Sickle Stroke dier Hitler always gravitated to the bold over the cautious and therefore, this from the Schlieen Plan? was his The French mobile 1914, To of kind call the of about 31 panzers 10 its not The Countries nine push they prepared from began dug to in French and 168 panic. units to the their that these the As the of race In to the and were the the Poland, the the as equivalent Ardennes. on the of The the horses soldier in Germans. exception infantry Sickle it on had 19 rush to could pull move Wehrmacht’s Stroke. and done May. troops Paratroopers Belgium. to This to The Warsaw swing the some into north. the They did 1914. German and the the this British cross took the Channel, main view attack became for did advance a only with gained River. As the come evident, Force prolonged so three Meuse would Expeditionary prepared German force to English that of one counter-attacks the of their again, road. what to deploy relying Netherlands main folly of positions as of believed units off the Allies the the with foot, an off they Stroke”. Once hands through Operation Ardennes managed fell day. and north. the say on surrendered the still north. a day in mistakes begin Some a and Rotterdam divisions to smash “Sickle Line the into march in forts Dutch forces the around even to forced launched do not in counterpart road and through Anglo-French a prompted panzer to is road-bound on Maginot right would kilometres The repeat days down to the mobile a codenamed reserves played that On canals began to 35 was on their German Germany earlier. want its was artillery. bridges, months Low like kilometres Luftwaffe rely troops divisions covered May seized to plan strategy divisions, much On was French army, panzer The including French panzer French plan. plan troops, the the of the ght. little Allies (BEF) Those coordination momentum. C H A P T E R This momentum commanders. support and lowland of against ordered his by Dunkirk Hermann the report German such Close 400 000 to pocket. Dynamo 665 key to the German By Of 4 – 100 tanks French of 000. The assured of in Hitler the soldiers head that of of his infantry in the British disarray, decision. prospects The his their mired With forces British negligible. some getting France. controversial French plan of to of beaches of 222 trawlers is Belgian them home Royal Belgian Dynamo time. and get some British, shing British June, over 110 337 000 through proclaimed British the a and outstripping The Hitler best trapped a sea the wet army German within evacuation, Luftwaffe, aircrew could and to Dunkirk Navy Dutch the First RAF and its of all to approaches as of the as and sizes, yachts. the keep in Operation well sailing halt able trapped named shapes private the was were code vessels – luxurious twofold. Second, troops was The panzers the relatively skies clear over of aircraft. these France at himself, consisted boats exposed his and number were British, success the the – Hitler were O P E R A T I O N S rescue. The commercial bought the and civilian from put Goering and stop perimeter any Dunkirk to about Belgium coast estimates, prevent divisions worried coastal panzers intelligence concerned panzer Hitler areas trapped the actually The 6 . 4 by army, secure the it 000 were Allied French ports. British had come soldiers soldiers Although media at had who a and the been taken quickly “Miracle preserved the off the returned of beaches. to Dunkirk” ghting was ability of the cost. The Battle of Dunkirk : British losses Dead/missing 11 000 Captured 40 000 Tanks 475 Vehicles 38 000 Motorcycles 12 000 Anti-tank guns 4 000 Heavy ar tillery 1 000 Bren guns 8 000 Ries Now 90 000 on fortify a Maginot and a was too the late. extended 60% surrender. of north, ank was military France, would effort in a the zone of to close Alps and to and military west could German broken Marshal terms French east that the was the including be of nearly under The of running hedgehogs resistance government, of remnants so-called Morale concerted terms the encampments – continued French ● own, of Line attack little, for their line form “sickle the pockets Pétain the from of stroke”. It was 17 June, the too required Although Maginot to to resistance infrastructure non-existent. along attempted perpendicular Line, signed there the the included: Paris, the German Atlantic coast and the industrial occupation 169 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y ● 40% of puppet ● the ● French W A R S France and her government French army would prisoners captivity with colonies with of no its be war, the French would ● the French navy have over was to to 1.5 of pay be at reduced guarantee ● would capital be to 100 million their controlled 000 men, Pétain’s men would be kept in release “occupation turned by Vichy over to costs” Germany. Technology and war: Enigma and codebreaking Enigma was an encoding machine used by the German military throughout the war. Enigma had a keyboard attached to three rotors. Each keystroke turned the rotors encrypting the message. An associated code key was required to decipher the message at the receiving end. By 1939 with the help of Polish mathematicians, the Allies were beginning to decipher German military code keys. The British mathematician Alan Turing developed a mechanized deciphering machine, which accelerated the process considerably. When the Germans created a four-rotor Enigma machine, the British modied their machine to decipher these codes as well. There were, however, hundreds of Axis code systems that were used and changed with varying degrees of regularity, making the task of the codebreakers vastly more complicated. The program which deciphered and analysed the intelligence derived from Turing’s machines was ▲ known as Ultra and at its height was deciphering over The Enigma machine. What were the challenges presented by this technology for both sides? 2,000 messages a day. In a way the success of the each had their own cryptographic systems and shared program posed its own problems. Ensuring that the intelligence regularly. It was Ultra intelligence on 2,000 decoded messages were analysed for their Japanese intentions in nor thern China, released to military impor tance and sent to the units to which the the Soviets on Churchill’s orders, which persuaded information was the most use in a timely fashion was Stalin to allow his Siberian divisions to be transferred an enormously complex under taking. Allied leaders had to the west . These divisions played a major role in the to be careful which intelligence they acted on and how counteroensive of December 1941 that threw the they did so for fear of tipping o the enemy who could Germans back from the outskir ts of Moscow. then change the encryption system. The Allied militaries Barbarossa to Stalingrad While the ghting east – autumn in the Germany’s in modern of territorial It was World a be War. This this conquest. edice a Three force was of was the seemingly attention the to Hitler and massive 3,200-kilometre allies. 170 to 1940 Hitler’s invasion history, communist of skies, Soviet be had an million front which Union. men even were supported included To to by of by to tanks extent the on who a three be lived of army men the unknown war destruction million would vicious simply standards in 1 the focused not people the attack close 3,350 the an war, envisioned enslavement with increasingly ideological long undertaking consumed was the of the under it. Second groups from supported along her by C H A P T E R 7,000 such artillery a forced pieces formidable to Europe use artillery from Opposing reeling ofcers tanks including in tanks in the total) aircraft. was the Red a and 25 its outt were from from Red all over France. Army purge still of its humiliating Finns Army 50tank O P E R A T I O N S Czechoslovakia, trucks and To Germans comprehensive against infantry, the from and 1937–1938 Nevertheless, 2,000 equipment Germans the performance million and tanks Norway the from and invasion 6 . 4 in 1940. numbered divisions mechanized some (about 24 3.2 000 divisions. Stalin’s purge of the Red Army Rank Executed or imprisoned Marshall 60% Army Commander 87% Divisional Commander 56% Brigadier 46% Deputy Commissar of Defence 100% ▲ Total ocers purged German dispatch riders take a break during Operation Barbarossa. What 36 671 role did communications play in Blitzkrieg tactics? German start Planned advance line (21 June 1941) Front line Actual (late July 1941) advance Moscow Moscow Riga Riga Memel Smolensk Memel Smolensk Vilnius Minsk Soviet Union Under by Warsaw Kiev Warsaw the attack Red Army Kiev Front line December Odessa Odessa Budapest Budapest Bucharest Bucharest German Occupation ▲ 1941 German 250 km Occupation Operation Barbarossa 171 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y More than leader’s proper Hitler was to all mobilizing Smolensk, The Blitzkrieg German sorties 3,000 they aircraft quickly and artillery were in the the weeks encirclement, made. to As believe its the Not Field late that three as wanting a that few to offend Stalin had no before amiss, army the despite been toward wash no Germany having groups were the was Russia army Germans to Pact, hours anything and Soviet that commanders showed Germany send The ensured Molotov-Ribbentrop clearly frontier. was to up air four the again. the force of entire the divisions cut. Leningrad, over Within to river pour marked four days after The 3 Minsk, many crossings across by of the began destroying of these were the massive the am, Luftwaffe immediately, operation, and began were Shortly front. almost Bridges campaign “cauldrons”. used days ground. panzer be along Army rst the of very Army. Tallin. Red on been the Red invasion mobilization. route opened the still and opening to En blueprint against of the coming had between was Kiev. Riga the refused wires plan and that along Stalin German Moscow the spirit “provocative” telephone The the intelligence onslaught, handicapped to preparation violate any to purge blindness military forbade access Stalin’s willful or W A R S frontier. battles attack, while secured The of Army Group Army Group Centre Centre had encircled and captured 300 000 Soviet troops, destroying The German army group tasked with some 2,500 tanks. Such battles were to be repeated throughout the rst advancing toward Moscow during months of the war. Operation Barbarossa. By midsummer her panzers lines. east. up. Fuel Perhaps collapse. with would bullet or a planners small the by ● higher ● the ● rapid ● gaps to than logistics of Russian ● poor ● exhausted ● efforts dealing still the the about 360. than for In had keep that, a squad German German June they divisions. By casualties, variety been ring anticipated a not complete between German slowing of who initiative. 200 moved was certain estimates. higher was of – had mid- though 400 000 reasons: casualties with so infantry and per panzer railway quality were advance and take eld encountered sign As supply could planners difference intelligence could no army. their advance horses Commanders little to the by military mistakes began German many prisoners fuel between ● and as showed ght. was the outstripped dragged Army its in common German there anticipated of Red Army had The for their show quickly being making standards, August. use of bullet, Red more nding doubt Germans 32kilometres 172 fear the to they guns gured the Soviet of was Russian the end badly, it follow that and distressing the began estimated August fact, begun Russia, became foot most beaten In paralysed that on had into shortages Infantry although cracks raced day; tracks panzer could units units not be (infantry moving 80 used roads infantry required to and panzer supply three troops full army moving kilometres groups. per day) by C H A P T E R At this point Convinced with Sweden, advance could units in provide, mud of While had the formed soldiers What a froze the divisions to for force T-34tank. as the the Army lack – not Zhukov, what recaptured armies froze and was This that was wore of wet the the Ukraine Operation lost – the dug on tank and When snow citizens the began of traps while weather winter anti-freeze to two dug had to C. the weeks lost in Red been Chief −25º territory the partially equipped Army happened then with the panzer for been October Women lack that were Red After 6 Meanwhile, stiffened. for assist arrived and German clothes. dipped the after defence. defences had campaign. routes that sending O P E R A T I O N S approached. November warfare the had rst, its As know east temperature Both to Moscow. winter the at to return time the trade grain by could winter of secure the centre valuable the course Centre with units quagmires. winter encirclement. had Typhoon. of Group the these of engines did in in Germans summer into units. behind attack snow Army’s tank trained Japanese force Red Army Moscow, mobilized Germans massive the the time smoothly militia German of the would concerned weakened on and changed Leningrad part the roads been deteriorated, force, By went all Moscow in further autumn and of Equally advance turning men diverted he Typhoon fall, capture north. Kiev. the the interceded the he the toward Typhoon, to Hitler that 6 . 4 to of Army guarding with Staff, new Soviet Red Army of vicious the endure Siberian against aircraft plan to repeatedly ghting, do in the of a and this was beginning the assembled of unleashed The since had composed the Red Operation winter. Stalingrad The Russian autumn until days had May of before safety fell the and German that 1942. they as was Army moved the ank Volga as it Germans to guard German 23 the ever effect on of Army on that left Don it in the of River, German being the Caucasus Romanian, of By on the the ensuing the the city by a As a the was his army. of the relative city production of Red Group Mountains. the the Sixth Stalingrad Army and to Mountains Again of tanks, the army German secure weeks frantic west As Italian August A ’s the troops the sprawling city of River. massive pile months. battle. last in again the winter, It Hungarian outskirts Volga the The the to the Caucasus through heralded of the In producing ordered onslaught. goal them men. city advance. was the of the move in now the ghting the its 000 Hitler across for factories were that the winter. use used bank much issue the losses 500 1942. German on reassembled the oilelds quagmire not during factories some in would and their was city nature the they west the higher the the where south the urgent of and replacing short and was dismantled These Baku toward ank on assault August pile pushed an had strategy the front down drove Stalingrad The in River Sixth still mud army rebuilt hands Despite were becoming withered on German secure Army had Soviets German same German Mountains. weapons. to the The armies the into divisions south oil Both Ural dominated drive brought delivered. Barbarossa of aircraft spring of This bombing rubble. The destruction streets became raid rubble had ever a on would curious more 173 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y impassable, armour. unit in would ght with ▲ the Germans essentially actions Army to It W A R S for which tell, The the house, it the hard to use Battle of Stalingrad tenacity evening every rubble. found turned the factory, Germans and odds growing somewhat. sewer referred its to or it advantage into expertise The ditch, as great all a of Soviet of series the – War were of small Red strategy which Rattenkrieg in of was lled the Rats. A Red Army soldier ghts in the ruins of Stalingrad. How did the German success in destroying the city work against them? The Soviets city that city were their of the Stalin be to city. August form while of in a the the less It river. thrusts the by Paulus to and from Army German the a halt for Army these 21 the to troops forces was as bring to fresh the The Sixth those potent of the order it who constant to was turned the river east attack bank from re. three from effort, Army and on the the orders job bank areas with A of of defended without west artillery shrank troops who whose down under defence citizens Backward” units the itself tanks. and Step staging with city of in defences. all retreated gun from steadily and well up to treacherous the fortify One who cling September infantry and society thousand motivated creation would perimeter Germans hundred “Not anyone defended The Stalingrad fear famous advancing Red resupply tanks. the his and ordered resupply Such called he of Two entrenchments provided The Red 70 exhausting dig aspect name. survival issued behind Luftwaffe than also ee. trying Initially had which line to to patriotism, arrested. around every leader’s organized mixture in 174 mobilized bore divisions the however, was commander supplies and repeated for von another C H A P T E R push. the This river. one last The city Stalin’s to of line to a Hitler fought of the force be supplied fell, so the too Germans, wounded shrank had in way air the the von perished it 300 As only the Paulus’s tonnes of of supplies captured. captivity. estimated The nal Since that the His that 280 30 2,000 the 1945 were beginning and of the in on 19 have version an outside meanwhile at three were temperature surrounded to evacuate 1943. the east, west Germans and Ninety-one 1955 in the gradually the 1955 Stalingrad allies and own landing released her then began would and tanks and could perimeter January German Italian Germans involved the Unable was complete. his 000 reached day. supplies, Germany day he south Army had deteriorated per on was troops which north which a tried strategy. 2,200 Uranus scheme About Between the Sixth Führer the the drive drive Operation supplies weather tonnes which as and month, would position, perimeter. the in of Meanwhile where producing would the Order”. surrendered were and Boss” Romanian encirclement but ammunition Paulus force Soviet possible. a metres Army available “The 500 theatres Sixth the his force were Army. Paulus of all 300 O P E R A T I O N S failed. Stalingrad building point, 70 prisoners. in is von German maintain 5,000 August to amount Germans days part inferior Army Sixth von that by Stalingrad Backwards cauldron. did or at with averaging and thousand released by few of the too persuaded Russians Red a within gone, this smallest various of but been north were the south him, out the the them absolutely defended German Step its with force massive a use however, 1942 within within in was only to Germans the One had took strength Russians, been city and ghting the huge force way ghting its among allowed “Not caught a This and their airelds the the encircle October Zhukov, and divided 4 itself September November Had west smaller to half had gather ghting. while bid city. while be on dislodge defend By month, were a the bowed to over to Stalingrad would troops. had came inclination known, a With time defend they push 6 . 4 suffered Russians – the rest operation 500 Class discussion 000 To what extent did tanks aect the nature casualties. The Red Army suffered 1.1 million casualties of which some of the Second World War compared to the 485 000 were dead. Stalingrad was the furthest point to the east the First World War? German army would reach during the war. Technology and war: tanks Tanks had originated in Britain during the First World War. power it to over 50 kmh. Wide treads made it more versatile Initially small numbers of tanks were assigned to infantry in snow and its 76 mm gun, though not as big as some units. Later, the Germans and British pioneered the idea of medium tanks, was more than sucient. Perhaps one of the massing tanks in their own divisions with supporting infantry. greatest attributes of the T-34 was that it could be readily Coordination between large formations of tanks was made produced in huge quantities. More T-34s were manufactured more practical with advances in wireless radio technology. than any other model of tank in the war – over 57 000. Tanks were generally classied according to size and While the T-34 and Sherman were both relatively simple armament – light, medium and heavy. Medium tanks such tanks to produce, the German heavy tanks were more as the US Sherman with a 108 mm gun and the German complicated. The Tiger I and Tiger II were fearsome weapons Panzer Mark IV were excellent machines and the workhorse designed to outmatch the T-34. The intricate mechanics, of their armies. The Soviet T-34 was perhaps the best however, made for cumbersome manufacturing and all-round medium tank of the war. Sloped armour made it dicult repair. By the end of the war the Germans had only dicult to pierce with anti-tank shells. Its diesel engine could produced about 1,350 Tiger Is and less than 500 Tiger IIs. 175 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S North Africa The war in North Africa between three location, topography, Africa determined obstacles, on the sand limit in War. dust, mobility conned to Libya Italy the attack along The in could Sea 63 an of coast the not, manpower to to a elite ghting panzer supremely had his A The aid wasted food, no which fuel and effort time Crusader, to back By recovered This time captured defences British where May, force the city. the Eighth commander, came them was at of to a came try new Bernard a war a of the 650 In case a get It become supplies would under to would German this its counter- complete. that in 1940 kilometres managed the troops consolidate British maintain halt, to to in try not and army the was Germans become an condent to to was men the and his and the break turn dug Tobruk hurled to the his the through the as dig in the largely east. Germans to material in. attempt, German-Italian of retire and they outstripped troops siege and out his where Another again hold to too pushing again again he where nothing. them It back where relieving could Halfa. the hell. September to and British succeeded would Alam the albeit Italian In seemed that April, forcing Tobruk amassed General the 3 ready of would control 000 tried ally. Corps – this, on of Rommel. started, British, it and division Afrika by 200 reasons not particular mobility, British Italian throwing had Rommel Battle could North interminable own Egypt. victory for in Depression, depression retreating advance Erwin eventually the Army the done and they fortress the at in had Rommel at force rapid infantry as dislodge force Tripoli – absence route. short-lived the and Despite some Italians The Qattara depend which thereof mechanization its or western advancing as general, he Operation process. and water to a here supply after was the the extreme see in lack battle geographic there. climate would would army as for coast. of feasible the far the also beleaguered known competent started, British its it the Italian such division force sent as such war one Egypt advancing of be or highland along to Egypt When get sustain the sent Rommel roads. sea, – running Pacic, combat harsh waging soldiers on into 1940 however, commonplace. coming attack retreating roads, the war British expedition of only African 000 of a the vegetation features theatre the was and environment strip prove a as December the ahead As – 1943 nature made were narrow North launched gains. a mobility. facing lack to Russia and the perfect The would Mediterranean Initially a there Africa in impassible however, obstacles North for of 1940 As climate much seems World and What except surface Second from combatants. in under its British the new Montgomery. El Alamein The resulting Rather this a than point, more 176 attack punched exploit the would ght and Montgomery plodding infantry had battle the a battle breach – in a pivotal would of supported hole be dash rely attrition. by the on German the of North the his war numeric the similar his to plan was Once massed 1916 campaign. desert up superiority bombardment. defences more African in Montgomery’s massive strategy in nature a to massed his troops armour than to to ght would 1942. C H A P T E R He wanted withdraw in the rear. Rommel southern became until ▲ to and inict The position, the only to be plan where and in Rommel weak worked. the Tripoli on too defend option reached losses thus British committed they such would his the that Forbidden by was a German-Italian compelled strong Hitler position, eventually January he establish northern British late to to forces O P E R A T I O N S to position retreat, weakening broke 6 . 4 through. would his Retreat not stop 1943. German soldiers advance toward El Alamein in 1942. What challenges did ghting in the deser t pose for the combatants? L TA Research and thinking skills 1942 is often viewed as the turning point in the war for the Allies. The years and months up to mid-1942 had been marked by Axis success – the conquest of Poland, France and western Europe, western Russia, Hong Kong, Singapore, the 1942 and its consequences 1942 is often viewed as the turning point in the war for the Allies. The years and months up to mid-1942 had been marked by Axis success – the conquest of Poland, France and western Europe, western Russia, Hong Kong, Singapore, the Philippines. Three impor tant battles in 1942, Midway, Stalingrad and El Alamein, stopped Axis progress. From that point the Allies began to push them back . Complete the following table to explore the consequences of Stalingrad and El Alamein in more detail. Battle Eect on Axis Eect on Other Long-term troop strength Axis material shor t-term consequences strength consequences El Alamein Stalingrad 177 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y Over the would in course be and like two-thirds May The of that it 275 months, anvil and of was acute only Navy’s a of the US they the had matter to German-Italian army supply dominance needed 000 the although their material last few the Pass, Royal the The next Morocco, meant surrendered. in the against Kasserine manpower strength. of driven Algeria places W A R S Axis of some time the the forces had in forces landed successes shortages in sustain that and before at dwindling they Mediterranean Germans North at Africa sunk ghting surrendered 1943. Sicily and Italy The invasion “soft from the British Sicily two of July the Peninsula s fr o nt a nd 1943 . Ge rman in a re In The to obsta cle s mounta ins divide a nd conce ntrate defe nde d. Italian of that After ran south a of down. of of outank do so Anzio a in became to enter forces of January the the On the to a Gothic remainder of from Although It would before second Line, the this it from British such as shore and another S e pt e m be r. and forces Allies of Unable opted Rome surprise, Allied the abbey Sangro. south 300 but around the Canadian the on bogged months would va l u a ble peninsula the the The US Allies German kilometres conduct to at advance for Normandy. line inva s i o n Naples, the around strategic l i g h t ly and All ie s 9 place another defensive they on was time ve the of shore, at to conduct capture and this landings which wi t h Ortona to the c om m i t took strongpoint p e ni n s u l a Si ci li an fr om to advance achieved take the that fo r c e s . ce n t r e wo u ld to d e fe n c e range the the breadth war landing, prepared war. the success the north the p r e l i mi n a r y Ge r m a n s pe nin s u l a the ank, amphibious days the where places stretched armistice raced a l e a ve ha ve in bu t t r es s e d de fe n d i n g up a bo u t and l a n de d n a r r own e s s the Ge r m a n s on of to di s t r a c t io n running eastern exploit down. two an Line, in a the mo u n t a i n and US al l , in t e rl o c k i n g m ovi n g woul d th e ghting Gustav 1944. to Allies Line, ghting that failed retreated the of Gustav bitterest another Rome, Rome, for the the as the y in S ep t e m be r. Their c o ve r h e s i ta n t l a nde d line a th e for c es Mu s s ol in i ’s di vi s io n s wa s in a l l owin g a n k s s ig ne d the by Al l i e s e ve nt , tr o op s defensive line bogged a ny Si c i l y as German Tun is i a , I t a li a n and and co a sts , w as against di v is i on s for c e s . s pl it t he m I ta l i a ns heavy through commander In of vi e we d di ve r t f r om 10 d i f c u l t th e B r i ti s h to pe n i n s u la f o rc e s w h ic h Salerno, Cassino. encountered to at anchor Monte i nto Allie d Rome, Some western v i e wi ng th e strong ca ptu r e t he ir co m m a n d re source s . landing into on o ff i n e ffe c t u a l was the t he r e vo lt tr o ops , a tta ck i n g f o r ce d up a Se tt in g I ta li a n a tta c ki ng f o r ce s Europe Se pte mbe r. T he the for fur the r US as f a ce d p e ni ns ul a to the ir de fe nce of what designed foment m a no e u v r es ope rations, a nd T he y adv a nce The weste rn men 3 the to at was r e gi m e . dif cul t easie r. It a mp hib i o us d i v i s i on s. outa nking Ita ly aimed a nd inva s i o n makes offere d wa s Eur o pe ”. unpo p ul a r a irborne in stroke 178 S i ci l y ea ste rn incre a sing ly by of underbe lly their north defence C H A P T E R 6 . 4 O P E R A T I O N S Normandy The grand been in Allied one hard-pressed complained front was designed thereby in the battleeld. 5,000 the raid to were surface teach planning of open ● attack sand beaches at ● land ● absolute ● landing the by landings. drive all three Britain had Gold, on front this the make was The Stalin second eastern Although to and partially the from or war. this of was from Army. Stalin France Dieppe Of city the than were Raid of not the force a front Allied pressing difference to be formidable. of August Dieppe 5,000 half to would A 1942. probe Canadians returned. that as established could after this not get Italy, on but its and number A force be of defences. 1,000 Nevertheless, employed the in the ports traction drops men on the shale be the national armies. to of the The in on the of establish days break Paris. a after out French an between of would resistance leadership. the and Such that – France population build-up French The beaches coordination civilian the logistical coast the would and ve the and advance with Free on ow force support coordination inclusion navy. enough. attack – lines, would cooperation mobilized and German and the simple would invasion by operations unprecedented respectively coast of amphibious seemed armies material the secure operated take plan behind level three to the a and Juno and securing take Contact was and are during would The Canadian beachhead of have necessary Overlord and beaches improved Sword east, would is the build-up. which and there. than tanks be of paratroop branches necessary Italy material second lessons rather – to size British would happen and Red and port less won tanks material From north in the the superiority into undertaking of the Utah, beachhead beaches craft and supported insistent divisions States, two-front establishment Sicily satisfy United a Overlord. disaster. hard the in Dieppe air States, Omaha, a at the the main force by landed, beaches bulk operation United was that on to the in of more divert troops enough landed for of Overlord: attack planning divert landing it to pressure Operation some ● An – date entry German ever invasion highlighted soldiers did not the involve became the Regardless, Canadians British did was France obstacles these On it The since to Germans some Italy Soviets, of when the relieving in Union postponed. force had, another Soviet the The or bitterly to operations rather strategy way was Intelligence Free French including troop dispositions and maps of the objectives would have to French soldiers and citizens who be gathered. Huge amounts of material would have to be produced and escaped occupied France and organized stored. All of this would have to be kept secret from German intelligence. themselves into military formations Any commander overseeing such an operation needed to be adept under the leadership of Charles de Gaulle. at logistics, diplomacy and strategy. US General Dwight Eisenhower These formations fought with the Allies was chosen as Supreme Commander. The British General Bernard against the Axis Powers. Montgomery The defences command He of disagreed was given were the tactical formidable, Atlantic with command his Wall but (as superior, during troubled. the Field the landings. Rommel German Marshall had positions von been were Rundstedt, placed in known). on how 179 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y best to defend sought had to yet enemy with a a the ordered them to they distance that his would split the the The to an obvious they to could the notion route that de this went “dummy” paratroopers The was Normandy was of belief going to take concentrated By an Pas the de time ● 1.5 ● 5 ● 12 ● 1,000 ● 20 The to place more the of at tonnage than Allied of the of the The US, British the tonnes of invasion force ● 2,500 naval ● 4,000 landing ● 170 de ● 1,000 bombs in force was 1942 Canadian where force and the personally further ordered without weak did and take in area a at its fake conveyed place. Allies The dropped Normandy. the paratroopers the actual would The was everything aircraft trafc the that ready in May soldiers paratroopers transport of come entire Channel would and the to craft paratroop and tanks radio drops drops. included: 000 the constructed when Calais craft 18 cover command conclude cars. soldiers, the to intervened discovered supplies itself from have English false locomotives railroad to cover invasion Allies actual Allied May and was increasing would delayed wooden aircraft 000 an a force estimation muster: million 000 to was Allied move air around drop out forces and east of Normandy. invasion From to generals Allied moment Pas around the inland beaches thereby effort invasion would real have an two Germans the and million obstacles invasion tide, Hitler against the last they the assembly. million 000 fake the barracks, the of A landing enough sort belief. ahead once ahead Calais impressive managed that would Deliberately the slow moved Normandy the low where and where until were Normandy the on was to they that exposed Normandy. was empty Calais. the If at of guaranteed at that on required. used Calais, deception at 180 with be as strengthened. not some almost encourage Pas so was were wanted them defensive was defence reserve. craft. forces a they instead number main landing de in land between not This Pas to there and could Allied complete the the place invasion the opposite landing while destroy obstacles have forces order. the favoured beach defences exposed front tank narrowest, army, the and kept and These wreck take reserve personal response coastal laid Rommel the Rundstedt force Obviously 2,600-kilometre and forces. would that on defence Nevertheless, armour. landings the were increased. waterline. from their armoured designed avoid coastline. enemy beach month drastically were the mobile mines long the muster with Rommel the destroy to W A R S aircraft. May 1944 of the 1944 Allies it was had C H A P T E R ▲ 6 . 4 O P E R A T I O N S General Eisenhower talking with paratroopers before they drop into France ahead of the Normandy landings. What role did the paratroopers play in the D-Day invasion? The invasion divisions to of secure drops were their forces were Normandy Omaha heavy Gold of at Beach: airborne evening ● be fo r e , dr op p e d that w it h th re e be h i n d mixed seemed e x pe r ie n c e s to of gr i p the enemy su c c e s s . the l in e s The de f e n d i ng a mp h i bi ou s to push tanks most High at British from were Sword the clear the on 000 landing in of at US craft the off seas. that Omaha of the and course. German The was troops the at landing approaching had of casualties. troops much the end 197 Confusion the invaders west a infantry. established a casualties. of British the positions fortied some moving and 34 Utah, suffering different. re on extreme overlooked thousand one casualties the foundered centre their Nevertheless the of many banks 4,650 the behind on landed resistance, experienced ghting of that considerably Twenty-ve beach beach limited Germans cost troops experience the day. US Juno of soldiers Normandy disoriented village the inland the and a stout units. linking The British the The inexperienced provided attacking beaches. attacked invasions. up By defence the with the suffered close to casualties. Juno and T he ni g ht p o in t s c onf us i on sandy was the a heavy attackers 400 s tr a te g ic met heavy drops defenders. of The by giving 8-kilometre causing T he p a r a tr o o p e r s 000 Sherman that day beachhead 23 conspired Normandy ● th e stretch Omaha seas a US 194 4. r e s po ns e . The defended After by Beach : at beaches J une o the r landings, “swimming” also a nd sl o w Beach: landed 6 varie d . 5-kilometre ● on a nd helped and Utah Britis h bridges forces ● beg a n Beach: at zones been rst on The met the unable Canadians stiff beach to stormed resistance, and clear. By the primarily landing obstacles evening they beaches from that had with 21 pre-sighted the moved 000 engineers inland men killing to had link 181 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y up with British suffered Class discussion ● Sword of the W A R S some forces 1,200 Beach: landings The from Gold casualties 23 000 Beach. with troops encountered On close that the to came little resistance, tank forces. day 350 ashore but the Canadians dead. at once the far ashore east did end face How might the Germans have repelled the a counter-attack by German Allied air superiority blunted Normandy invasion? this attack. In all, the British suffered 600 casualties at Sword. The Road to Berlin From the Army strength by surrender continued the it evident their The had as around history. forces German defensive only the served higher by the The losses of its the Allie s to a nd the 4 of Kursk. as they their The victory. the The of they had and was the this terror Red growing been occupied that becoming motivation result the ensuing that and men the and the more shaping Soviet massive the Red into an tank the As the elaborate counter-attack Army the tanks such could victory. October 4,000 largest pounded advance. drawn claim By and was attack, for a engagements the still enemy. planned were Massive point their and mustered forward million were p o r ts in devastation fueling With as They Red Kursk suffer were Army reaching was Warsaw 1944. ca p tur e Rhine Stalingrad, that occupation nished opponent the m s e l ve s s uc h the armo ur e d objectives across over channe l at material. territory forewarned destroyed. home August not city moved their with of atte mpt were Army’s drive than weste rn airborne advanced, artillery and The their Army and occupation. Soviets, tanks Sixth men 1941. during outproducing west end Captured An with both reconquering Soviet The Red to dramatically pushing the system completed on however, battle German in June out Russians advance 1,900 since attitudes Germans, German the west, meted the own in of grow marched Germans Germans to the making Ant we r p R hi ne bridges o pe r a ti o n S e p te m be r into as intact known 1 9 44 Ge r m a n s tr id e s a ll o we d which as t o wa r d fo r through Ma r ke t wou l d he a r t l a n d a c o o r di na t e d th a t h a ve R e i ch . s u ppl y. Garden mean wo u l d the e a s ie r to fell the wa i t short pus h until spring. Berlin itself advance their would through fall the to the city Red from Army all in early directions. May On 2 after May a the methodical city was in hands. The war at sea Battle of the Atlantic The Battle food, elds of million and and by 182 the North 14 a of massive this was German refers men – to imports ships, Britain. each the generally navy. to across merchant merchant 1941 the Atlantic and America tonnes had every of munitions the the The week eet ongoing Atlantic of Royal island to nation survive over Navy sufcient effort from to 3,000 had deal – to the ships one its to do this. vessel. threat – and over overall escort the supplies factories required half with bring a need – For In 1939 provided C H A P T E R 6 . 4 O P E R A T I O N S An Allied tanker burns and sinks after being torpedoed. To what ex tent was ▲ Britain dependent on impor ts to sur vive? The Kriegsmarine vessels the early eet the during such German – as 1942, boats which boats, would at the sinking the also and in radio reaching Multiple to the be the on eet the a the its had – and hope a of contact boats. convened it on far and the successful strangling 300 out across an When the in lone adopted with more her vessels than eet made in Bismarck Rather U-boat other surface surface more of peak stretch made large convince would to vessels entire battleship helped the the on continued Germany’s success. own, eet U-boat vessels, in reached location attacking that affordable of their Once protect to Scheer, expanded which 40 strategy losses more height their concentration a state-of-the-art U-boat lines. a battleship that attacking would vessels the should strategy times escort of marked saw period, Spectacular “pocket” shipping attack. known war. Germany’s Pack” they was command hunting convoy it rearmament programme established the of enemy. “Wolf of the high U-boat island a years scuttling as the Allied sufcient convoy they difcult for convoy. L TA Research skills The armies that moved across Europe and Nor th Africa Resource Source Strategic implication during the Second World War consumed enormous Food amounts of natural resources. At the same time, land and Iron sea operations made the impor t and expor t of materials Coal very tenuous. In fact, the need to secure these resources often dictated overall strategy. To get an idea of the Oil needs of the combatants, complete the following table Which country was in the be s t s itu a tion in term s of for Germany, Britain, the USSR, the USA and France and resources? Which wa s in the w o rs t? answer the questions that follow. How does the information in the table help to explain the strategic decisions made by each country during the war? 183 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y Over of time the production mobilized for components were than eventually range, Allied all war fast convoys. the German the far By US Allies could as U-boat Once innovations the and were sink ASDIC improved. reaching as and the such defeated technology. around U-boats technology as Allies and developed the W A R S such the Germans into form end the of could submariners had as to building The of been Liberty the coast shipping and aircraft the replace the limitations Atlantic 1943 through to of in far faster anti-submarine depth charges air sinking end were increased effective the built was assembling, tonnage were By combination industry ship, for steadily give Allies them. a shipbuilding sonar) Anti-submarine out threat US shipped them. (a the of their cover to U-boats the war twice 75% of killed. Technology and war: radar In the mid-1920s experiments had established that it was on aircraft to nd targets at sea. It was placed on ships to possible to measure the distance to an object by timing the discover surfaced submarines. It was used to aim anti- return of radio waves bounced o the object. The military aircraft guns and nd bombing targets through cloud cover. applications were soon evident. By the time the war broke As with all military technology, each advance in radar out, Britain and Germany had developed radar stations prompted the development of countermeasures. to detect incoming aircraft. Radar ’s accuracy was rened Ar tillery shells that burst in the air releasing fragments throughout the Second World War as was the scope of its of aluminium presented multiple reective surfaces for application. Developments such as the cavity magnetron the radar to bounce o thus confusing it. Radar detectors allowed for the reading of higher frequency radio waves, mounted on aircraft could aler t crews as to when they which proved more accurate. Eventually radar was placed were being hit with radio waves directing anti-aircraft re. Technology and war: anti-submarine warfare Anti-submarine warfare can be divided into detection/ detectors that could detect the change in magnetic elds defensive technology and oensive technology. The caused by a submarine hull to nd their prey. Allies had discovered the defensive benets of the Once detected, escor t vessels would launch an attack on convoy system during the First World War. It allowed a the submerged U-boat. The primary weapon used by the comparatively small escor t force to protect a greater Allied navies was the depth charge, a waterproof explosive number of ships. By the end of the war, Allied convoys in charge detonated by a pressure fuse. Early in the war the Atlantic grew to over 150 ships. The move by Allied depth charges were dropped o the stern of ships or navies toward larger convoys came from the statistical thrown by single charge launchers, requiring the attacking analysis that suggested the number of sinkings in a ship to pass over the submarine several times in order to convoy attack depended on the number of U-boats either sink it or force it to the surface. The Hedgehog was attacking rather than the size of the convoy, theoretically an improvement in that it red 24 projectiles 80 metres allowing for larger convoys. ahead of the ship and detonated on contact. This meant Submarine detection initially relied on ASDIC or sonar that the U-boat had far less time to escape once its own developed during the First World War. Although ASDIC hydrophone heard the approaching ship. was relatively successful in detecting submerged Long-range aircraft, which could spot and attack U-boats, submarines, it could not do so with surfaced U-boats. were highly eective in protecting convoys. As the war Escor t vessels were eventually equipped with maritime progressed the range of aircraft such as the Sunderland radar sets, which made this easier. Hydrophones were Flying Boat and the PBY Catalina increased, as did their listening devices that could pick up faint sound waves ability to attack U-boats. Devices such as the absolute emitted from submerged U-boats. Anti-submarine aircraft altimeter meant that aircraft could y at far lower altitudes used advanced technology such as magnetic anomaly with safety, increasing the accuracy of their attacks. 184 C H A P T E R 6 . 4 The air war O P E R A T I O N S Class discussion Battle of Britain To what extent should merchant marine sailors (civilian sailors who crewed the When France surrendered to Germany in June 1940, the German high cargo and tanker ships) be entitled to the command expected Britain to ask for terms of peace. Churchill, now the same benets and honours as sailors in Prime Minister, would hear none of this. To say that Britain was alone the navy? does her. a disservice Nevertheless, military solution became known Sealion planned it a plan is and the to the preventing underway. From the the British ● The the This radar negotiate to be was that found. R AF Even have an stood meant That it by that a solution the to operate the certain of across. also task once Battle that given resources ability call resources force channel, RAF’s been naval mammoth the e njo y e d the To planning had had the the become Britain. invasion they forces of meticulous and given would invasion not get eliminating British 109 The had could suffered Spitre , was a of to to prerequisite destroying operate, the to Hitler and invasion was Britain. a dva n t a ge s o ve r detect greater incoming losses in the aircraft. Battle of France than numbers aircraft much of salvage of was the for Germany centres sized if although quickly. at the a f e we r no t aerial in n u m be r s up e r io r, to the th a n the Ge rm a n of inferior all the ghter, British could be produced outproduced the in Germans in 25:7. combat aircraft took and place recovery over of or close pilots to was Britain, easier than it Luftwaffe. had or an In rate damaged level “ying tho ug h eq ua l , Messe rschmi tt. Hurricane, ghter As installations Luftwaffe large ● to islands ground the who RAF . The Bf ● of attempt beginning Hurricane, ● Luftwaffe the did believe the defences, not have entailed. enough over ability lacked had Germany however, would would Zealand Luftwaffe. ● ● the Britain New Sealion. Sealion long and amphibious operations did, The that resistance Germany’s required, coastal Australia Operation airspace invasion. Britain’s as fact her channel Goering control the to other attention control Canada, generous; Germany’s the to no heavy industrial ight artillery” bombers facilities. bombers of suited The to destroying Luftwaffe designed to would support large rely ground on urban medium- forces – the Blitzkrieg 185 6 ▲ C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y German Bf 109 Messerschmitts over England in 1940. How did W A R S An ▲ rearming after Germany give Britain a technological advantage? ● Because amount her the of time bomber British The July abandoned important exchange 180 On 13 7 rate losses could beginning September an Class discussion effort table. the the and to Luftwaffe targets. British the also placed to to bases target leaving radio qual ity a nd in France, area these to the protect aircraft transmissions. radar some was was installations success, complete, throughout the telling. they leaving battle. The it was focus and burden they of always unclear against were attack bomb the The Germans lost to the the long airelds. shift to to the RAF battle on ports greater how its sea through producing them allowed of airelds, continue were onslaught than RAF would losses London the the coastal it attack aircraft, morale attacks the battle pattern the the its achieving before the German faster ordered over functional began total be tween 70. This resist ghters Hitler it of from Luftwaffe eliminate of lost far minutes, Although part British r elationshi p production ? operation. decipher to the stay 15 each system this to operation although break but the to could of could was aircraft operating limited August. terms lose Shifting rebuild, during continue to was portion of What British ghters was warning in in attempted early strategic September, RAF a part and August British 7 this early other for rst and aircraft and her eets Intelligence Germans during Spitfire. Luftwaffe unprotected ● RAF quantity to than the It was them. On London in conference to recover the and shoulders of These weapons were in par t designed to the citizens of London. It pushed the RAF hard and on 15 September it spread terror as well as destruction. How committed all its reserves to repulsing a massive raid against the capital. eective is terror bombing as a strategy? The attack was met and defeated. Daylight bombing raids continued To what extent does its eectiveness into October, causing damage that was far outweighed by the cost to depend on whether the target country is a the Luftwaffe. Germany’s air war against Britain liberal democracy or a dictatorship? terror 186 bombing campaign of urban centres. would now focus on a C H A P T E R 6 . 4 O P E R A T I O N S or from the ground. Once the preset distance had been Technology and war: pilotless weapons covered, the engine would stop and the bomb would fall The Germans had been working on pilotless aircraft, out of the sky. This meant that it was not a very accurate specically rocket technology, throughout the 1930s. By weapon. The Luftwae red 8,500 V1s, about half of which the end of the decade the programme had grown to the point were destroyed before they landed. where a permanent test facility was developed, however, it was not until 1942 that a rocket was successfully tested. The V2 was a ballistic missile that carried the same The test facility was severely damaged in an air raid in 1943, explosive power as the V1, but because it was propelled further delaying the deployment of an operational weapon. by a rocket, it could travel six times faster than the V1 and was thus more dicult to defend against. About 1,300 V1 bombs were ying bombs that carried about 900 kg of V2s landed in London, their primary target, killing 2,400 explosives, could travel about 300 km, and were powered civilians and wounding many more. by a jet engine. They could be launched from aircraft The Blitz The Blitz targets the refers Blitz were Churchill Failing both The that, fate civil of high and the bombs masks to make For of had with suffering surveying into a the a in gas or the A a to do. to make adapted that the were that war. production. civilians the to the On cost. existing enemy such to most issue famous as in Many structures, might enforced of 1939 preparations. authorities regulations end September from government, fear war British From morale an terrible industrial throughout use aerial many an gas attempt difcult. nights was of point. 000 unrelenting. bombing. to made victims. civilians At British Churchill talking 40 began British at and goals civilian negotiate warning prompted campaign than but centres German crush to could built from more to impede failure, Britain rallying More to urban 1941. have ample were and was bombing Blackout damage sites. designed given poison consecutive out goal on May would was direction targets months and underground. could. nding rst aerial shelters without 57 were campaign London the bombing raids bombing 1940 The authorities sizes they eight endured the Warsaw lled as sustained government explosive sometimes being his the defence types the September twofold. and counts, what to between The were one point London propagandists a point royal killed of turned being family during seen even the toured Blitz. Strategic bombing Strategic bombing importance categories. structures was the the Area in an designed target The to areas to Luftwaffe, They would inicted area, limit as was the to out have losses aerial on the of of and thereby ground of fell strategic into bombing of Precision concentrate lines force deep although Bomber this value. railway bombing ability, targets general, strategic support British In indiscriminant sectors, heavy this bombing effort. damage, industrial carry never heavy the war regardless designed to to bombing such machines refers enemy’s and their the bombing it, on smaller ports. action, into two all never enemy night developed territory. ghters initially Command. 187 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S large numbers in both theatres, with a number of models Technology and war: long-range bombers produced by a variety of companies. Eventually over When the German Luftwae switched from attacking radar 12 000 B17s were produced. Nicknamed the Flying installations and airelds during the Battle of Britain it did so For tress, the B17 had a range of 3,000 km and could carry without the basic requirement of strategic bombing: longbetween 2,000 kg and 3,600 kg of bombs depending range, level ight heavy bombers. The Allies, being more on distance to target. Equipped with the precise Norden committed to long-range strategic bombing, devoted more bombsight, the B17 dropped approximately 40% of all aerial resources into developing models capable of delivering large bombs dropped by the US during the war. The B24 Liberator payloads of explosives to Germany’s industrial heartland, was designed to replace the B17 and was produced in delivered by the British RAF and the US Army Air Corps by night. greater numbers than any other bomber in the war. The The British hit upon its most durable design in 1942 with the B17 was still preferable to aircrew and the B24 augmented mass production of the Avro Lancaster. Its range was 4,000 rather than replaced the B17 even though it carried a larger km and was manned by a crew of seven. Its bomb capacity payload. The B29 Superfor tress only saw action in the was 14 standard 1,000 lb bombs. It was very versatile in Pacic. Its range, ceiling, speed and ordinance all made it terms of possible payloads with a bomb bay that could the most advanced long-range bomber when it rst ew. be easily conver ted to carry a wide range of ordinance, The Allied strategic bombing campaign made use of many including the “bouncing bombs” of the Dam Raids and the types and sizes of bombs. The type of target generally 22 000 lb. “Grand Slam”. Navigational aids such as the “Gee” determined the type of bomb used. All-purpose demolition system and later “Oboe” allowed for precise navigating at bombs ranged in size from 45 to 1,350 kg and were used night, essential for the British bombing strategy. against industrial targets, railroads and cities. Fragmentation The Boeing Corporation designed a series of very eective bombs were generally used against ground troops and long-range bombers for US forces in both Europe and the defences. Incendiary bombs were designed to start res and Pacic. Initially developed in 1937, the B17 was used in were used against cities in both European and Pacic theatres. Class discussion Is there an ethical dierence between re-bombing cities with incendiary bombs and demolition bombing cities with high explosive bombs? ▲ A B1 7 Flying For tress. What role did strategic bombing play in the Allied victory? British into the operational enemy fact that protection Bomber damage May 188 doctrine territory. the to its British 1942, German 1,000 no eets. aircraft cities British advocated cover had bomber Command’s on The in of night night bombing was partially long-distance As the size, increased, area bombers it was bombing attacked ghters number able to could range inict For German deep overcome that and missions. the missions to offer of ever-greater example city of in Cologne, C H A P T E R setting 600 acres commander bombs what of would was be not of the city Bomber salted blasted ablaze. Command, in among would be This highlighted Arthur high a “Bomber” explosive new tactic Harris. bombs to of 6 . 4 O P E R A T I O N S the Incendiary ensure that burned. TOK discussion For each of the following targets write arguments for and against attacking it with aerial bombs during a time of war. In groups of three or four discuss your arguments and make the decision whether or not the target should be bombed. ● Ball bearing factories ● Munitions factories ● Por ts ● Cities ● Railroads 1 On what basis did you make the arguments for and against aerial bombing? What were the most impor tant factors in coming to a decision? 2 To what extent did your decision dier from the decision made during the Second World War? How do you account for any dierence? Bomber production Bomber Country B17 Flying For tress USA 12 730 B29 Superfor tress USA 3970 Avro Lancaster Britain 7377 Dornier Do 217 Germany 1900 Heinkel He 111 Germany 6400 Junker Ju 88 Germany 15 000 The arrival different with an of the excellent precision. These way deep into way out Air escorts were enemy Force available. equipped far into By with the it Germany The and its US the that This targets States allowed so that proved area in any for brought were more and ght bombing, Air ghter Luftwaffe ght and was but Belgium Force the its ghter seen lack and could of the (USAAF) which their their long-range bombing a tted targeting could disastrous until France, Army 1942 they payloads Mustang outmatched in bombers precision night-time P-51 US missions daylight United Force The their deep attacking excellent Air armed drop protection. limit British to 1944 the heavily airspace, ghter Eighth bombing. bombsight were would limited Netherlands. States strategic daylight complementing protection to B17s without Eighth as United approach Number produced was operate ghter. 189 6.5 Eects of the S ec ond World War Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ How did the end of the Second World War compare to the end of the First World War? ➔ To what extent did the Allies hold the Axis Powers responsible for the conduct of the war? ➔ To what extent did the global inuence of Europe change as a result of the war? Key concepts ➔ Continuity ➔ Change Immediate eects Taken won as by a whole, the USSR superpowers. won from by a the period. events The effects this of a European, is the the of case rest it of African States. means insofar as Europe European that the for history They the Soviet the in and Pacic emerged war in Union majority the as two Europe had of post-war theatres the the era was been were global not isolated inter-war would be fact. so vast complete civilization effect North United power the war was European immediate in course by devastation of this European governed The If the and of the in – was war scope human, are clubbed was the impossible cultural, by the human to detail. economic; war. all Perhaps The aspects the most cost. European war dead Country Military deaths Belgium 12 100 74 000 25 000 320 000 217 600 350 000 Czechoslovakia France Germany Civilian deaths 5 533 000 1 067 000–3 267 000 Great Britain 383 600 67 100 Netherlands 17 000 284 000 3 000 6 500 240 000 5 360 000 Norway Poland USSR 8 800 000–10 700 000 15 200 000–13 300 000 Source: “By the Numbers: World Wide Deaths”, The National World War II Museum http:// www.nationalww2museum.org/learn/education/for-students/ww2-history/ww2-by-the- numbers/world-wide-deaths.html 190 C H A P T E R The damage Aerial Warsaw at its 120 in although a this raids lengths the of much as the the was the demolished damage that surrender direct in so St the capitals retreating with lost standing, suffer London, being but hit one army. and be The limited all German could W A R were in after Danish they out. would Cathedral Florence before city war W O R L D continent. Cologne burning S E C O N D buildings remained The the the the burned of itself hits. rst T H E immense. across were city lucky, was O F centuries-old Paul’s 1940. prompted their its survived not by of cities Dresden While Blitz of cathedral masterpiece, during continent cathedral several war. Cathedral institutions to shelter weeks other the parts and the of such while by the E F F E C T S It then by of was French devastated above. Cultural and to centre raid Wren’s of cities during bridges, authorities from city of architecture destruction air bombs type heritage the damaged Coventry storied just of before French Wales. eastern were of those art during the did Europe. invasion, by years broadens to German war were works of by forces. stolen began to the from locations in works remote in central destroyed, Add many to either these cultural as thousands pieces high-ranking the theft. Louvre secret war, by and them stashed art the extraordinary from countless destroyed the to hide curators save the and collections systematically before went holdings however, occupying been their Museum addition cities destruction moved deliberately had seven European from German not, In or pilfered the war the British This that many museums damage more in collections countryside. collateral of single air incendiary in the Christopher her the German heavily 200 damage, In of cultural devastated centre. hectares over the endured city leveled Sir to bombing 6 . 5 Nazis devastation immeasurably. Recovery One of First its the own to industrial The political as at 1944 trade and Allies from aid the war, world’s in the industrial was in was on the it of 1947 capacity, soon 1918, as In and European but the they the to and poured had which it by in to The upon As as crash of on over post-war the 1929 the into much of globe. 60% period, US a long- emerged economy be a timely any produced could as early western avoid economy from and 1918. re-establish to regained the on many 1930s. market US immediate loans extent wanted dominant supply economy seen and to left areas been ceased. stock be urban depended the not had planned also The the gold it was hostilities settlement could 1920s leaders as Nevertheless world’s fuel the economy but than period of Allied awed infrastructure, economy. output. food, the US in the of the Europe widespread global that. had of as of that inter-war Europe, the out economy the the of industrial form By of in folly as more global that came destruction far Woods possible the that realization currencies two-thirds Europe. It Bretton dependence held the weak sound proved The instability the as the was understood recovery term lessons was recover. of It War centres product had many World of direct western its lost self-sustaining doubt. to planning answer or economic this pressing economic despair in issue nationalism Europe that and as the a to remove potential US central answer announced the economic to any resulting Marshall Plan 191 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y in 1947. Aid free trade, The United replaced a W A R S credits allowing condition States’ with deteriorating of economy European US/Soviet for the Marshall also made benetted recovery relations improvement Aid, demand. and was as infrastructure more wartime The a of recovery plan major and efcient. demand was exacerbated accelerant in the ColdWar. L TA Research and communication skills Choose one of the following cities and research the steps taken to rebuild it after the Second World War. What was the extent of the damage? How were historic buildings restored? Were any buildings left as they were? How did the countries pay for the restoration and rebuilding of their cities? ● London ● Berlin ● Hiroshima ● Warsaw ● Dresden ● Tokyo ● Cologne ● Shanghai ● Nagasaki Illustrate your your findings w ith pho tog r aph s and p res en t yo u r resea r c h to classmates. 1939–1944 (Post-First World War boundaries) Estonia r e m a n s Latvia G 0 USSR 1 To 1,2 00 ,0 ã Siberia 00 Poles Poland 7 3 0 , 0 0 0 G e r m C ze ch o slo va k ia Austria Ukraine a n s Hungary Romania Yugoslavia Bulgaria 0 ▲ 400 miles European population migration, 1939–1944. How do you account for the migration patterns in the map? 192 200 C H A P T E R 6 . 5 E F F E C T S O F T H E S E C O N D W O R L D W A R 1945–1950 (Post-Second World War boundaries) Estonian 3 0 s t l a B S.S.R. 0 ,0 0 0 B a Latvian lt s 0 0 S.S.R. 0 Byelorussian Lithuanian Russian S.F .S.R. S.S.R. 2 3 S.S.R 0 0 0 0 0 East ans rm e G R u ss ia n s 0 0 an d Uk rai nians 0 0 6 1 1 Poland Germany 4 , 5 a 0 0 West , 0 a T 0 im 0 P o Germany 0 0 5 000 3 l e Ge rm a n s s S.S.R. 0 80 1 Czec ho 5 0 0 ,0 0 0 K Ukrainian slo vaki 0 0 0 k U ra s n ia in c e s k c u lm a K a Moldavian G e rm a n s To Siberia S.S.R. Austria Hungary Romania Yugoslavia 320 000 Jews to Israel Bulgaria (1945–1950) 120 000 91 000 0 200 400 from from Poland Romania 37 000 from Bulgaria 33 000 from Turkey 22 000 from Czechoslovakia 17 000 from Hungary miles Post-war European population migration. What eect would this migration have on the ▲ opening years of the Cold War? War crimes Allied leaders had discussed leadership responsible on occasions. several had been dismissed, representatives the accused. the SS, The were ● planning ● carrying ● war ● crimes The of the and trials an decided start holding the and conduct on a of the war summary execution tribunal approach in powers more German of individuals or the suggestion occupying one of of as would well the sit as in which judgment collectives of such as following: war aggressive war with humanity. were as continued War an determined held well States. into The intensied. increasingly that needed in as Nuremburg, in but combatant others countries were such also as held France, Canada. United Cold they with the Stalin’s both aggressive against and trials the out was four accused, Germany Belgium The it the charged an both Once issue crimes main around of for the the they 1949, although political The will trials aggressive needed convictions the of to had mostly never Soviet support by then under continue been Union, of West minor the the dissipated popular the in United Germans Nazi auspices trials States more ofcials. as Germany than ▲ Herman Goering looking bored at his trial for war crimes. What arguments did the accused use in their defence? 193 6 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S War crimes verdicts Name Position Sentence Karl Dönitz Admiral 10 years imprisonment Wilhelm Frick Minister of the Interior Death Hans Frank Governor-General of occupied Poland Death Hans Fritzsche Propaganda ocial Acquitted Walther Funk Minister of Economic Aairs Life imprisonment Herman Goering Commander of the Luftwae and Deputy Führer Death Alfred Jodl Chief of German Armed Forces Operations Sta Death Rudolph Hess Deputy Führer until 1941 Life imprisonment Wilhelm Keitel Chief of Armed Forces Death Kostantin von Neurath Foreign Minister and later Governor of occupied 15 years imprisonment Bohemia and Moravia Franz von Papen Vice chancellor and later Nazi ocial in Turkey Acquitted Joachim von Ribbentrop Foreign minister Death Erich Raeder Commander-in-Chief of the navy Life imprisonment Hjalmar Schacht Economic minister Acquitted Alfred Rosenberg Minister for the Eastern Territories Death Mar tin Bormann Head of Par ty Chancellery Death Baldur von Schirach Leader of the Hitler Youth 20 years imprisonment Ar thur Seys-Inquar t Reichskommissar for the Netherlands Alber t Speer Architect and Minister of Armaments Julius Streicher Editor of anti-Semitic magazine Der Stürmer Death 20 years imprisonment Death Long-term eects The Cold War The the Grand Axis together. Union Alliance Powers. In and terms the entering closer the the There Cold ● The Second The more ● Stalin The 194 or had against between the was a shared nothing the of Allies the the singular the Germany. cause aspects that to the take invasion eastern inte rpre te d in As one common the Cold War? of came That the of is war defeating held the prior defeat again of that worldview, once course purpose thing it Soviet to the United Germany to far the too that drew fore. simplistic. made the war had visited on the Soviet Union reparations. of the Soviet Union caused Stalin to look for Europe. the p ol icy of a p pe a s e me n t as an an t i - policy. US Allies values War for enemy likely. Stalin in together States war World German Sovie t ● the devastation security core however, provoked ● of differences were, War came common United States Did A decision led to a to not sense of share nuclear mistrust and weapon technology competition. with the C H A P T E R ● Stalin ● During chose the post-war There the is interpret wartime doubt of the misunderstanding were that, in Second Ideological the in E F F E C T S Operation difcult O F Overlord questions T H E as S E C O N D W O R L D W A R deliberate. regarding the postponed. part, the World differences and delays conferences settlement little conduct causes. to 6 . 5 origins War. of the Cold Nevertheless predated ignorance of the war, values, as goals War there did and a lay were in other mutual motives. L TA Research and communication skills Research the role that women played in the war eor t of the major combatants. Use the information you discover to create an argument for greater equality for women in the post-war years. Express your argument in one of the following formats: ● Pamphlet ● Speech ● Web page ● Video ● Presentation software The United Nations It is the a testament League of international powers hand, why could A veto was would powers? not had provided that their and other principle role a the Great it four way the for in would United country join one the the be they that to their gave to the counted the dominate Council The to of the the the same less the as room. The persuaded General of other organization Council. operated the and some On new Security which voice view absence that Security a not security operations. vote powers (UN), the its most was did collective respected. Nations vote, if by balance powers inuence of in impediment understood This that understood Powers was vision experiment was important found. and one It another the leaders’ failed be organs of Allied as be to to an Still, simply balance the cooperation. major smaller to Nations them Assembly under powerful the states. Decolonization This was powers. intact, the The but second British weakened. contributions colonies World the to began War force surrendered extent World Asia the to that War in Ho the victory for United could contributed to empires and to gain the to the a other more Algerians the States. no the By longer wave In the no and their the the their old once Second the swept by for with the colonial that other ignored agitation empires, decolonization the Japanese War their and of be imperial World used India longer ghting weakening of had independence maintain First aftermath accelerated of European the dominions could war declaration the endured autonomy treatment. spent devastate had independence Minh drafted post-war generation similar and Chi they a Canada cries and in French expect British independence. the the to India’s weakened guerrilla war and his Japanese powers to Second Africa and period. 195 Exam-style questions and fur ther reading Exam-style questions 1 To what extent was ideology a cause of the Second World War in Europe? 2 Evaluate 3 Discuss 4 Examine World 5 To of the 7 Compare Second 8 an the resources of air diplomatic to power in the to policy. German the military outcome of strategy. the Second Discuss strengths and capacity determine the outcome Europe? Allied the Second industrial in effective signicance in of War as War success battle 10 the Allied contrast World Examine 9 did World Blitzkrieg and effective Europe. extent Evaluate an of importance in Second 6 as importance the War what the appeasement military and strategy. German use of naval power in the Atlantic. of the World North African campaign to Allied War. weaknesses of German strategy during the Stalingrad. Compare and Operation contrast the German offensive in western Europe and Barbarossa. Fur ther reading Beevor, New Antony. York, Stalingrad: Gilbert, Martin. 1989. Second Haslop, Dennis. 2013. Britain, A Comparative Keegan, Germany, Overy, Europe, Taylor, Study. John. Kershaw, The Ian. 2011. 1944–45. AJP . 1961. UK The Fateful The End: The Viking. The New World The Press. Siege, New of Stoddart. and War. New and York, the the York, Deance Bombers Origins War. Germany Second Penguin 2014. 1940–1945. World Bloomsbury. 1990. Richard. London, 196 1998. 1942 –1943. Viking. USA. Battle of the Canada. Atlantic: USA. Viking. and York, the Toronto, New York, Destruction of USA. Hitler’s USA. Bombed: Allied Air War Over USA. Second World War . Hamish Hamilton. 7 T H E S E C O N D W O R L D T H E PA C I F I C : T O TA L W A R I N W A R Global context As with war in the the ideological The Great sought Second Pacic and refuge of global these a the in the states of most This look deance, such as a all of situation adversely policies and in by Japanese forces invade China of The catastrophe situation were the by fostered and at some the by racist Asia the that and of long time other a way was the existence the An was its further as they anti-imperialist tomanipulate Asian a the European simmering building of depression. Pacic of and out underpinned been attempted same expansion as philosophies. had Japan expense in administration, sentiment of saw neo-mercantilism imperial ultra-nationalism. Timeline ultra-nationalists sort complicated that isolated turn in Many many The economic 1930s. affected eventually of the caused which form the complex countries. trade isolation and Europe, the context inward Japan, in of affected economic states to War out protectionist depression. sense states economic Depression exacerbated some World erupted own in the this region while empire at the nations. 1937 7 July 1941 7 December Japanese forces attack Pearl Harbor US and Britain declare war on Japan; 8 December Japanese begin advance on Singapore Japanese forces invade Philippines and 10 December capture Guam Japanese forces invade Burma 11 December 18 December British in Hong Kong surrender Japanese forces invade Hong Kong 25 December 1942 15 February Battle of the Java Sea 25 February–1 March 6 May Battle of Midway British surrender Singapore US forces in the Philippines surrender 4–5 June 7 August US forces invade Guadalcanal 197 7 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S 1943 Japanese forces begin withdrawal from 1 February Guadalcanal Japanese commander Admiral Yamamoto 18 April is killed US invades Bougainville 1 November 20–23 November Battle of Tarawa 1944 Allied air forces begin aerial bombing June campaign 15 June–9 July US invades Guam 19 July 24 July US forces land in Philippines Battle of Saipan US invades Tinian 20 October 1945 19 February–26 March Allies recapture Manila 3 March 9 March Battle of Okinawa Atomic bomb dropped on Nagasaki 30 August 2 September 198 Atomic bomb dropped on Hiroshima 8 August 9 August British re-occupy Hong Kong Philippines recapture is completed 16 July 6 August USSR declares war on Japan Allies re bomb Tokyo 1 April–22 June 5 July Atomic bomb successfully tested Battle of Iwo Jima Japan surrenders to Allied forces 7 .1 Causes of the S ec ond World War in the Pacic Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ To what extent was Japanese foreign policy driven by economic and nationalistic concerns? ➔ To what extent could diplomacy have avoided a war in the Pacic? ➔ To what extent were the issues in the Pacic linked to the European tensions? Key concepts ➔ Cause ➔ Consequence Long-term causes The First World War Although the western exports to by the of and agricultural the erected Japan Paris and those of Peace north but of claims. She was the concessions China had conference the against a the Axis was claimed the “awarded” had this also Germany argued gave that half all of be to such the to global in of her China territory. They manufactured economybegan the war, compete 1920s their with and own products. Japanese her commodity the protect and gave Likewise, not falling Japanese and its after War, the expanded exporter the Japanese disappointed to all a the of the prices 1930s, edgling This would in all German from of concessions set possessions to to to the be the in supportsuch war, trading while abolished. Japanese the those extra-territorial prior the to eventual mandates should to the Britain the China concessions delegation with Nations pledge claim enjoyed these within of Imports had Pacic could the policy League despite had as World course. right hoped the First expense war. competition. attempts partners, the the and scale, US the the production and cheaper to in However, small at Japan concessions West in with war. renewed collision future the civilian mostly barriers on were materials Foreshadowing equator, Japan from of Conference settlement. Pacic, its to during markets colonies for raw Allies her they Asia. back still tariff China of eastern farming industrialization as demands suffered mid-1920s. the German importer sector, efcient China Like 21 to 300%during switch manufacturers of by occupying key aid expanding occupied throughout recover more busy powers, ultimatum became goods provided was increased inuence an Japan country The thereby 199 7 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y satisfying to neither enshrine Asia was equal side. racial demonstrating to Likewise equality to be W A R S her in that treated as as a Japan the far was frustrated covenant as the retainer at of the western the in her League powers imperial attempts of Nations, were table concerned rather than an partner. Washington Naval Conference In an and effort Japan East to in avert the concerns made to signicant growth of them. the of ratio at 5:5:3 in the at Pacic, inuence under for ship the were it of these US in and that of the steps inequities and restrictions. the treaties Japan quo in treaty. China’s toward Japan in The Nine Japan 60 Japan that did working in the ratio peace place. As the in the bridled should renew also these increasingly not possess Treaty, While a ships established fortications Power Versailles Far future could naval establishing grew, the over powers of Britain with Washington limiting sovereignty. at at Washington these argued and and States, involved signed terms established refused United destroyed signed nationalists When US the nations eachof status guaranteed the The Treaty tonnage nine disarmament Britain, the between 1921. Power duration militarists and race invited naval important froze equal,Britain in US, Five Washington, agreements the The The in re-established Pacic signed arms the inroads capital and naval Washington navies. between a Pacic, be treaty 1936. Ultra-nationalism On the surface emperor. government. and This the was necessary As the in to Samurai reality was turn were and the was Japan as in oil in turn the that heart buying large to to of the an families economic falter in preaching part in the of of who nished also was was to revival East serving the be and product. held to and bit the only the Asia. an in country, empire fundamentalist ways of the anti-western hard This was into important answer to The politically the already evaporated government the problem a saw periphery, centre – would Japan later rich – and nd To what extent was Japanese ultraexpression in the vague organization called the Greater nationalism similar to fascism? Prosperity 200 Sphere – in fact a tool of imperial control. of ultra-nationalism expansion envisioned relationship navy inuence. goods. government target. the the an doctrine. industrialized This a the army subsequent It of nished 1920s, the divine with health for “new” 1929 ofcers in the a economic empire, return and inuence this a this army Crash along and markets by responsible expanding and to for Ultra-nationalism Street leader overseen political civilian resources, its began China of of materials expansion and natural other closely important Wall democracy mechanism deal closely Japan. military markets the great adherents the argued at and an no importance economy, serving shrinking that After Japanese ministries raw pre-Meiji found liberal number a linked in movement frail a economy grew sentiments powerful. a linked provide and was however, exercised Japanese movement Class discussion was, In army inuence which Japan There East Asia Co- C H A P T E R 7. 1 : C A U S E S O F T H E S E C O N D W O R L D W A R I N T H E P A C I F I C Short-term causes Great Depression As the grew Great Depression higher, the began Japanese to spread government around the responded world with and tariff decit walls nancing. decit nancing The ultra-nationalists and militarists in the government demanded that Government spending that is dependent much of this borrowed money go to rearming the military, which they on loans, thus pushing the government’s would then argue was the tool by which the economic crisis could be budget into a decit. solved. When assassinated. was the on Prime By 1937 armaments. lands of Minister China over This Takahashi two-thirds radical appeared to tried of the curtail Japanese expansion be to of source the in a this spending, government military sort of had he was expenditure to be fed and neo-mercantilism. Japanese expansion The lack of civilian began to in Chinese the tell in it was the The act supported of rail a of the 1930s. Mukden line reality of the early city Japanese-owned Manchuria. control the rogue that the far and Manchukuo under The government by puppet and, alleged the Japanese an Chinese military of unit. had the of a set a government Japanese explosion act military 1932 indeed, murder staged from Japanese expansion the and gave is military The on a pretext Chinese emperor a to Tokyo protectorate Pu occupy aggression, Nevertheless up ofcer nearby called Yi Pu Yi The last emperor of the Manchu dynasty Chinese complained bitterly to the League of Nations. in China. Pu Yi came to the throne in 1908 While there seemed a political will on the part of the smaller members at the age of three and was emperor until of the League to act, they had little means to do so. The US urged he abdicated in 1912. After the Japanese the League to enforce the Kellogg-Briand Pact to which both China invaded Manchuria in 1931 they installed and Japan had been signatories. Unwilling to commit any troops to him as the emperor of a territory renamed Manchuria, the League sent the Lytton Commission to investigate and Manchukuo. compile a Japanese. to be also report League failed to weaker given last fragile war Japanese other to and the affairs. US recognize any Japanese illustrative 1930s. of 1930s, the the This was to that set back states clear of 1932, on stage and them would for treaties up with choose of China the the all US were force. of the In protect 12 for rights US in declaring all the to as Amau Doctrine A doctrine of 1930s Japanese foreign and policy that reserved the right of Japan policy would for insofar an the on Door” inability the a likewise economic the a after League, relations at had of powers years calling difcult trade the Doctrine that useful the to “Open West’s only result security was and Chinese stated the a expense the Amau commercial and As support only powers both which the Garnering international to at unpalatable of the Manchukuo Treaty. Collective inuence from rejection Manchuria the of of and League. expand of Chinese territory weakness issuing sphere infringed of part the Power test. were state themselves Doctrine invasion and a to essential further, Japanese both the economy. economic remove major force remote the Nine from sanctions a on resulting the rst global went Agreements willing the to treaty was were of the of using defend the Stimson The the to given within its from Economic state blame withdrew failed state government be violation Understanding countries political and a placed however, in Japanese adventure impossibility. China and clearly prevent the report found, the had The neighbour. military the It illegitimate ofthe The report. not to act unilaterally to preserve “order ” in East Asia. region. stop the it rest of countries economic expense times of 201 7 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y national Powers, to to self-determination. but which each of see W A R S not US and these how the future Japanese countries they It was Allied policy continue would not a lesson Powers. in the along come into learned It also region its was foreign some by sort the future illuminated Axis degree contradictory. policy of the path, it Should was hard conict. Sino-Japanese War and US reaction In February Army Prime were of Minister causing the army in of city to threatened which the war with day. This strategic war US, the in the ate up one on for Jieshi’s the of Japanese assassinate the perpetrators consequence government, policy issues 250 entire 000 which would and resources had take in steel weeks the quantities. Japanese after of the clearly to Jiang’s Japanese, Eventually over to the much loans with prove of aggression government the the Polo Japanese out captured This Marco The him prompted concessions. the extended and would propel on invasion. civilians larger Japanese control more forcing they oil for dispute full army and traded would a a north-east. region larger political forces, Japanese the US that of foreign and strange government pretext also in cost Imperial number the ever-greater some the businesses to the be $5 a the million serious government a and to US. the keep Japanese what and back determined they Dutch could journey Philippines. killing would to Jiang year a had concessions, a interests liability, British as its invaders Japanese their a and control Chinese to China essence, to and its in government answers. the of failed solutions further work ofcers civilian however, close US the coup tighten used dependence with order was junior the military refused and US government. to the Within coast The military of Nanjing, of incident, pressure short fell. group diplomatic Beijing made Chinese In that Nanjing capital the This ascendance Bridge a overthrow Okado. over Japanese When to military ensure precedence the 1936 executed. helped This of attempted had. holdings take to This from the Something in the home would that they expansion south-east region islands needed would China. would by eventually the be US have to expand eventually Any resources threatened on protectorate to in threaten in the give. War plans There was is no competition exception. attempted navy, rabid the coup more The a greater Japanese land division 202 the 1936, of it but the is thus against was engaged tested a Mongolian it was All and share in border. for Soviets. the late force The in a military sullied never the the of summer Japanese the of that Japan’s the powerful. of to The the want interest and to thus resources. emphasized known 1939 command were and by taken military distribution plan, the very really national solution This under any been politically had to of had branches vital argued Soviet still branch, more the branches reputation army. the inuence army operations programme” on that the army’s conservative nationalism demonstrate claim of between The as the when of a “north Japanese Georgi overwhelmed Zhukov and C H A P T E R withdrew. From the for The search “south navy. The It of point, also France “south more clash June C A U S E S into S E C O N D the of would was in the the W A R I N T H E P A C I F I C push dominant. inuence interests signing W O R L D which planning western and T H E Indo-China strategic with 1940 O F programme” hegemony gave likely in the and programme” would fall that resources 7. 1 : to the region. Tripartite Pact Tripar tite Pact with Italy and Germany seemed to open the way for the expansion of An agreement signed on 27 September Japanese inuence into the French colony in Indo-China. With her right 1940 by Japan, Germany and Italy. The ank protected by a non-aggression pact with the Soviets, Japan had by pact pledged its signatories to mutual the summer of 1941 occupied the entire colony. aid should any of them be attacked by a country not then at war. Pearl Harbor The months Hawaiian United States integrity as be be July 1941 British effect of the were before he In Admiral understood hoped the could win. that event be of Yamamoto on Pacic. could hand The in the between that nor Chinese have the territorial Japanese to were their US just strategic for of necessary, perimeter six little Japanese they a war to studied the strategic act they quickly, could the view in the US potential; States. Japanese Should that thinking oil the United the year. the military military that a was chief with had Japan’s faster This by Japanese and the condence would which had and were be supported clock. and believed months had from Navy to the steel coming, strength he its impossible. avoid come cut the Yamamoto industrial Yamamoto embargo, of and Japanese claimed This on was Imperial could the they an US combat Yamamoto. did as much the the Indo-China Japan. and with of that ordered oil made war all time with Japanese outline tasked and naval was on at from on in Pearl the in A the the they in war could the fall expanding negotiate US the Washington gave larger force of their from was and the to of such the for US Japanese a had thereby vital would would was that It overpower Waves eet Pacic, plan. and operation carriers Surprise Sundays attack land Harbor. aircraft damage gains. of the would Islands. focus base to its negotiations be army operations consolidate down developing Wake main launch goal could with Japanese The US carry standing surprise be Guam the The to its successful the The would not ongoing of was on bombers a base a strength. Philippines. attack same with awesome that, war assaults. outposts of war the gains, intercepts, trade government defensive position 80% such formed Should empire’s three his that the all Isoroku its beyond This 1941. of reopened. occupied radio shortages reasonably continue the fuel army negotiations if naval approval. Roosevelt and US wrangling determined be faith. on the recent at over low trade plans the commander planner, and from was their through Dutch, on diplomatic US free forfeit Japanese good putting reserves better, in and off of the attack of The western military negotiating military to the urry and not learned, developing the to to a Japan. restored subject Roosevelt up saw and determined plans In leading Islands torpedo an Pacic US in aerial and dive across extent giving this the land surprise snuck contain the that Japan operation. Fleet’s the a it free The tradition condence that this achieved. 203 7 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y The US Pacic available little two Fleet ammunition of others. and 200 end of 2,000 was anti-aircraft waves three ▲ W A R S Twelve day were those that to sink other were the surprised. went bombers aircraft the for indeed guns were. four vessels destroyed, US had Over unmanned It of suffered took a battleships varying most of there little and sizes them 2,700 two-thirds and on over were casualties the precious an heavily the of was hour also damaged ground. of for damage which By just the over dead. Ships of the United States navy burn at Pearl Harbor. What are the moral implications of attacking before a formal declaration of war? To what ex tent are such declarations anachronisms? While the damage unqualied during hit on the 7 Harbor the raid, were much been it an the is December that in not the 1941. heavily in US is a stunning, it aircraft The to the it was Despite consider had that Pearl and far been US Harbor industrial was was in could and repair from what what not the dockyards that vessels testament to carriers order. fuel be. meant ensuring to to signicant short able was needed survival damaged, it raid more their base, Indeed the The and Pacic operational damaged. by Japanese perhaps morning initiative tanks Class discussion caused success Pearl was oil still that strength hit not regain huge those the of very had the What role did luck play in the events of US that of the four battleships sunk at Pearl Harbor that 7 December 1941? were 204 raised and repaired within two and a half years. morning two 7 .2 C ombatants Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ How did the military potential of Japan and the Allied Powers compare in 1941? ➔ What role did geography play in the relative strengths of the combatants? ➔ What inuence did the fact that Japan was ghting in one theatre of war and the Allied powers were ghting in multiple theatres have on the relative strength of the combatants? Key concepts ➔ Continuity ➔ Change ➔ Signicance Allied forces In 1939 the Australian ofcoastline varying had to sizes. The army another air 80 force armed The of forces holdings. vital Only some about defending of General Jiang another spread the lines survived the units. over of 3,000 levels of training. of various By the end This of force the had cruisers war, of men and The Australia’s served in all major casualties. the initially garrisons were up war retreat garrison back at be concentrated Kong The of India. of would captured in Atlantic the British army, and Like was in other these Indian supported to and the as bulk its Singapore force in Europe units poorly this would in Isles. of though were Hong concentrated of British made in trained. those mostly number troops made over Singapore after surrender. nationalist fought weak, the force assets 000 amount permanent Eventually 80 the six theatre the British given were outbreak for small vessels men. with Navy 000 forces and Pacic after Chinese around regular 000 strong, Percival’s 300 50 30 army army million were 000 Jiang’s tiny Burma these Jieshi’s war. both 17 Of communist the Royal incredibly largest machines. 1 the a Singapore, Burma, Indian 000. 250 supply defending eventually 130 in and Mediterranean werethe up of Its reservists suffering forces Burma smaller had numbered war, was defend. potential consisted British India, and 000 forces theatres navy it close to consisted forces 2 of million about under-equipped, country. guerrilla Mao’s as and army formations well as Mao Japanese 230 000 poorly grew during to soldiers effective led the Zedong’s and about throughout troops trained 400 000 with divisions troops in war. 205 7 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y The United during men the during stood at 3 October 23 States war. the 65 would Marine war By battleships, army The aircraft 1941. W A R S and had carriers, the 9 end its 20 grew own the air and war, 26 divisions to battleships, of cruisers, deploy Corps to The cruisers US Pacic divisions corps. 8 the eet six US operations 485 Pacic and Pacic and 40 000 Fleet destroyers Fleet had grown in to carriers. Japanese forces When 24 the Japanese divisions swelled 130 this Harbor 4,400 produced industry Harbor, States by between were the of a only but year. United close aircraft army army to as be had the to twice by was the Allies. 50 000 aircraft that personnel aircraft its a the the forces in war in war’s while year. in were the the 000 end The US Pearl 1941, Japanese United to be ghting Japanese political the fewer lion’s By 1945 in Did Japan overreach its military any position to capabilities? home 206 islands. offer resistance to the Allied forces moving is divided whereas The The received far aircraft on by equipment. but who differential had war. China men attack the Pacic. the China, as 26 had on producing Japanese the over replacement men of attack million was the production throughout and million time year, 3 combined the many that By per which over of Japan as about indoctrination navy eve producing 000 had and and 1939 11 thin it the access By concentrated spread 1.8 On nearly was US in ensured reinforcement Japanese to 1937 army problem from theatres could had was The States out slightly The aircraft. marginally risen in Conscription training. This demand various the of had only 1941. military period. nonetheless of by increased the China aircraft. 12–24 levels same pushing Japanese share Japanese wartime the inuence Class discussion divisions production was invaded 5,000 between varying the had misleading, forces of whereas buoyed aircraft 50 aircraft in army about the received over the to squadrons Pearl had and toward the 7 .3 Strateg y and tactics Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ What inuence did geography have on strategy? ➔ What were the relative strengths and weaknesses of Allied and Japanese strategy? ➔ What role did strategy play in the outcome of the war? Key concepts ➔ Cause ➔ Consequence ➔ Signicance Japanese war plans Understanding the industrial Japanese strategists period offensive island of bases Indonesia. Dutch widening the (in the the drawing the US still eventually gained had perimeter Such and a plan doctrine the the some Pacic like no Admiral long-range crew by US the the – time the and the joint naval the elite and, high had Yamamoto of a of table. conict eet’s As not was in repower. Imperial to a the The The Japanese it of by 1945 could narrowly islands. army relatively the Japanese Navy effort and operational The and aircraft Should war line make carrier to further Japanese Japanese would history. aircraft spring home common. however, the the between the New According planned, that further thus needed still Allied By of and Islands maintained thought initial and conict. was the shrunk. of war the be surrounding part Burma. US, which Kurile resources the the Kong, through to into reduced British during the attrition fact, training in the command was carrier, the of cooperation saw again An Malaya Hong west widen could in been from Zealand war negotiating close aircraft other enclose the follow of perimeter into and Islands, north strategy. force running New defend to would necessarily immediately require army perimeter Japanese opinion extension were would potential strategic Singapore then point, initial islands bases probably that to as Marshall and re-evaluated the of the the also coordination technology adopters. their its would This for and the the southward fortication Indies would the be that in around navy. new – to and such military defensive Pacic perimeter It ghting forcing realistically drawn this momentum, mid-1943 the East a extend of through thus essentially require reinforce south the period Australia be the would A empire. into and would strongholds would around the of war. strategists sustain by latter out north) Guinea, to The Japanese the developed operations eastward forces might its were in early planes carriers and war a and considerable 207 7 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y time and rening for resources their still planes, After limiting their became. Iwo the war they were these tactics included a the were to about rst in the rst be by on US the six war to one- the defended until loyalty In no and two-seat days. Pearl Harbor later as on such stages defenders often, they Islands the the operations. stronger approaches. bunkers. navigation clear after into distance and defensive defences beach and Aircraft for months in and operational relatively involved erce construction the kilometres. of these tunnels would their 1941 operations covered of inspired attacks 300 years primarily pillboxes defences into December strengthen warren were poured 7 was in successes had suicide By long-range forces Concrete Jima These safe initial land longer been aircraft rudimentary Japanese The had operation. carrier-borne was W A R S were as of left. Saipan, units. US strategy: Island Hopping Yamamoto’s a strategic predicted defeat Japanese would offensive initiative to make. Should small and Which they service, the route the but many at least it some MacArthur The that fact prompted was not he the the two theatres Command Nimitz By Together and a of while theatre. power, ego. the 1943, they central to as stronger they would cover was based bombers Japanese were of to bear no a on could army be chosen. the especially taken to to General opponents however, which one split have Pacic. navy, forces, occupy sufcient would in The its vital and had Roosevelt’s of ofcer, army ofcer Pacic. therefore decision. the which its Domestic with the Pacic the theatre was given to Admiral Chester command of the south-west was given command of the entire that Japanese them next get the The a US US man. This forces then system close naval or air islands. that On them that the would these to support. bring air heavy against Allies sea bypass overlapping campaign and positions would allow of air strategy enough bombing islands strength, This Pacic Pacic. defensive forces smaller would garrisoned on strong invasion capture strategic without last US that island. the initiate value to and airstrips played strength, Hopping”. defences islands. strategic with the US islands? with with conquer The route command was strategy build eventually home in Pacic navy to navy, military home populated the the decisions given defend with to the some was “Island islands power US in the while drawbacks. the 1942 south-west him an role Pacic. connected Pacic Nimitz adopted known to and make had Japanese Pacic After Midway, war. minimizing willingness with over decision a in central the leave Corps, play forces senior handing The islands air to the now south-west would along the MacArthur while become in of get politically Marine MacArthur’s into was also the should was President interested included not the months. at perimeter US central six defeat advantages land across The toward the route enough role Douglas would Pacic did take its only defensive US. through had lasted crushing the across or politics it a their to would islands but over route lacked little manpower play it success and behind islands, central of Sea directly Each inter-service Choosing sit went move islands? year Coral now garrisoned larger 208 at land- the bypassed 0001 naecO robraH uhaO 0 aeS eht )2491 laroC 8–6( elttaB yaM fo nomoloS aeS laroC alusnineP naupaP luabaR kcramsiB sdnalsI yaM s e id n t s E h ta t D ot fo elttaB 01( esenapaJ 51( fo ▲ stimiL hsitirB riA teefl kcatta ta lirpA( naidnI hsitirB no nolyeC )2491 naecO rednerrus yraurbeF dellortnoc-esenapaJ ts euqnoc ta )2491 yrotirret enuJ( roirp 1( e r op agn i S esenapaJ hcraM 7 ) 24 9 1 2491–1491 ,cicaP eht ni noisnapxe esenapaJ )2491 rebmeceD u avaJ gnidnal 1491 a avaJ I c ayalaM eht rebmeceD htuoS )1491 anihC teivoS aidnI noinU nolyeC i H s a y a l a m lahpmI noognaR amruB anihC gnoH maiS ailognoM gnoK anihcodnI aeS oenroB gnoH nozuL gnoK sebeleC etyeL 6( senippilihP rednerruS 8( nawiaT uoknaH gnijnaN uykuyR esenapaJ sdnalsI ae S napaJ fo airuhcnaM gnipirB )gnijieB( amihsoriH ikasagaN awanikO kcatta rebmeceD fo )2491 oanadniM aidnalloH weN troP ailartsuA eybsenoM aeniuG ytlarimdA no )1 4 91 nainiT eht acasagC 81( tsriF napaJ ria lirpA diar )2491 no naciremA mauG secrof napiaS anairaM kurT oykoT sdnalsI senippi lih P sdnalsI karwtnI ogalepihcrA uttA llahsraM nielajawK sdnalsI lanacladauG awaraT aksiK sdnalsI 7( esenapaJ rebmeceD kcatta 6–4( elttaB gnireB a r t a seliM 005 no )1 4 91 cfiicaP lraeP fo enuJ nalkcuaM )1491 yawdiM sdnalsI N aeS m u S T A C T I C S A N D S T R A T E G Y 7. 3 : C H A P T E R 209 7 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS L TA Thinking and communication skills O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S Strategic bombing and commercial warfare By of 9 July their 1944 Pacic the US was strategy able into to begin action. The putting capture the of second Saipan component brought the Even though they were on the same side, Japanese home islands within range of the newest US long-range bomber, there was an intense rivalry between the B-29 Superfortress. Two months earlier the Philippines had come General MacAr thur and Admiral Nimitz. within range of the heavy bombers. The US believed that the B-29s could Each argued for a strategy that would reduce much reduce these of Japan’s urban areas, built as they were out of wood. To highlight their respective service. cities, the US would use incendiary bombs designed to start MacAr thur argued for a strategy that res rather than high explosives designed to blast buildings. would take a southern route and prioritize the recapture of the Philippines, relying on the army. Nimitz countered that the navy should take the lead and island hop across the central Pacic, taking the most direct route to the Japanese home islands. Along the with US imported merchant no devastating navy their to the plan shipping A taking for Japanese interrupt resources. shipping, coherent Atlantic sought its ability their submarine advantage defence in to produce shipping campaign of the lines the fact way the war along savaged that the Allies material, which they Japan’s Japanese protected had their lanes. Choose one of these approaches to champion. Develop and deliver a Fighting in the Pacic presentation to the class presenting your The Pacic Ocean is over 160 million square kilometres in size. To case. Once all the presentations have say that locating enemy ships in such a vast expanse is a challenge is been made, vote as a class on which was an understatement of the rst order. Naval warfare until this point in the best option. history much had to enemies as in the do been with conned the generally case relatively of small fact to that occupied Rome and areas and for the relatively much same Carthage, congested. Not of close the the and intervening the landfall. history continent, so to Pacic. of naval when is of the had warfare, they body This This did water reason not, was that Class discussion the To what extent was Japan more dependent on maritime commerce than the US was? aircraft While before they carriers ▲ could could kilometres. rage carrier battleships became had start carry The to on vast reconnaissance the indispensable generally pounding also weapon within other against placed in the kilometres with the a 20 their enemy premium at big Pacic of guns, distances on war. each reliable other aircraft of 200 long- aircraft. A US Lockheed Lightning. To what ex tent did the Allies have a technological advantage over the Japanese in the Pacic war? 210 each operations distances get C H A P T E R Any land entail difcult until operations amphibious enterprises. they secure landed exposed the to then offensive as it The while troops of the supply they moved either air so or the were incredibly until was ships supported Japan landings were moderately Command operation. attack by Amphibious Landing and beachhead. amphibious undertaken landings. troop Allies A N D T A C T I C S would notoriously established for a and a successful transports landings S T R A T E G Y vulnerable essential and the they 7. 3 : were while supplying inland. Technology and war: aircraft carriers Early in the 1920s militaries around the world were Never theless, the eectiveness of the aircraft carrier experimenting with aircraft taking o from and landing on was demonstrated early in the war with the British Royal a ship. The rst aircraft carriers were conver ted cruisers Navy attack on the Italian eet at Taranto in 1940 and and other vessels with ight decks built on the existing the Japanese attack on Pearl Harbor. From that point hull. By the 1930s all the major maritime powers had carrier production and tactics evolved quickly. An aircraft some form of purpose-built aircraft carriers. carrier was only as eective as its aircraft. The Japanese star ted the war with one of the best carrier-borne ghters The aircraft carrier made imminent sense in naval of the war, the Mitsubishi A6M Zero. By 1942 the US warfare. Aircraft dramatically increased the combat navy had the Grumman Hellcat which was itself an eectiveness of surface eets to the extent that the excellent carrier-borne ghter. Throughout the war most Battle of Coral Sea, early in the Pacic war, became the nations created smaller aircraft carriers, escor t carriers, rst battle in history in which the opposing surface eets designed to protect invasion otilla and be generally more never laid eyes on each other. Never theless, adopting manoeuvrable. the new technology did not come easily to senior sta who had been trained to believe that the battleship The increased impor tance of aircraft carriers placed a was the king of the sea and whose tactical training and greater emphasis on their protection. Fleet carriers were experience had been moulded in this tradition. Likewise accompanied by a wide range of escor t vessels and were the air arm had to learn new and dangerous skills, namely armed with the latest in anti-aircraft weapons to keep taking o and landing from a tiny, bobbing speck in the attacking planes at bay. Inventions such as the proximity middle of a vast ocean, not to mention navigating to and fuse, which detonated an anti-aircraft shell when it from targets with initially rudimentary instruments, the was near an airplane, rather than requiring a direct hit, whole time judging fuel consumption to ensure there was improved aircraft carrier defences immensely. enough to return to the carrier. 211 7 .4 Operations Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ What role did industrial production play in the war? ➔ What factors led to the halt of the Japanese advance? ➔ How did land, naval, and air forces coordinate their actions? ➔ What role did technology play in the outcome of the war? Key concepts ➔ Continuity ➔ Change ➔ Consequence Japanese advance – Philippines, Singapore, Hong Kong The attack on December Hawaiian assault 1941, on British prioritized home racist its terms This that defences more up by than the the naval Pearl The British defending extended Japanese had the it East and hold of Wales in Indies was centred material, Africa based or and the the and in planners air, the of the size HMS no torpedo the at armour. bombers to region were garrison and Three the part weight The there naval task days descended of the to shore was the the felt would force note after on on to British dispatched power of Command defend little A was air the garrison bay. no the the High Japanese. of on Fleet, the strategy gave Repulse Critically of on need on attack in machine. British its part Japanese and had resources war initiated Pacic its Malaya. garrison The the US fuel sea to the to military Singapore operations While debilitate North was the signicant. to conquest. land, Japanese defence a Singapore their anks turned the pushed giving into the British forfeited vigorously, was outnumbered peninsula, reached been of They defenders defended before in of attack two ships them. incompetence. British at on defences and sank it Prince Harbor, and the men British enough HMS dispatched on be of one Japanese priority generalizations. ability, led in operations islands. the the of but most one by presence In the was designed was needed ghting be 212 was Malaya Singapore. Harbor albeit Islands desperately The Pearl Singapore. onto the them a of have By As a Falling the of with in result of the of that, and had the These were they neglect ghting, had Japanese January Singapore. this before peninsula end singular troops advantage back forestalled the island enemy decided jungles. anks. much would conducted their it the the been advance defenders defences soon C H A P T E R crumbled hands. over as The a well million surrendered Singapore On 8 and held vessel in in the resources the ank Asian US hands. and 45 had US landed would 30 to 000 the of the Japanese a General Australian British the by Burma. city of Percival troops colony islands the The of get end Dutch Java Sea, of of of and by Japanese would the the if and Hong Kong, Wake, Guam December. The surrendered a classic their surface the they loomed to run islands were 150 the and All Philippines troops, The by have home had government. Philippines. were, US sizes. Philippines the to islands of Japanese 108 aircraft right their defended deployed carrier-borne gauntlet the remained aircraft, Any East in by a tanks two and battle- heavy them. heralded on 8 island US the of nothing the were May in Indies to supported by the December of were siege last 6 for as defenders The East was MacArthur The on and Battle based varying main forced enduring surrendered of the Filipino ground soon surrendered. out dominated be well Peninsula. were it dislodge the on 22December into defending February Likewise planning the if was landings on fell with onslaught after forces from Sea vessels Japanese aircraft pushed strategic divisions, vessels In Indian attacked Japanese important naval surface US the of supply faced water. December. Indies gauntlet As no was gunnery. China force hardened The of conquests meager 25 also extracted this water British, Japanese East of with 000 the overall South of the was presence large city’s O P E R A T I O N S Japanese. to the struggle 80 until fell army holdings of the out Tarawa British The to the commander people over December which and British 7. 4 : Luzon. to his forces, Within Another defensive pushed conditions. destruction 1941. to By the major fallback tip of the of to days landing on the the troops onto the island in of all they on Bataan peninsula April crowded close two and Bataan had Corregidor 1942. Guadalcanal With the passed defeat over to re-conquest an of important was in and the from the the the and the United the lost but the a lost The made more ve on The past both Marine of of the several to The was a troops initial the was lost cruisers and and the a for the provided the assault eet brawl to carrier; several the to the naval run of troops which men important course the 000 in the but off 30 2,000 the against successful, trying navy staging ashore, another was Over with once about navy which Guadalcanal support several initiative target allowed six-month island destroyers As Nimitz target island blockade. four region. the rst Solomons, the Corps the their committing Japanese US battleships, of Midway, as fell against result The the the difcult. on at the task choice island, coast fought. cruisers, two the and the in in the eet chose resupply garrisoned army were island theatre, months. Off They operations navy, marines 000. carrier, an counter-attacked six carrier States. Division. reinforcements US for Pacic troops States 20 engagements and of the next Japanese base Zealand, Japanese over air Japanese island Japanese United Marine responsibility 2,000 the Guadalcanal, central 1st New of the six supplies months Japanese destroyers. ▲ US dive bombers head toward Guadalcanal. To what ex tent did both US and Japanese land operations depend on air power? 213 7 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y The victory against the Australian the US navy, Guadalcanal Japanese armies under forces had at made Allied support of defences. drove steady, their Throughout success. forces forward Rabaul paved stronghold at Admiral strengthened intensity. W A R S it slow, and campaign constructed operations and its a Guinea drove Since both and and was airstrips that in the a March while The Japanese fanatical to were naval and Solomons. essential Japanese captured with US Britain the Guadalcanal these advance the New through combat countless were two-pronged MacArthur defended air against garrison for New Halsey, progress. positions this way Rabaul. through William if the at Allied then units used and in land 1944. Alaska Soviet Union N Mongolia Manchuria W E S Tokyo China Midway 3–6 Pacific India Hong June 1942 Ocean Kong Hawaii Taiwan Burma Mariana Bataan Is. Wake I. Pearl 7 Harbor Dec 1941 French Marshall Is. Philippine Area under Is. Japanese Caroline control, 1942 Is. Allied Gilbert Powers Neutral Is. nations Borneo Singapore Allied response Major battle falls Guadalcanal 15 February 1942 Coral Sea 0 7–8 Indian May Coral Australia ▲ 500 1,000 miles 1942 Ocean 0 Sea 500 1,000 kilometres The Second World War in the Pacic – Allied response at Guadalcanal The Gilbert and Caroline Islands The amount Allies to Pacic Rabaul route up of in at the in to islands southern large, November the with Marines the as Gilbert Halsey Pacic. the with 000 had island. out and This suffered The B-29 the troops. US The US factories Caroline and Marine ght The Corps was lost the the the central driving up toward the Japanese campaign assault 1,000 over in open desperate casualties, had were would attacking bombers. allowed Islands MacArthur offensive 3,000 Japanese of and Philippines land-based 1943 18 streaming the time recapturing capturing 214 material through same the with Tarawa days of move of 4,000 on and home opened the after them island two dead, defending it. in C H A P T E R 7. 4 : O P E R A T I O N S The Marshall and Marianas Islands In January, capturing against Once in Biak, the Saipan their in turned the the were remaining put island 14 the eet In the Another two-thirds carriers, the suicide, they a the ensued, defence and and one survivors death toll B-29s. against struggle aircraft 5,000 their moved of advanced bitter their remaining bringing range desperate After of Islands, MacArthur within control, casualties. lost Marshall south, Philippines group. committed to the Allied 000 Japanese two garrison attention under suffered the his Kwajalein. would Marianas US which Japanese and which Marshalls in which battle Nimitz Eniwetok to of 30 air of the 000. Technology and war: amphibious and landing craft Amphibious landings are incredibly dangerous for attacking forces. The landing troops are exposed to re as they approach the beach and once they are on the beach. Amphibious landings were attempted in most major theatres of the war, North Africa, Sicily, Italy and Normandy. It was in the Pacic, however, that they became a regular feature of combat. Developing a durable landing craft that protected soldiers until they were released on to the beach became a vital priority for the US military. Landing craft varied widely in size and construction, carrying from 25–200 men. Some were armed. Perhaps the most versatile was the Higgins Boat. Developed in New Orleans and named for its creator. The Higgins Boat was 11 m long, could carry 36 soldiers and travel at 22 kmh. It was designed with a long ramp at the bow that oered some protection to the troops and when dropped served as a disembarkation ramp. Other vehicles, such as the US DUKW or Alligator, were designed to travel from the water up onto the beach and continue toward the defences. Others such as the DD Tanks (Duplex Drive) were tanks modied to “swim” to shore. These met with varied success throughout the war as they were easily damaged by high seas. The Philippines The Japanese about the of 250 occur, the 000 complex Lyete, the 70 US 15 000. moved the to end main been recaptured. until July troops in island to the It defeat the and the US last island. cost Japanese troops Luzon capital, would, islands. October small the of island would Japanese the and 1945, the In with throughout smaller landings month casualties February US the on a out the 000. and forces January the of On 15 for Philippines spread initial only raged 000 In the landed their ghting the islands. had forces reinforced The troops of where they US defended and Manila, however, of the by had take Japanese ▲ US General MacAr thur wades ashore in the Philippines. To what ex tent were the Philippine Islands strategically signicant to the Allies? 215 7 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y W A R S Burma It is important ghting the in ghting Meanwhile had no been air 1943. India to and Joe” the In Burma liberate weakly the that supply were over after the 85 Mandalay troops months went Allied to force the the in a bulk vital southern Burma. poorly of the role in sector. Burma trained completed retake from Burma the west, Burma known the and with arduous the than the quarter ghting. would and of into an effort Road. February invaded that Starting push in Burma and of General China 1942 offensive a consisted while from as November erce forces of on played India. on Less of parts into in carried army division, China back soldiers. US Japanese this British thrust Japanese and the single into thrown Slim’s other attempt would route in 1942 African 000 three William of would West a of the Australian ghting by spring safety while the and were Stilwell March, with Guinea relative attempts General ▲ In that Pacic, British forces East reopen These New the the Allied “Vinegar to on defended to British, remember Central support. retreat The to the in returned late Burma 1944, and Rangoon. Australian soldiers advance in New Guinea. What challenges did island ghting pose for soldiers? Iwo Jima and Okinawa With aerial capture the bombers from The returning which the from short-range were positions would of home 20-square-kilometre Japanese these 216 bombing capture dug with the raids with ghters deeply concrete island’s islands island a place could into intensifying, of Iwo to rocky emplacements. high ditch support the ground, Jima the the to as well as bombing terrain and Although Mount US decided provide a the base missions. had Suribachi, to damaged supported Marines within C H A P T E R four days of campaign, Japanese The next Okinawa would the the suffered step over suicide 25 19 by 100 attacks 000 000 Japan defended to itwould US over toward was swell airborne invasion, costing 000. another month 6,800 of to nish them O P E R A T I O N S the dead. The dead. was 70 take casualties, 7. 4 : the 000 heavily troops Desperate, against the fortied well the invasion dug island in, a Japanese force. of Okinawa. number that unleashed The kamikaze kamikaze attacks sank over 30 ships in the invasion force. The US armada pounded Literally “divine wind” in Japanese. the defences for a week ahead of the 50 000 invasion force that landed Kamikaze attacks were suicide attacks on 1 April 1945, a prelude to the 200 000 that the US would place on by Japanese aircraft on enemy ships the island during the course of the struggle which continued until during the Second World War. 22 June. In the end dead. Unwilling failed defence continued Japanese US suicidal ▲ island. operations, To them in or it also US 110 As played how 000 as an it to 000 of only 550 casualties. atomic This – in the a was from role in taste kamikaze vision them Okinawa kilometres provided islands of died as psychological Okinawa home 7,000 soldiers important important the use casualties, Japanese did thinking monstrous and 65 strategically sitting invasion and not suffered strategic the defences whether US surrender, the islands, decisions. awaited of US to of the to the future of what attacks, coloured all talks weapons. US Marines inspect a destroyed pillbox on Iwo Jima. What was the military signicance of small islands such as Iwo Jima? The war at sea Coral Sea In April 1942 indicating Guinea. to the they Nimitz intercept the US were sent Magic programme manoeuvring the aircraft Japanese for carriers invasion decoded an attack USS force. The Japanese on transmissions southern Lexington resulting and New USS battle Yorktown was the 217 7 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y rst naval each the 280 blows the a the USS carrier the has it Japanese was had 90. a to had a the and struggled of for the the US had The the the never as the Japanese Battle US the it US of the had had on crippling Coral USS lost eyes traversed deliver of lost The laid planes to Battle damaged. numerically eets carrier-borne damaged. carrier victory New surface end known, been While in be the 1942 eets By heavy strategic landings May the ships. come which in between Yorktown and in days enemy’s Japanese draw, history four kilometres on the light in Over encounter and to battle other. W A R S lost 70 Coral Sea, as Lexington one aircraft Sea prevented was the Guinea. Midway After preventing Coral the Sea, Magic Japanese was on to the to a attack. lure the conrmed Nimitz in to the a repulsed, Enterprise Japanese a navy the was into at the a from if he would such an an where attack attack them capture clever attack Nimitz opportunity nd their A attack about the could battle Harbor. Japanese by at major the encouraged which wanted decisive of worried and Guinea through another place tempted force Pearl that were position New decoded exact perhaps, Japanese lone eet, but to US with and a The the late four the L TA Within the of as the steaming too ve US before of Midway they could deciphering the low US base minutes trick at altitude sink of to the later were found US the rst were USS ight decks carriers. defend four in The the their still the Japanese the two would from with with Japanese Midway. the strike three would the they plane squadron to second carriers attack carriers an a out believed toward to preparing fourth and seek reconnaissance Japanese at to they dive-bomber four was carrier squadrons bombers cover one Midway presence carriers arriving ablaze, of long-range refueling ghter with Japanese, dive-bomber discovered were force north-east them. bombers. carriers a carrier the carriers task surprise with torpedo to however, that position A torpedo littered Francisco started US surprise be Japanese Research and thinking skills a Hawaii. US had US but Washington east part, aircraft the southern trafc, Island. and indeed San Japanese their they for US, in of radio imminent, Nimitz, dispatched carriers eet US convinced carriers major For what Midway his invasion Japanese Politicians repelled. destroy nish in was continental be Japanese programme, offensive withdraw the the increase unknown. could to an The against Japanese day. The Find the perspective of three dierent Japanese managed to launch an attack that claimed one US carrier, sources on the following question. the USS Yorktown . Within seven months of the Japanese attack on Analyse each perspective and come to Pearl Harbor the US had succeeded in evening the odds in the Pacic. a conclusion of your own. Be sure to cite From this point the industrial the Pacic. juggernaut of the US would overwhelm the bibliographic details for each source. the Japanese in In this sense, the Battle of Midway can be To what extent was the US victory seen as changing the course of the war against Japan in the same way at Midway the key event in the defeat that Stalingrad and El Alamein later that same of Japan? turn 218 of the tide in the war against Germany. year would mark the C H A P T E R 7. 4 : O P E R A T I O N S The USS Yorktown lists heavily before sinking after the Battle of Midway. To what extent were ▲ aircraft carriers vulnerable targets? Leyte Gulf In an effort launched left of lure battle US the the to an group which the US on the Japanese larger ships, stop attack US they naval carrier vessels fought though landing their force into way outgunned, withdrew, a in Philippines supporting approached ght. to the the the from the troops north, rest defended to Japanese landings. the Japanese invasion the the Meanwhile lightly fought leaving the force of was attempting the invasion a eet What force. standstill to Japanese The from unmolested. Technology and war: Magic, cryptology and the code talkers Magic refers to the information decoded from Japanese In their own search for an unbreakable code, the United diplomatic communications from 1940. In 1939, the States Marine Corps looked to the Navajo nation of the Japanese diplomatic corps began using a new machine south-western United States. The Navajo language is to code their communications. In 1940 the US Signal unwritten with no symbols, and is extremely complex Intelligence Service deciphered the codes and built their with multiple dialects. Navajo “code talkers” could code, own version of the Japanese encryption device. The transmit by wireless or telephone and decode a message resulting intelligence was codenamed Magic while the in 20 seconds when it would take machines 30 minutes. Japanese navy’s code was named JN-25. The Japanese About 400 Navajo code talkers served with the US Marines would periodically change the code requiring US in the Pacic. They were assigned to each of the six cryptographers to star t again with decryption. Intelligence marine divisions and took place in all major operations. from Magic and the JN-25 code helped lead to impor tant The Japanese never broke their code. information such as the location of the attack on Por t Moseby in May 1942 and on Midway Island in June 1942. The air war Bombing campaign Once the group, bombing subject set US the cities ablaze devastated deaths captured campaign the them had Japanese to began high and Japanese approached home Saipan and islands were in earnest explosives, attacked air 300 force 000 at low had and other in the the US level no over islands within spring Army with answer. half of in range of the of 1945. Air By the B-29s. Rather Force incendiary the Marianas US decided bombs. summer country’s This than to The civilian urban centres 219 7 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y had burned. On W A R S the one hand, although the human toll was terrible, TOK discussion the raids did To what extent do you agree that the true it history of the Second World War will not industrial had been little to damage throughout economy the had Japanese country. precious industrial On little the capacity, other capacity hand, dispersed the as Japanese left. be written until after the last veteran of the war has passed away? Manhattan Project The conquest those had it faced Japanese islands to a were then put Japan’s question in when the the unconditional re bombing that to a was were the weapon, assemble begun 1942. and their The own such the the had project of the By summer they the had been effect. time to a this of going to as its a helped as and develop opportunity When to for use the maximum the some and weapon told he how to before other the as any effect. petitioned would any US to 1945 a Einstein it how into would British had project in Oppenheimer Enrico the to Fermi, efforts New British to Mexico, Columbia miners the to to some it, surrender. only nature other to the best them Japanese the saw scope weapon with no that Japanese the blood the weapon. on Truman without to scientists the with had scientist”. weapon, the the give attacked he of of Discussions Others in and told giving weapon, of test was weapon used summoning felt baby could Truman Conference. use Truman he they Seventy were that “cry to weapons in a that Alamos, they their than as closer March Albert The the clerks Potsdam to they into against no deciphering Bethe, desert. advocated lethal called 8 from While prototype deployed Truman him a the from before Los from Mexico as On Robert Tennessee demanding rather be maximum as had New in home time. Japanese differed dismissed effect. the Some then surrender weapon of from was harnessing with Hans alternative the unleashed of and Szilard. the home civilians. word Dr Pacic campaign programme it Bohr, Leo people time the should the 000 000 to only of of the the government chemistry. by centred attending warn Oppenheimer President in capacity, with was a and fused and plan capable motion Niels programme so that such as 80 ssion directed The Allies. receiving but working 125 surrender? destructive warning to on weapon and were minds while demonstration itself, the the they consider project, process over physics Feynman over did in this the of isolation campaign by Germany set of 35% in similar bombing Japanese nuclear in luminaries scientic test Should minds elements 1945 in forces men. total strategic killed casualties, US invasion 000 the bombing After of Truman ssion successfully successful left efforts employing greatest Tokyo the efcacy the 000 the topography for 250 was demanded reaction Richard weaponize re brought weapon scientic Franck, London, scientists chain over The alternative. greatest included James centres. against President the of 65 time in concentrated cities US rst strength navy, surrender another there initiate the a the the projections intensive wooden raid in range by urban cost been The the with largely had had army forth the There It islands. combined against 220 Okinawa Japanese home invasion, islands of committed. his hands, decided warning and to C H A P T E R 7. 4 : O P E R A T I O N S L TA Social and thinking skills Choose one of the following positions on whether or not to drop the atomic bomb on Japan. Write an argument in suppor t of your position. Be sure to suppor t it with detailed evidence. Exchange arguments with someone who has chosen the other position. After reading it, write a rebuttal to their argument and they will do the same for your argument. Once you have exchanged rebuttals, discuss the strengths and weaknesses of each argument. To what extent does your knowledge of post-war history aect your outlook on the question? Position 1: The United States was right to drop the atomic bombs on Hiroshima and Nagasaki in 1945. Position 2: The United States should have not dropped the bombs on Hiroshima and Nagasaki in 1945. The targeting as the in order After possible to the runways Boy. of 370 50 000 was of toll Emperor 2 a its later, on then surrendering and two After to no city to of 1945. Allied a to 1944 the the were US in an of Navy the throughout 30 Island. Fat which and above with the another days. Little city the attack. bomb with The the Japanese formalized army September a another instantly was Japanese potential payloads following following Kyoto The the Man metres 000 of Hiroshima, instant weeks killing the 580 city surrendering. heavier on centres Construction forthcoming, surrender, units of Tinian bomb the was in imperial nicknamed in industrial accommodate detonated 000 general the of capable Those rst dead Nagasaki, 50 to off. bombs, wounds forces and structure lift bomb Active number Tokyo surrender nearly a neighbouring dropped the on lengthened atomic their when the July on payloads B-29 ordered to in runways inhabitants climbing September omitted Saipan be succumbing days but settled government heavier people. 000 had reinforced August dropped death on 6 000 80 Three with of a four eventually On city, built were B-29s would targets, maintain capture Battalions for committee and continued October. A post-war model of “Little Boy”, the atomic bomb that exploded over Hiroshima, Japan, at the end of the Second World War 221 7 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y ▲ W A R S The devastated city of Hiroshima after the dropping of the atomic bomb. Were there viable alternatives to dropping the bombs? Technology and war: nuclear weapons In October 1939 President Roosevelt received a letter under the control of the army, the scientic activity was signed by Alber t Einstein, Eugene Wigner and Leo Szilard, conducted primarily by civilians headed by the physicist all eminent physicists. They aler ted the President to the Rober t Oppenheimer. Security was incredibly strict, but this possibility of using nuclear ssion to create a weapon and did not stop the Soviets from placing a spy, the physicist that the exper tise to do so was present in Germany. In Hans Fuchs, deep within the project. Facilities were fact all of the major combatants, the USSR, Britain, Japan created in Oak Ridge, Tennessee and Hanford, Washington and Germany, had teams exploring the creation of nuclear to manufacture the material required for the explosion. weapons. Nuclear ssion was rst achieved in Germany Columbia University, Berkeley and the University of in 1938. In an eor t to stymie this eor t the Allies helped Chicago all conducted research as par t of the Manhattan remove Norway’s stocks of heavy water, necessary for Project. Eventually two types of weapon were developed, managing the reaction, before the German invasion of one using uranium 235 and the other using plutonium. The March 1940. uranium bomb was detonated by ring a radioactive piece at the critical mass of uranium. Using TNT to implode on the Once the US was at war, the task of developing a nuclear ssionable material detonated the plutonium bomb. weapon in the US was turned over to the Army Corps of 222 Engineers. General Leslie Groves assembled a team of In the summer of 1945 the team assembled a tower at the physicists who were eventually concentrated at Los test site in Alamogordo, New Mexico from which to drop a Alamos, New Mexico. While the project as a whole was prototype of the plutonium bomb. 7 .5 Eects of the S ec ond World War on the Pacic Conceptual understanding Key questions ➔ What practical issues did the Allies face in the wake of Japan’s defeat? ➔ What role did the dropping of the atomic bombs have on the post-war situation? Key concepts ➔ Continuity ➔ Change Democratization of Japan and US occupation Unlike and Germany, thus its Japan occupation General MacArthur. a democracy liberal Specically the punishment ● disbanding ● a ● disbanding ● the in land of to the primarily US and for its Japan economy the the United appointed were based occupation by on to free States governor see it develop market as principles. were: criminals and military large had the goals an military former defeated US with war the emperor role ● on of fell The terms ● ban was to disarmament ofcers from corporations renounce his holding called political ofce “zaibatsu” divinity and accept a gurehead government reform that broke up large holdings in favour of smallhold tenants ● the US was permitted to maintain military bases on Okinawa and inJapan. Between the 1945 and heightened location that the the country. In the terms the of parliamentary 1950 US spending capital 1952 aid the poured Korean required the peace of US did democracy for and with a Japan, and economic occupation not into War of Japan take Japan it off was a market not resulting really formally remained ourishing but Japan’s until strategic owed ended into although demilitarized economy. Cold War The US was the rehabilitation determined divided Taiwan. by among The sole and the the USSR occupying political US. power direction Japanese Allied took Japan the imperial Powers control in of the China, north half thus was holdings, including of and country the largely however, which of were received Korea, Sakhalin 223 7 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y Island and Outside of half of The Soviet war with the Kurile the home Korea Union on Hiroshima. the bomb the might with no need economically the occupation of Stalin and in peace the US United his they arms. escalation of of (UN) the Cold rehabilitation of the War both that of and given France them, in an during and atomic were no with West This An had defeat no been Japan the US position occupation appetite mind, for the distrust from any of place arms. important the certainly growing Truman’s in conict. bomb, in of bomb. to Britain’s had of the the drop Germany Truman’s force came the enter help Stalin second as to Soviet of south Mongolia bombing essential China Soviets. provided Japan much seemed advent by the to of decision out Kong. the islands. Yalta occupation. Japan help at accept of of invasion the Soviets especially earned Japan the to Hong smaller atomic of of control made the dropping the operations it Part the Likewise left not in Britain precluded had after keep divided Japan, This pledge simultaneous share With control took assorted reluctance to help. and day Allied Germany. occupation Nations had allies’ policies US a States related. precipitous when Japan. the effort occupy in it the and are the with plan its parallel, 1945, on recovered United honoured an was to responsibilities the as conventional longer The and this 38th events hinged explain Britain the declaration two Japan but the August occupation divided, Islands. islands had Its bombing also earlier 7 The had defeating saw below Japan. happened W A R S base Korean the War. Korean for In War US and fact, the accelerated Germany. Imperialism and decolonization The cost reduced global of the and superpowers inuence. global Yet When in this difculty ascendance of in political Britain some a colonial responsible would Other be British. The The war’s did army made the units for after on two a Japanese army. brief 40 but 000 vicious War than would war, Hong the a there was in a erupt to in the in July communist again after and the there grew of commander Mountbatten, British India. to the 1946. proceeded Asia, of coming active no as Japanese provisions demobilization to the Soviets left for Soviet lost 8,000 Jiang ghters the war Allied in been the being the holdings. reverted haphazard which two regained, British 1945, of Asia had recently Louis number the political independence the end by and the the surrendered weapons Mao’s of Kong in Pacic scattered Lord war’s large some ght had independence as and result their cost Eventually holdings of explosions, dead, the independent eld or power government the the colonial The had, the eclipsed illustrated contemplating such nature the with during and powers, geographically India. Manchuria rather Civil as became the in In begin Asia still Labour negotiate surrender. forces Chinese of still such holdings nuclear were to French Because their nationalist The colonial Philippines Japanese Army the with to Britain Europe economic 1940–1942 combined such both strength, Attlee’s will western effect differently. it was holdings for British defend Clement dispatched of in second-rate and events to War to military France The trying World France in both empires. difculty 224 Second Britain in of Red and Jieshi’s some interruption cases. of the C H A P T E R Second World Indo-China used and the to the of northern of Indo-China Viet and Soviets forces and lead and to also to of the to years nine T H E occupied order. Chi French its O F the undermanned Ho resume French E F F E C T S maintain annoyance Indo-China, this Minh The surrendered Japanese much years War. units 7. 5 : Kurile British Unlike the Islands. had assumed they would as revolutionary it seized had warfare O N T H E P A C I F I C In in in turn India, portions regain in W A R who British who activities W O R L D units Minh, imperial of S E C O N D the control pre-war between the forces. L TA Thinking skills Complete the following table comparing the war in the Pacic with the war in Nor th Africa and Europe. Once you have done that develop two generalizations about the nature of warfare in the Second World War. Impor tance of . . . Europe and Nor th Africa Pacic Naval power Air power Land forces Technology Generalization 1: Generalization 2: Source skills rst The Franck Repor t the The following is from the summary section of revelation world. of the Committee on Political and Manhattan Project University of Chicago, 11 June Franck of other nuclear weapons countries may to have bombs, destroy each an of which, urban area weighing of more less than than ve a ton, square In the war to which such an armaments race is 1945 likely (The years “Metallurgical miles. Laboratory”, possession ten Social could Problems, our the nuclear Report of Within to lead, the United States, with its agglomeration Report). of Members of the Committee: population metropolitan compared to and industry districts, the will nations in be comparatively at whose a few disadvantage population and industry James Franck (Chairman) are scattered over large areas. Donald J Hughes JJ Nickson Questions Eugene Rabinowitch 1 What do the authors mean by “an armaments Glenn T Seaborg race”? JC Stearns Leo Szilard 2 What does this relationship Nuclear bombs cannot possibly remain a of source science tell us and about the international “secret relations? weapon” more at than the a exclusive few years. disposal The of this scientic country, facts on for which 3 their construction is based are well known to With and of other countries. Unless an effective reference content, of nuclear explosives is instituted, a race armaments is certain to origin, are the purpose strengths ensue of the source for and historians of studying nuclear its what international weaknesses control to scientists following the US decision to drop atomic the bombs on Japan in 1945? 225 Exam-style questions and fur ther reading Exam-style questions 1 Examine in 2 3 Japanese Compare and Japanese forces Discuss the 4 the decision to go to war with the United States 1941. the war in Evaluate contrast in the the the forces in the Pacic with the Pacic. signicance the Allied of the Battle of Midway to the outcome of Pacic. US decision to drop atomic bombs on Hiroshima and Nagasaki. 5 Compare and contrast the signicance of sea and land power in the Pacic. 6 Examine Pacic 7 To the causes of Japanese success in the rst six months of the war. what extent did the Second World War affect Japanese society? Fur ther reading Costello, York, Martin. Keegan, The John. Cynthia Birth of Historians. Stille, the The Pacic UK. 1989. Second War, World 1990. The C Rhodes, and Atomic Black Mark. Oxford, 226 1985. 1941–1945. Harper Perennial. New USA. Gilbert, Kelly, John. Dog 2014. Second Bomb and The in War. World War. Richard. the Words Leventhal. Imperial Stoddart. Viking, 2009. of New Japanese Its The Toronto, New Navy in York, Manhattan Creators, York, Canada. USA. Project: Eyewitnesses, and USA. the Pacic War. Osprey. Using the markbands It is important use to which levels with For If a a we be means of that maximum to your look at is judged Paper 2 criteria use against this is a that examiners criteria-based a set set of of criteria graduated will marking, describing markbands 15. of markbands for Paper 2, see page 1, Your a markbands, successful we essay. can nd Each information markband is that divided will into sections: 2 Historical 3 Use 4 Level Since of set addressing and the question; structure concepts examples of you these and knowledge analysis must explicitly elements has a the characteristics of as descriptors of include the basis across all for the successful these your areas in outline. markbands your Each and essay, of these the are you four what should sections determine essays. Understanding and addressing the question; structure Important of the writing Understanding 1 of assessment assessments 2. closely for the IB work For mark 1 use work. break-down Paper useful four understand your achievement. detailed guide to evaluate descriptors repetition, This means elements 2 of and that the in focus. the this The section include demands command term is of the clarity, coherence, question understood. are You lack understood. must answer all question. Historical knowledge and concepts The descriptors of your as detailed without so 3 in historical as you including make sure this you can. It some is focus difcult discussion clearly on the Accuracy identify to of accuracy improves achieve the them the make relevance detail, higher pertinent and and with historical sure so be markbands they concepts, are relevant. Use of examples While the previous section knowledge, this evidence support to examples, on section knowledge. this section where aspect of deals focuses your answer appropriate, the with on to and accuracy how the to well of you your use question. the question historical your Strong are examples links key to and between doing well markbands. 227 SS S K I L L S S E C T I O N 4 Level of analysis Level a of analysis simple difculty using examines recounting reaching these of the events to the events. higher answer extent Essays to which that are markbands, the you have primarily where the gone beyond narrative emphasis is have on question. Historiography and perspectives Historiography the debates, historians terms of The a can the necessary can also For example, War, equally from 228 when it Fritz is or the the these the markbands. past and to a Socialist is of the is can is on Jean concept what historian Jaurès. evaluation Eric of history. in of is perspectives. of the the to the events. First German German approach different in historic Hobsbawm. the In not historiography, the of is essential reected causes Either of is traditional the of historiography position perspectives Understanding inuential discipline of the be the of perspectives this question the history. participants examine Marxist “There of of positions multiple perspectives the study and important the discuss French descriptor the discussion perspectives or to a from addressing Fischer the More of of appreciation history appropriate appropriate ministry address of part thought however, successful. include of deeper examine Some but historian a understanding markbands. World important schools foster be to balanced an markbands, to ability is issues, It is foreign could help perspectives” C onclusion: putting it all together While the IB interpretive specically is the of topics. why an The important world In reality, global the of ▲ IB to paper and to divided – on approached required this are that going contrast world in comparative world a history comparative study study the multiple history globe assessed Papers the the and a is and topics regions to are fashion. in develop comparative This each an approach end. follows are to we across history. the focused discipline, reasons topics compare Paper 2 require and help into 2 number questions 1, To to in a 3. will structure external questions form be of found 2, on global for the on comparison. all however, this regions your the some Paper various of of three emphasizes approach, purpose 2. map multi-region ind icating war We discussed the introduction “comparison” similarities and the is and the ca n four be this detailed as as In for such terms book. differences and regions used command to “compare broader are therefore approach Outline discuss be the assessments has Paper of means examination external a It to is the humans history assessment. this of of you One understanding is course designed reason the history elements that those “compare or, on contrast” the IB when the IB and detail, cou r se. uses command one or perhaps Note Paper for its terms contrast” occasion, in h istor y answer ing to the we 2 that the S econd Wor ld War is a questions. assessments the concept delineate other. should in of between Before look at we it in terms. 229 C A U S E S A N D E F F E C TS O F 20 T H - C E N T U R Y At its heart the W A R S tasks of comparing and contrasting are activities of TOK discussion analysis. We There are a number of assumptions event concept in the idea of developing historical more knowledge through comparison of relationships events. Star ting with a real-life situation that based on the study of 20th-century wars, this develop a knowledge claim. Explore this For knowledge claim and develop it fur ther in into a knowledge question. Share your need knowledge question with a par tner and commands together brainstorm ideas on how to a address it. Analysing or deeply way we out an the look of event, apart idea. during analysis other see the This of idea analysing, a World going we to Second The For must and comparative is broken L TA tactics, rst War of the operations t his the War the we While this book and the IB history course provide elements such as technology, structure essential clarity thereby leader require us the Giap that to of will it he and to or the must case be across the and into This ● cause ● consequence ● change ● continuity ● signicance ● perspective. strategy to use as a common basis for comparison, they are by no means the only factors across which you could compare and contrast 20th-century wars. How many others can you think of? Choose three of these and use them to compare and contrast two 20th-century wars. 230 how and Japan meaningful the could its of be to pull Each in this book chapter, elements effects. – is to of these history because across for war and in a common efforts description the of the Second intellectually components Japan aircraft These designed focusing causes, on a and Italy we in are the production, to can help single combatants, elements IB using we can history as its compare form course common these likewise with naval this conict, strategy the and basis conicts. lends elements or decisions components, Italy common case or concept elements Italian and evaluate sense event, a appraisal. is out can for criteria military out unfocused which In to a basis makes approach carried an it deep event Japanese to this to be – FLN’s and we against separate questions. components which entire cause, consequence, combatants and was. separate other the Before it contributed comparative the forms weaknesses need lead in that thorough a it see evaluate contrast chapters across the of develop strategy. same structure, In how would of Thinking skills commonalities the and General War, to think consequence. of and each idea, whole. structured military of only preparation, would an investigate on and together appraise concept in decide these the to and comparison. approach. into idea, War is leadership “evaluation”. is, a comparing our as rst comparison overall structure we and effects down not can Indo-China him can can make compared, the conduct World strength an we meaningful World being War. fruitful, be we that element Simply Second things can can we causation relationship component War, we we so concept the they World strengths before compare components. two its as breaking war. such – or the made the that also leadership, how way idea each vital to see such his First the event analyse what this breaking tackling the how that is comparison in or Algerian so of the to of so but of individual during see activities example, decisions and to trigger weighing to For causes to to Phu elements of idea, process parts their concepts strategy concept objective, it at the Bien causes and asked understanding the components, them are as component historic apart and various number its analysis how Dien combined we see we of pull the they if of those between key Battle deeper into can informs to think about example, the If can the itself The to concepts this of: C O N C L U S I O N The cognitive skills” plays skill component a role in the of of analysis the other self-management skills. help your wars you in a develop comparative IB’s ATL The is an important approaches to components following ability to such ATL analyse element learning as the research activities and in (ATL). think are of “thinking It also skills and designed to 20th-century fashion. L TA Thinking skills Compare and contrast the signicance of the factors below in determining the outcome of the Second World War in Europe and the Pacic. ● strategy ● industrial production ● technology L TA Thinking skills Broadly speaking a thesis or thesis statement is your position on a given topic or answer to a question. While there are a number of ways to write one, strong thesis statements all have some things in common. A thesis statement should contain the following. ● Your position/answer to the question: indicates a focus on the task . ● Any qualication to that position/answer: because few historical issues/ questions have a straightforward “yes” or “no” answer, some qualication is generally required. about the task . A qualier also indicates that you are thinking deeply A qualier is par ticularly impor tant in responding to a task involving the idea of “to what extent”. ● An indication of how you will suppor t your position/answer: this provides structure to your response and an indication to the reader of the direction the response will take. In terms of a compare and contrast essay a thesis might look like this: QuestionCompare and contrast the role of technology in the Algerian War and the Falklands/Malvinas War. Thesis statement: Technology played an impor tant role in transpor ting troops and materials in the Algerian War and Falklands/Malvinas Wars, but had limited eect on land combat Addresses the task An indication of how the position will be suppor ted A qualication to the position Write a potential thesis statement for each of the following questions. ● Compare and contrast the causes of the Indo-China War and the Algerian War. ● Evaluate the Allied strategy in the Pacic theatre of the Second World War. ● To what extent did militarism and nationalism cause the First World War? 231 economic effects of First World War 147 Falange (Spanish fascist party) 88, 89, 94, 98 Index El Alamein fall A Afghanistan Africa 113, aircraft 114, 115 127 airships ghter aircraft planes planes carriers Alessandri, Algerian 1955 30–1 1956 31 Battle 127, 191, 70, North 16–17 causes short-term and Battle of the Frontiers attacks and the Week of amphibious Canada alliances, First landing craft Carlists 218 in Falklands CEDA 47 in Europe naval 1914 personnel, 110–11 World Battle Attlee, of 1880–1914 Australia 114, Gallipoli Second 216, 217, July Crisis 188, 208, 211, 114, Cold 124–5, 88, 90, ballistic missiles Belgium talkers War Coral of outbreak Berlin Blank Blum, War Dien Cheque Leon Britain 113–14, 115, 88, 84, 94–5, naval 115, 151, of Britain Battle race Derechas of the (5–12 Jiang September 1914) of and US 164, 204–5 reaction 170, 188, 205–6 190 Nacional del Trabajo) 107–8, 151 121–2 115–16 Frontiers Battle of the Marne the Somme of 127–8 (5–12 September 1914) Battle of Verdun Belgium Powers Eastern Front effects Crisis of opening 30 95 147 110 116–18 the First causes (BEF) 126, Evian F War 153–4, 202–3 110–12 moves Race to 124–6 (July–November effects the 1917) 146 Sea 129 causes effects warfare war at sea war plans 16, 129–30 production, 1914–1918 145 143–4 118 21–2, 151, 116–18 147–8 munitions 57–8, 79–80, 84, 95, 113, 226–7 Battle of the Frontiers Battle of the Marne 156, the Somme Battle 157 of 127–8 (5–12 September 1914) of (July–November 136–7 Verdun (February–October 1916) 134–5 19, 198, conscription 226–7 economic 204 Fourth 23, 110–11 effects Franco-Russian 75–8 Free 111 of Republic French First 22, World War 147 65 Alliance 1894 114 182 industrialization outbreak Dwight 182, Vichy 184 113 in Spanish Franco, 118 101, Cordiale Franz 114 your essay the introductions Accords 35 and Francisco 103, 105, forces equipment 82–3 question strategies 37–8 conclusion 150 First Ferdinand, French 13–14 of French Civil War in 89, War 118, forces 94, 95, 96, 98–9, 156 Archduke Algeria 108, 116 25–6 27 in Indo-China 64–6 66–7 69–70 Foreign 124–5 173 28–9 equipment French World Government strategies 128 World 109–16 128–9 understanding Force 115 112–13 138–9 115, 135 110 structuring (July–November 121 144–5 Passchendaele UK 155 Phu 1914 141–2 industrialization France 26, 1916) 142–3 Front trench 225–6 technology (February–October 126 Central social 197–8, (July–November 136–7 short-term 93 170–1 writing 110 90, 148 the militarism 226–7 Manchuria 172 vitale Entente 190 conscription 88, 113–14 1914 literature long-term Jieshi 208, War 93, nancing Enigma 136–7 Expeditionary 84, of legacy 102 essays Somme (FAI) 96–7 élan 188–9 Marne Ibérica Battle July 222 Eisenhower, 111 128–9 British de E 200, 156–7 Battle 154–5 imperialism/nationalism 94 220 Bien Ebro the 57, non-intervention appeasement Blitz 89, 71 Plan Dunkirk 117 Anglo-German of 88, 170–1 dreadnoughts 118 226–7 1916) party) 96 39–40, Battle 181, 156–7 responsibility deterrence Otto 54–5 Balkans Battle decit 117–18 100 Bismarck, see 113, decolonization 126 World 185 Bilbao 169, D Belgium and 1916) 190 First 168, 222 39, Sea Dawes of 144 117 114 invasion 139, 89 202, 92, Czechoslovakia 115–16, War system political conscription 88–9 B 114, 135, 11 cryptology Balkans 50–2 53 134–5 Española Winston communication 142 87, occupation Sir Comintern 116 116–18 87, aftermath 43–4 War Powers Home 88, 71–2, commissars Manuel its 139–40 Gallipoli (Confederación collective 121, 165, Neville codebreaking 142–3 218–19 War 130, 182–5 king–church 86, Kai-shek war code 144 168, 122, 45 Church Churchill, civil 146 World Azaña, 117 185–6 113, war causes Anarquista 1916) 93 135 Jimmy 64, 87, War Austria-Hungary First 1881–1914 CNT landings 114, (Confederación China 226 World collapse the 139, 218–19 Largo War Sino-Japanese 222–4 Clement 216, 198 pigeons Chiang 116 assassinations, bomb art 45–6 125 landings 196, Japanese assassinations 232 108, Autónomas) 112 atom 211, Chamberlain, and 121, (Spanish Catholic 54–5 48–9 divisions Falklands the and islands 151 World alliance 1917) the World economic carrier Carter, forces strategies Atlantic, First 122, 94 86–7 42 41–2, (July–November Francisco 95, 188, armies political 118, 48 Normandy World 39–40 military War Allied 208, Second and 39, Argentinian army World 41–3 93 Battle 205 Treaty Junta 92, 179 1918 in on of 84, Federación 182–5 campaign First 116, Caballero, anarcho-syndicalism Argentina fascism War C the 110 doctrine Rosario 128–9 34 European Antarctic Civil 22–3 113–14 War of forces Bulgaria causes Operation short-term Spanish landings Africa strategies 21–2 the causes Barricades Amau in 39–40 52–3 outcomes 172 138–9 British war 1982 long-term Second Passchendaele 31 War operations 181 114 Dunkirk Normandy 72–3 Burma of at Italy 96–7 33–4 Line alliances Sicily non-intervention 32 map and outbreak Algiers long-term terror 208 invasion of air 215–16 Pacic 113 214 35 Morice the industrialization losses 192 188–9 211–12, 1954–1962 Plan effects in 124–5 of Challe 127, Marcel War Singapore isolationism 127 bomber of forces 39 Falklands 179–81 Legion 25, 65 100, I N D E X Front de Libération equipment organization strategies Nationale (FLN) Vietnam 22–3 interzone 24–5 Italy 28 84, El Galtieri, gas landings Germany support 52 84, 94, Group Iwo 113–14 naval race Centre of the Frontiers Battle of the Marne of the Battle September economic El (February–October First 1916) German of First World War after invasion of First World invasion of Normandy Sicily Africa Operation outbreak and Italy Barbarossa of First War 117–18, 124–5 Passchendaele (July–November 1917) road to siege effects of for Tripartite Vo Gilbert global and Great Pact context 16, in Spain 95 Gulf 74–6, Islands 57, 172, 151, 200 Marianas 206 Pact plans 206, Islands war 12, and US reaction 205–6 guerilla wars foreign support for what guerilla warfare? 20 guerillas Partido Partit 211–12 88, Jieshi Crisis 205, 208, 222–4 Battle 219–20, of Empire Bill see Pearl 143 II of pieds 219 135 Leach, Sir Harbor 50 25 policy 142 García de Catalunya (PSUC) (July–November von 1917) 138–9 177–8 Army 207, (PLA) 213, 216, 64, 72 217, 218, 226 noirs 21, 22, 28, 30–1, 32, 34, 35 135 weapons 190 167–8 of Popular Army Popular Front PSOE 98 Marxista 206–7 privatization 166 Unicat 206, casualties Frederico 125, 93 Liberation pigeons 142 Henry 115–16, Unicación 92, Friedrich Poland lamps 225 108, 93 221, Germany de 88, Socialista Paulus, Wilhelm Ataturk 222, 107, 67 Obrero Philippines Lorca, 179 179–81 Passchendaele 226 116–18 Lend-Lease 100 184 170 (POUM) 203 102 legionnaires 27 18–19 184 campaign paratroopers pilotless 16 20th-century 182–4 217–18 L 216–17 220 P Tripartite Kemal 204 217, 185 weapons Ottoman War kamikaze 200, Beach Okinawa 221 220–1 Kaiser 216, 184–5 Alamein nuclear 216 O K 107, 212, Beach Beach People’s 188 155–6, 1941– 77–8 217 84, Pacic, 209 Sino-Japanese Jutland, 71–2, the 211, 184 Beach Norway 204–5 in 219 Midway July El 215–16 102 Guadalcanal Guernica forces and Jiang forces Kong 188, 65 landings Africa 168, 142–3 210 Marshall war 146 176–8 39, Hermann is Hong North Philippines, 97 139, landings Beach Utah 223–4 the 114, Chester Omaha 217 113 (US) Richard Sword on expansion Jarama 64, Depression guerilla War 206 Caroline Guadalajara World Nationalist Nguyen Goering, First 185 Stalingrad support Giap, of Berlin Zealand Juno Islands Nagasaki and 93 Acts Normandy US 202–3 ultra-nationalism 138–9 political Juan Gold expansion Leyte and 216–17 and kamikaze 173–6 Japan 222 75 111–12 Nimitz, 225 advance Japanese 181 179 World navies Nixon, Japanese 1942 182–5 campaign 96 Gallipoli Japanese 126 landings Spain talkers Henri neo-mercantilism Caroline Singapore War 113 Belgium in 205 War and Japanese 156 industrialization North World Hiroshima 147 179–81 expansion forces 220 Guadalcanal 141–2 effects Alamein code Negrin, of non-intervention 115 Navarre, 200–1 doctrine Sea Gilbert Front 114, and 113 Navajo 142 219–20 democratization (July–November 134–5 Eastern 125, 206 occupation Verdun 120, 181 Nationalist Pact 212, 57, Amau 1914) 136–7 of 107, Allies New Japan 127–8 (5–12 Somme NATO J Coral 1916) nations 160 Neutrality 128–9 Battle 155, 111 175 Battle Jima War for Tripartite Anglo-German Army 43, 131 116, 179–81 by 96 democracies 96–7 64 113, World invasion 142–3 Leopoldo warfare 94, support western 112–13 systems Alamein First G Gallipoli Italian 59 industrialization 26 the campaign 169 102 87, 39, (Partido Polish 93, 88–91, 96 42 Socialista Obrero Español) 88–9 Pu M H Haig, Alexander Halsey, harkis William 25, Harris, 33, Ho Madrid “Bomber” 89, 164, 178, 180, Dreadnought Chi 198, Hong Minh 60, Mao 79, Maxim, Midway 227 Kong 208, 211, 216, and mines Marianas Ibarruri, Dolores imperialism India 208, 115, 216, Indo-China War 1950–1954 74–8 effects of Phu the long-term war causes 57–8, 227 Rommel, Line code Mussolini, 79–80 60 60–2 111, Eastern First 135 Benito 105, 154, 155, 160, and non-intervention 11–12 165, 113–14, 97, Front World 180, 182–3 206, 212, 224 182–3 116, revolution 117, 1917 118 143, 146 141–2 War 121, 124, Alliance industrialization 181 179, D. von Franco-Russian 226 96, war Gerd Bolshevik 182 32 Louis 92–4 94–5 96 Franklin Rundstedt, 110–12 179–80, Brigades Erwin Roosevelt, Bernard 43 Spain democracies revolutionary 217–18 Russia Mountbatten, 227 Islands 42, in 96–7 128–9 137 125, 1894 138, 139 114 113 S N 75–8 causes short-term 226, 1945–1954 73–4 Bien Morse 226–7 218–19, 1946–1950 Dien Morice 99 1914) 39, forces support western 226 130 Montgomery, I Soviet 208, 220–1 109, Ronald International 170 71–2, September Hiram militarism 226 187 222–4 von 64, (5–12 Marshall 75, Eric Zedong Marne 74, radar R 137 Project Manstein, 73, 204 Manhattan 173–5, 72, Yi 225 Republican 155, 71, 218, 204–5 172, 111 217, Manchuria 105, 188–9 111, 216, Reagan, 220, 98, 96, 183, 62, guns 212, 101 169–70, 95, 168, Douglas 222 Magic 192 135 Adolf 156–7, 176, machine 217 33 heliographs Hitler, MacArthur, 52 35 Arthur helicopters HMS 51, napalm 67, nationalism Nationalist German Schlieffen 68 115, forces 203 in support Spain 95 94 Plan 141, 164 map of 117, Schlieffen Schlieffen, Alfred 118, Plan von 126, 127, 128–9, 119 118 233 Schutzstaffel Second 151–2, air (SS) World 57, 95, 188–92, ground Allied Powers Allied Powers’ armaments strategies powers, forces Powers 159–60, strategies to western of Britain Battle of the Europe Atlantic Cold Spain 185–6 decolonization 198, democratization Alamein of European war 154–5 ghting in dead Pacic Jima Japanese advance and on of 200, the Philippines, 215–16 in the World War long-term causes 153–5, long-term effects 197–8 Manhattan map of Project Second tips in the Pacic 220–1 Normandy North Pearl Harbor Philippines relative to the powers in 155–7, 204–7 tank long-range and US reaction Magic, bombing production Pact 190–92, ultra-nationalism Nations strategies: island US strategies: strategic 234 war at war crimes sea hopping warfare 185–8, trials 212 bombing 213 220–2 196–7 island strategic and Harbor tanks a good essay War tank production 166 war trench landing warfare see 97 warfare 212 bombing and 213 206–7 Soviet and War and US reaction Union V2s 190 (February–October Minh 1916) 134–5 63–4 64 71–2 59 at the Clausewitz, 17th Carl parallel Philipp 79 Gottfried 7 7 craft of wars continue? why do wars end? why do we Pact Weltpolitik Wilhelm 33 111, 118, 191 the code 144 113 II of the powers, 1880– 112 Naval Conference 203 115 of 124, women 137 and 7–18 (Canada) tonnage Washington 170–1 Act 8 10 111 1914 135 ght? Measures warships 187–8 10–12 do Warsaw 218 9–10 wars warship bombers weapons Germany 108, 114, 115, 136 and the First World War 147 talkers 224 Yamamoto, Isoroku Yugoslavia 116 67 weapons Z 190 Zeppelins Zhukov, 144 178 Margaret 39, 11 warfare trench hopping why War 214 113 guns 139, War W 13–14 187 Thatcher, total Civil 182–5 strategies: partition 12–13 131 submarines 198 US commercial radar Spanish 217–18 Y pilotless 203 in strategies: Von codebreaking paratroopers 166 206 181 Islands Pacic Vietnam 187–8 assessment 68 nuclear 222 217 14 cryptology napalm 176–8 Italy Marianas landings equipment 222 Tripartite United and Islands Pacic V1s 219 15 and warfare machine 181 War 220–1 types 111, helicopters 185 causes 205–6 Stalingrad strategic 197–8 127 Enigma gas Italy Joe” warfare and communication of and Midway strategies carriers artillery potential Marshall Viet “Vinegar anti-submarine 161 and 182, 9–10 amphibious Sino-Japanese 177, 178 206–7 147 221 technology aircraft War 209 and Verdun terms aircraft Berlin 103 144 179 194–5 short-term lost 115 World World 139–40 216–17 Sicily Gulf US V 174, writing Second Pacic 113 USSR 87–8 162 170, overview 139, First Caroline of and 205–6 causes Joseph of 122, invasion Pearl 86–7 176–8 technology 218 war 1937 Sicily 217–18 167–9 recovery road Islands 182–5 Africa Poland Marianas the and commercial T tanks Midway 88–91 200–1 Japan industrialization war War 204 and Civil 222–4 World Marshall Spanish of War Sino-Japanese Henry for in 151, 225 effects Normandy historiography 202–4 the 88, 155 non-intervention Republicans command 221 in (UGT) 220 World Leyte 102 anti-submarine 153–4, 105 100 98–9 submarines 211–12 94–5, Plan Gilbert war 102 causes Josef Stilwell, 206, 104, north causes Albert Stalin, Stanley, Pacic, 210 plans First Speer, the syllabus Gulf the Trabajadores 198 84, Sea forces 84–5 of 101 Stalingrad 204–5 202–3 Leyte 1936–1938 91 outbreak Kong 57, First 88 102 1936 why Nations 39, economic 1936–1939 203 de democratization 96 100 long-term 204 219–20 the Hong expansion war Spain 97 short-term Japanese 1941–1942 the 142 93 Dawes 173 in 87 parties intervention Madrid Okinawa expansion legacy July 217 193–7 Japanese Japanese Islands 226–7 Singapore Army forces signicance offensive Jarama 155–6, effects and Red General Guadalcanal immediate 216–17 imperialism War and Guadalajara 213–14 121, Coral 176–8 the literature War 195–6 156 Caroline Depression immediate of political Guernica the Guadalcanal migration 193 expansion and US Republican and foreign 179–81 fascism and Bilbao US Ebro population Great and 225 European Gilbert art 226–7 Japan 116, 226 Britain United 173–6 185 103–5 220 occupation 90, 94 Republic Civil 222–3, 170 occupation aftermath 225–6 see 86 Spanish 197–8, Sea German for S. Alan ultra-nationalism Barbarossa purge Spanish 192 UK 136–7 168 Stalingrad support 218–19 War Coral of 114 Harry U 1916) Unión 39, 206 215–16 43 Berlin Second production Burma to Stalin’s 169–73 188–9 190 bomber 114, Union siege 173–6 Turing, 124–5 219 Africa road 164–5 211, (July–November Operation 209 Stalingrad Battle South Soviet 160 Truman, 117, Pact Entente Turkey 208, sovereignty Powers’ Iwo the 162 Axis El of Triple 203 135 115–16, William Somme Axis for Slim, 165–6 156–7 Tripartite 162 Conference 181 Singapore 208–9 Naval ags 114, Sicily 161 160–1, 1940–1943 Barbarossa Serbia production ground production Washington 105, 222–4 forces appeasement Blitz 104, semaphore Allied battle 100, 200–1 war Axis wartime 168 War 129–30 runners 135 42–3, 45, 50, 55 127 Georgi 176 207, 211, 212 117, C AUS E S OF AND E F F EC T S 20 T H - C E N T U R Y WA R S Authors Written by leading examiners and IB educators, this course book most David M. Smith comprehensively covers World History Topic 11 from the syllabus for first examination in 2017. Enabling learners to critically explore historical concepts, the student-centred approach enables big-picture understanding and strengthens results. O xford course books are the only DP resources developed with the IB. This means that they are: ➜ The most comprehensive and accurate match to IB specifications ➜ Written by exper t and experienced examiners and teachers ➜ Packed with accurate assessment suppor t, directly from the IB ➜ Truly aligned with the IB philosophy, equipping learners to tackle key concepts, ATL and TOK A scene of conflict Build a critical and thematic understanding, strengthening assessment potential Embed the key skills and enable confident understanding of the Paper 2 assessment, suppor ting results. Also available, from Oxford Print and online pack 978 0 19 835482 6 978 0 19 835490 1 enilnO enilnO Online book How 1 What's on the cover? to get in contact: web www.oxfordsecondary.com/ib email schools.enquiries.uk@oup.com tel +44 (0)1536 452620 fax +44 (0)1865 313472